Anne
McCaffery
Acorna – 01 – The Unicorn Girl
Preface
The
space-time coordinate system they used has no relationship to Earth, our sun,
the Milky Way, or any other point of reference we could use to find our way
around, and in any coordinate system we use, they're so far off the edge of the
chart that nobody has ever contemplated going there, even with the proton
drive. So let's just say that they were somewhere between the far side of
nowhere and the near side of here when their time and space ran out, and what
started as a pleasure cruise ship turned into a death chamber. They are like us
in many ways besides appearance. They didn't want to die if they could possibly
avoid it; if they couldn't live, then at least they wanted to die with dignity
and peace instead of in a Khievii torture cell; and they would happily have
thrown away life, dignity and everything else to save their youngling, who
didn't even know what was about to happen to them. And they had time to talk;
what amounted to several hours by our reckoning, while the Khievii ship closed
in on the little cruiser that had run out of places to flee to.
"We
could offer to surrender if they'd spare her," she said, looking at the
net where their youngling curled asleep. It was a mercy that she slept so well;
she talked well enough that they'd have had trouble disguising their meaning
from her if she were awake.
"They
make no terms," he said. "They never have."
"Why
do they hate us so?"
"I
don't know that they do hate," he said. "Nobody knows what they feel.
They are not like us, and we can't ascribe our emotions to them. All we know?
is what they do."
And
they both fell silent for a while, unwilling to speak of what the Khievii did
to prisoners of other races. No one had ever survived capture by the Khievii,
but the images of what happened after capture were broadcast by the Khievii, in
full three-D reproduction, with sound and color. Was it a calculated ploy to
terrorize, or simply a display of triumph, as members of a more humanoid race
might display the enemy's flag or captured ships? No one knew, because the same
things had happened to the diplomat-linguists who went under sign of peace to
make a treaty with the Khievii.
"Cruel
..." she breathed after a long while •watching their sleeping child.
"Their
only mercy," he said, "is that they have already let us know to
expect no mercy. It won't happen to us, because we won't be alive when they
reach here."
Since
the third broadcast of Khievii prisoner torture, shortly after the beginning of
-what history might know as the Khievii Invasion, no ship of their people had
gone anywhere without certain necessary supplies. The only prisoners taken were
those caught away from a ship or without time to use those supplies. The others
were always far beyond the reach of pain when the Khievii caught up with their
bodies.
"But
I don't like to go without striking even one blow," he said, "so I
have made certain modifications to our engines. There are some privileges to
being director of Weapons Development; this system is so recently designed that
even the Fleet has not yet been fitted with it."
His
hands were not quite as flexible as ours, but the fingers worked well enough to
key in the commands that would activate those modifications; commands too
dangerous to be activated by the usual voice-control system.
"When
anything of a mass equal to or greater than ours approaches within this
radius," he told her, pointing at the glowing sphere that now surrounded
their ship in the display field, "the dimensional space around us both will
warp, change, decompose until all the matter within this sphere is compressed
to a single point. They will never know what happened to us or to their own
boarding craft." His lips tightened. "We've learned that they don't
fear death; perhaps a mystery will frighten them somewhat more."
"What
happens to the space around us when the compression effect is triggered?"
"No
one knows. It's not something you'd want to test planet side or from a close
observation point. All we know is that whatever exists within the sphere is
destroyed as if it had never been."
She
said nothing, but looked at the baby. The pupils of her eyes narrowed to
vertical slits.
"It
won't hurt her," he said gently, seeing and understanding her grief.
"We'll take the abaanye now, and give her some in her bottle. I'll have to
wake her to feed her, but she'll go to sleep afterwards and so will -we. That's
all it is, you know: going to sleep."
"I
don't mind for us," she said, --which was a lie, but a loving one.
"But she is just beginning to live. Isn't there some way "we could
give her a chance? If we cast her out in a survival pod - "
"If
we did it now, they'd see and intercept it," he said. "Do you want to
think about -what would happen then?"
"Then
do it when the ship explodes!" she cried. "Do it when we're all
dying! Can't you rig those controls to eject the pod just before they reach the
radius, so that they won't have a chance to change course and take her?"
"For
what? So that she can spend her last hours alone and scared in a survival pod?
Better to let her go to sleep here in your arms and never wake up."
"Give
her enough to make her sleep, yes," she said. She could almost feel her
wits becoming sharper in these last moments. "Make her sleep for more
hours than the pod has air. If only she -were old enough to ... well, she isn't
and that's that. If the air runs out, she'll die without waking. But some of
our people might find her first. They might have heard our last distress
signals. They might be looking. Give her that chance!"
She
held the baby and fed her the bitter abaanye mixed with sweetened milk to make
it palatable, and rocked her in her arms, and kissed her face and hands and
soft tummy and little kicking feet until the kicking slowly stopped, and the
baby gurgled once and breathed deeply in and out,
and
then lay quite limp and barely breathing in her mother s arms.
"Do
you have to put her in the pod now?" she cried when he stooped over them.
"Let me hold her a little longer-just a little longer."
"I
won't take the abaanye until I see her safely stowed," he said. "I've
programmed the ship to launch the pod as close to the time of detonation as I
dare." Too close, he thought, really;
the pod
-would almost certainly be within the radius when the Khievii approached, to be
destroyed with them in the explosive transformation of local space. But there
was no need to tell her that. He would let her drink the abaanye and go to
sleep believing that their baby had that one chance of living.
She
willed her pupils to widen into an expression of calm content while he was
closing the pod and arming it to eject on command.
"Is
all complete?" she asked when he finished........
Yes.
She
managed a smile, and handed him a tube of sparkling red liquid. "I've
mixed a very special drink for us," she said. "Most of it is the same
vintage as the -wine we drank on our vows-day."
He
loved her more in that moment, it seemed to him, than ever he had in the days
when they thought they had long years of life together before them.
"Then
let us renew our vows," he said.
At
first Gill assumed it was just another bit of space debris, winking as it
turned around its own axis and sending bright flashes of reflected light down
where they were placing the cable around AS-6-4-B1.3. But something about it
seemed wrong to him, and he raised the question when they were back inside the
Khedive.
"It
is too bright to have been in space very long," Rafik pointed out. His
slender brown fingers danced over the console before him; he read half a dozen
screens at once and translated their glowing, multicolored lines into voice
commands to the external sensor system.
"What
d'you mean, too bright?" Gill demanded. "Stars are bright, and most
of them have been around a good while."
Rafik's
black brows lifted and he nodded at Calum.
"But
the sensors tell us this is metal, and too smooth," Calum said. "As
usual, you're thinking with the Viking-ancestor part of what we laughingly
refer to as your brain, Declan Giloglie the Third. Would it not be pitted from
minor collisions if it had been in this asteroid belt more than a matter of
hours? And if it has not been in this part of space for more than a few hours,
where did it come from?"
"Conundrums,
is it? I'll leave the solving of them to you," Gill said with good humor.
"I am but a simple metallurgic engineer, a horny-handed son of the
soil."
"More
like a son of the asteroidal regolith," Rafik suggested. "Not that
this particular asteroid offers much; we're going to have to break up the
surface with the auger before there's any point in lowering the magnetic rake .
. . Ah! Got a fix on it." An oval shape, regularly indented along one
edge, appeared on the central screen. "Now what can the sensors tell us
about this little mystery? "
"It
looks like a pea pod," Gill said.
"It
does that," Calum agreed. "The question is, what sort of peas, and do
we want to harvest them, or send them gently on their way? There've not been
any recent diplomatic disagreements in this sector, have there?"
"None
that would inspire the placing of mines," Gill said, "and that's not
like any space mine I ever saw. Besides, only an idiot would send a space mine
floating into an asteroid belt where there's no telling what might set it off
and whose side might be worst injured."
"High
intelligence," Rafik murmured, "is not inevitably an attribute of
those who pursue diplomacy by other means . . . close reading," he
commanded the console. "All bandwidths . . . well, well.
Interesting."
"What?"
"Unless
I'm mistaken . . ." Rafik paused. "Names of the Three Prophets! I
must be mistaken. It's not large enough . . . and there's no scheduled traffic
through this sector . . . Calum, what do you make of these sensor
readings?"
Calum
leaned over the panel. His sandy lashes blinked several times, rapidly, as he
absorbed and interpreted the changing colors of the display. "You're not
mistaken," he said.
"Would
you two kindly share the great insight?" Gill demanded.
Calum
straightened and looked up at Gill. "Your peas," he said, "are
alive. And given the size of the pod-too small for any recycling lifesupport
system-the signal it's broadcasting can only be a distress call, though it's
like no code I've ever heard before."
"Can
we capture it?"
"We'll
have to, shan't we? Let's hope-ah, good. I don't recognize the alloy, but it's
definitely ferrous. The magnetic attractors should be able to latch on-easy,
now," Rafik admonished the machinery he was setting in action, "we
don't want to jostle it, do we? Contents fragile. Handle with care, and all
that. . . . Very nice," he murmured as the pod came to rest in an empty
cargo bay.
"Complimenting
your own delicate hands?" Calum asked caustically.
"The
ship, my friend, the Khedive. She's done a fine gentle job of harvesting our
pea pod; now to bring it in and open it."
There
were no identification markings that any of them could read on the "pea
pod," but a series of long scrolling lines might, Calum surmised, have
been some sort of alien script.
"Alien,
of course," Raflk murmured. "All the generations of the Expansion,
all these stars mapped and planets settled, and we're to be the first to
discover a sapient alien race ... I don't think. It's decoration, or it's a
script none of us happens to know, which is just barely possible, I think
you'll agree?"
"Barely,"
Calum agreed, with no echo of Rafik's irony in his voice. "But it's not
Cyrillic or Neo-Grek or Romaic or TriLat or anything else I can name ... so
what is it?"
"Perhaps,"
Rafik suggested, "the peas will tell us." He ran delicate fingers
over the incised carvings and the scalloped edges of the pod. Hermetically
sealed, of a size to hold one adult human body, it might have been a coffin
rather than a life-support module . . . but the ship's sensors had picked up
that distress signal, and the signs of life within the pod. And the means of
opening, when he found it, was as simple and elegant as the rest of the design;
simply a matter of matching the first three fingers of each hand with the pair
of triple oval depressions in the center of the pod.
"Hold
it," Calum said. "Better suit up and open it in the air lock. We've
no idea what sort of atmosphere this thing breathes."
Gill
frowned. "We could kill it by opening it. Isn't there some way to test
what's in there?"
"Not
without opening it," Calum said brightly. "Look, Gill, whatever is in
there may not be alive anyway-and if it is, surely it won't last forever in a
hermetically sealed environment. It'll have to take its chances."
The men
looked at each other, shrugged, and donned their working gear before moving
themselves and the pod into the airlock.
"Well,
Calum," Rafik said in an oddly strangled voice, seconds after the lid
swung open, "you were half right, it seems. Not an aduit human, at any
rate."
Calum
and Gill bent over the pod to inspect the sleeping youngling revealed when it
opened.
"What
species is it?" Gill asked
"Sweet
little thing, isn't she?" Gill said in such a soppy tone that both Rafik
and Calum gave him an odd look.
"How'd
you arrive at the sex of it?" Rafik wanted to know.
"She
looks feminine!"
They
all admitted to that impression of the little creature which lay on her side,
one hand curled into a fist and thrust against her mouth in a fairly common
gesture of solace. A fluff of silvery hair curled down onto her forehead and
coiled down to the shoulder blades, half obscuring the pale, delicate face.
Even as
they watched, she stirred, opened her eyes and groggily tried to sit up.
"Avwi," she wailed. "Avwi!"
"We're
scaring the poor little thing," Gill said. 'Okay, obviously she's an
oxygen breather like us, let's get out of the suits and take her into the ship
so she can see we're not metal monsters."
Transferring
the pod and its contents back into the ship -was an awkward business. The
"poor little thing" wailed piteously each time she was tilted in the
pod.
"Poor
bairn!" Gill exclaimed when they set her down again. The movement of the
pod had dislodged the silvery curls over her forehead, showing a lump over an
inch in diameter in the center of her forehead, halfway between the hairline
and the silver brows. "How did that happen? This thing's cushioned well
enough, and Rafik drew it into the bay as gently as a basket of eggs and not
one of
them cracked."
"I
think it's congenital," Rafik said. "It's not the only deformity. Get
a good look at her hands and feet."
Now
that he called their attention to them, the other two saw that the fingers of
the hands were stiff, lacking one of the joints that gave their own hands such
flexibility. And the little bare feet ended in double toes, larger and thicker
than normal toes, and pointed at an odd angle.
"Avwi,
avwi!" the youngling demanded, louder. Her eyes looked strange-almost
changing shape -but she didn't cry.
"Maybe
it's not a deformity at all," Calum suggested.
"Still
looking for your intelligent aliens?" Rafik teased.
"Why
not? She's physically different from us, we don't recognize the writing on the
pod, and can either of you tell me what an 'avwi' is?"
Gill
stooped and lifted the youngling out of the life-support pod. She looked like a
fragile doll between his big hands, and she shrieked in terror as he swung her
up to shoulder height, then grabbed at his curly red beard and clung for dear
life.
"Perfectly
obvious," he said, rubbing the child's back -with one large hand.
"There, there, acushia, you're safe here, I'll not let you go. . . .
Whatever the language," he said, "'awi' has to be her word for 'Mama.'"
His blue eyes traveled from the pod to Rafik and Calum. "And in the
absence of 'awi,' gentlemen," he said, "it seems that we're
elected."
Once
she had found that Gill's beard was soft and tickled her face and that his big
hands were gentle, she calmed down in his arms. Figuring she might be at least
thirsty from being in the pod for who knew how long, they experimented by
offering her water. She had teeth. The cup would forever bear the mark of them
on its rim. She made a grimace, at least that's what Gill said it was, at the
first taste of the water, but she was too dehydrated not to accept it. Meat she
spat out instantly and she was unenthusiastic about crackers and bread. Alarmed
that what was basic to their diet was not acceptable, Calum rushed down into
the 'ponics section of the life-support module and gathered up a variety of
leafy greens. She grabbed the lettuce and crammed it into her mouth, reaching
for the chard, which she nibbled more delicately before going on to the carrot
and the radish. When she had had enough to eat, she wiggled out of Gill's arms
and toddled off-right to the nearest interesting instrument panel and set a
danger sensor blaring before Gill swooped her out of harm's way and Calum
corrected her alteration.
She
looked frightened, the pupils in her silvery eyes slitted to nothing and her
little body rigid. She babbled something incomprehensible to them.
"No,
sweetie pie, no," Gill said, holding up a warning Finger to her.
"Understand me? Don't touch." And he reached out, almost touching the
panel and pulling his hand back, miming hurt and putting his fingers into his
mouth, then blowing on them.
The
slits in her eyes widened and she said something with a questioning inflection.
"No!"
Gill repeated, and she nodded, putting both hands behind her back.
"Ah,
it's a grand intelligent wee bairn, so she is," Calum said approvingly,
smiling as he stroked her feathery-soft hair.
"Should
we show her the head, d'you suppose?" Rafik asked, regarding her nether
regions, which were covered with a light fur.
"She
doesn't have the equipment to use our head," Gill said, "unless she's
a he and he's hiding what he uses." Gill began fingering his beard,
"which meant he was thinking. "She eats greens like a grazing animal.
..."
"She's
not an animal!" Calum was outraged by the suggestion.
"But
she does eat greens. Maybe -we should show her the 'ponics section. We've got
that bed we use for the radishes ..."
"And
you just gave her the last of the radishes...." Rafik's tone was
semi-accusatoiy.
"She's
not feline or canine," Gill went on. "In fact, sweet-looking kid as
she is there's something almost. . . equine about her."
Rafik
and Calum hotly contested that category while she became quite restless,
looking all around her.
"Looks
to me that she's as close to crossing her legs as a young thing can get,"
Gill went on. "We gottatry dirt."
They
did and she bent forward slightly and relieved herself, neatly shifting loose
dirt over the spot with her odd feet. Then she looked around at all the green
and growing things.
"Maybe
we should have brought the dirt to her," Gill said.
"Let's
get her out of here then," Rafik said. "We've fed and drained her and
maybe she'll go to sleep so we can all get back to the work -we should be
doing."
Indeed,
she was quite content to be led back to the open pod and crawled up into it,
curling herself up and closing her eyes. Her breathing slowed to a sleeping
rhythm. And they tiptoed back to their workstations.
The
debate about her future disposition, however, went on through an afternoon of
sporadic work, intermittently adjusting the great tethering cable around the
body of the asteroid and placing the augering tool in a new location.
AS-6-4-B1.3 might be rich in platinum-group metals, but it was making them pay
for its riches with a higher crushing coefficient than they'd anticipated. The
afternoon was punctuated by one or another miner taking his turn to suit up for
EVA in order to search out a slightly better location for the auger, to replace
a drill bit, or to clear the dust that clogged even the best-sealed tool from
time to time.
"Let's
call this asteroid Ass," Calum suggested after one such trip.
"Please,
Calum," Gill reproved him. "Not in front of the infant!"
"Very
well then, you name it."
They
were in the habit of giving temporary names to each asteroid they mined,
something a little more personal and memorable than the numbers assigned by
Survey-if any such numbers were assigned. Many of their targets were tiny
chondrites only a few meters across, too insignificant to have been located and
named in any flyby mission, but easy enough for the Khedive to ingest, crush,
and process. But AS-64-B1.3 was a large asteroid, almost too large for their
longest tether to hold, and in such cases they liked to pick a name that used
the initial letters of the Survey designation.
"Hazelnut,"
Gill threw out. Their unexpected guest was awake again and he was feeding her
another leaf of chard with carrots for afters.
"Wrong
initial letters."
"We'll
be Cockney about it. 'Azelnut. And you can allow me a ze for an ess, can't
you?"
"If
there were any point to it. Why are you so set on Hazelnut?"
"Because
she's a hard nut to crack!" Gill cackled and Calum smiled rather sourly.
The smallest of the three men, he -was the only one who could get inside the
workings of the drill while wearing full EVA gear, and the dust ofAS-64-B1.3
had sent him outside on this shift rather too often for him to find much
amusement in it.
"I
like that," Rafik said. "'Azelnut she is. And while you're enjoying
your way with words. Gill, what shall we name this little one? We can't just
keep calling her 'the child.'"
"Not
our problem," Calum said. "We'll be turning her over to Base soon
enough, -won't we?"
He
looked at the suddenly stony faces of his colleagues. "Well, we can hardly
keep her here. What will we do with a kid on a mining ship?"
"Have
you considered," Rafik said gently, "the probable cost of abandoning
operations on 'Azelnut and returning to Base at high delta-V?"
"At
the moment," Calum snapped, "I should be only too happy to leave
'Azelnut for some other fool to crack."
"And
to bring back the KheSive with less than half a payload? "
Calum s
pale lashes flickered as he calculated what they would make-or lose-on the trip
in that event. Then he shrugged in resignation. "All right. We're stuck
with her until we make our payload. Just don't assume that because I'm smaller
than you, you Viking giant, that I'm naturally suited to play nanny."
"Ah,
now," said Gill with great good humor, "the creature's walking and
toilet trained already, and she'll soon pick up our language-children learn
easily. How much trouble can one toddler be?"
"Add
that to your list of famous last words, will ya?" Calum remarked at his
most caustic when they found the youngling had uprooted a good half of the
'ponics vegetation, including the allimportant squashes and rhubarb, whose
large leaves provided much of the air purification.
Rafik
ran tests to see how much damage had actually been done to air quality. She'd
gone to sleep again and had awakened so quietly that none of them had been
aware of her movement until she wandered back in, flourishing cabbage leaves.
Calum and Gill replanted, watered, and tied up the pulled plants in an effort
to save as many as possible. The infant had evidently sampled everything,
pulling up those she particularly liked instead of leaving her mouth-sized bite
in leaf or stalk: she had eaten all the half-ripe legume pods, staples of
Rafik's preferred diet. These subsequently caused a diarrhea which upset her
almost more than it upset them. They spent a good hour arguing over a dose
sufficient to bind her back to normal. Body weight was the critical factor and
Rafik used the mineral scales to weigh her and then the powder. She spat out
the first dose. And the second, all over Gill. The third dose they got down her
by covering her rather prominent nostrils so that she had to open her mouth to
breathe-and thus swallow the medication. Once again, she didn't cry, but her
silverish eyes reproached them far more effectively than tears could.
"We
can't have her doing this again," Calum told Gill when they had finished
replanting the garden. Then Rafik came over, showing them the readout on the
atmosphere gauge.
"It
should be down, but it's up," he said, scratching his head and then
tapping the gauge to see if the needle moved. "Not so much as a stink of
excess COg in our air and we were about due for a good backwash."
"I
remember me mum putting a cage around me," Gill said, "when I would
get into her garden."
They
made one out of netting in a corner of the Khedive's, dayroom, but she was out
of that as soon as they turned their backs on her. So they netted the 'ponics
instead.
They
tried to find toys to amuse her with, but pots and pot lids to bang together
and an array of boxes to nest and bright colored cups and bowls did not divert
her long. She had to be attached to someone, somehow, which generally made
doing their separate tasks difficult, if not impossible.
"Dependence
transference," Rafik suggested pompously.
"This
is not in my job description," Gill said in a soft voice when she had
finally fallen asleep, small arms limp around his neck. Rafik and Calum helped
to remove her as gently as possible.
They
all held their breaths as they managed to lay her in the open pod, which
remained her nocturnal cradle.
"And
that's another thing," Gill said, still whispering, "she's growing by
the hour. She's not going to fit in that much longer. What the hell species is
she?"
"Born
more mature than human babies are," Rafik said. "But I can't find out
a damned thing in the Concordance or the Encycio, not even in the alien or the
vet entries."
"Look,
guys, I know we'll waste time and fuel, and we haven't got enough of a payload
to resupply if we go back to Base, but do we have the right to keep her out
here with us when someone might be looking for her? And Base might be able to
take care other better?"
Rafik
sighed and Calum looked away from Gill, everywhere else but at the sleeping
youngling.
"First,"
Rafik said, since he usually did this sort of logical setting out of facts,
"if anybody's looking for her, they'd be looking in this sector of space,
not at Base. Second, since we've agreed she is of an unknown alien species,
what possible expertise can Base supply? There aren't any books on how to look
after her, and we're the only ones with hands-on experience. And finally, we
Bon't have enough of a payload to refuel. We do have what looks like a real
find here, and I'm not about to let any hijackers take it away from us. We did
catch that ion trail last week, and it could very well be Amalgamated spies,
just checking up on us." Gill growled and Calum sniffed his poor opinion
of the competition. "Well, we'll just have to include her in the duty
roster. An hour on, two hours off. That gives us two crew working ..."
"And
one going off his nut..." Gill said, and then volunteered to take the
first duty.
"Ahahaha,"
Rafik waggled a slim finger at his crewmate, "we all work while she
sleeps."
Somehow
or other the scheme worked a lot better than any of them had any reason to
expect. In the first place, she learned to talk, which kept her, and her
current minder, occupied. She learned also to respect "no" and
brighten at "yes" and, when she was bored with sitting still, would
"yes" and "no" every object in the dayroom. She never again
touched a "no." The third day, it was Rafik who brought out the markers
and "dead" computer printouts. He showed her how to hold the
implement and, while she could not manage her digits as he did, she was very
shortly drawing lines and squiggles and looking for approval at each new
design.
"You
know," said Calum, when called upon to admire her handiwork, "looks a
lot like the stuff on her egg. How mature was she born, d'you think?"
That
sent all three comparing her efforts with the egg inscription, but they finally
decided that it was pure chance and how would a youngling know script at such
an early age. So they taught her to print in Basic, using the now-standard
figures. She outdid them shortly by repeating the computer printout programming
language.
"Well,
she prints what she sees a lot of."
The big
discovery, and the treat could take up to an hour, was bathing her.
"You
gotta bathe all kids regularly. Hygiene," Rafik said, pausing to grin at
her as she splashed the water in the big galley sink. She still fit in it at
that point. "I know that much."
"Yeah?
With water on board for three and she makes four and drinks a lot, we'll be in
deep kimchee on water quality soon," Gill said sourly.
"All
sink water's recycled," Calum reminded them just as the youngling dipped
her face in the bathwater and blew bubbles. And then drank the bubbles.
"No, sweetie, don't drink the bathwater. Dirty."
"Actually
it isn't," Rafik remarked, looking at the clear liquid in which their
charge sat.
"Has
to be. I soaped her good." Calum peered in and the metal bottom was
clearly visible. "That's impossible. There should be lather and she'd got
her kneecaps dirty crawling on the floor and she got her fingers messed up
drawing before that. They're all clean now, too."
"Just
a jiff," Rafik said, and went off for one of his many diagnostic tools. He
inserted it in the bathwater and gawked at the reading. "This stuff is one
hundred percent pure unadulterated H2O. In fact it's a lot purer than what I
used to make coffee this morning."
"But
you saw me soap her," Calum said in a defensive tone. "I washed her
because she was dirty."
"Which
neither she nor the water is now." Rafik immersed the diagnostic tool
again. "I dunno."
Calum
got a crafty expression on his face. "Done a reading on our air
lately?"
Rafik
grimaced. "In fact I did, like I'm supposed to this time of day."
"Well?"
Gill's voice rose in a prompt when Rafik delayed an answer -while scratching
his head.
"Not
a sign of excess carbon dioxide, and with four of us breathing air, there
should be some traces of it by now. Especially as we don't have quite as many
broad-leafed plants in 'ponics because she," he pointed at her,
"likes them better than anything else."
The
three men regarded their small charge, who was bubbling her crystal clear
bathwater, greatly enjoying this innocent occupation.
"Then
there's that sort of horn thing in the middle of her forehead," Gill
remarked. "Unicorns were supposed to purify water."
"Water
maybe," Calum agreed as he had been brought up with some of the same fairy
tales as Gill, "but air?"
"Wa-ter?"
the youngling said, dropping her jaw in what they now recognized as her smile.
"Air?" she added, though it came out in two syllables,
"ayir."
"That's
right, baby, water and air. The two things both our species can't live
without," Rafik said, sighing at the puzzle of her.
"Let's
call her Una," Gill suggested suddenly into the silence.
"I
don't like it," Rafik said, shaking his head. "We're in the As, you
know, not the Us."
"Acorna?"
Calum. "Sure beats 'baby' and youngling' and 'sweetums.'" He glanced
sideways at Gill, whom he had overheard addressing his charge with what Calum
thought a nauseating euphemism.
"Acorna?"
Rafik considered. "Better than Una." He picked up a cup, dipped it in
the clear bathwater, and as he made to pour it over her head. Gill grabbed it
out of his hand.
"You
ain't even Christian," he said-and, pouring the water over her head,
"I dub thee Acorna."
"No,
no, you twit," Calum said, taking the cup from his hand and dipping it in.
"I baptize thee Acorna. I'll stand as godfather."
"You
-will not. I will."
"Where
does that leave me?" Rafik demanded. Acorna stood up in the sink, and only
his quick movement kept her from falling out of the improvised bath.
"Holding
the baby," Gill and Calum said in unison. Calum handed him the towel.
They
had learned to dry off as much moisture as possible because, once set on her
feet again, Acorna tended to shake herself and there was too much equipment
about that did not need daily sprinklings.
The
Khedive had cracked and digested 'Azelnut and was on her way to DF-4-H3.1, a
small LLchondrite that should have a high enough concentration of valuable
metals to make up the payload for this trip, when the first announcements from
Base reached them.
"Summary
of proposed adjustments to shareholder status ..." Gill scowled at the
reader. "Why are they sending us this garbage? We're miners, not
pixel-pushers or bean-counters!"
"Let
me see that." Rafik snapped his fingers at the console. "Hardcopy,
triple!"
"Wasting
paper," Calum commented. "Acorna needs more scratch paper to mark
on," Gill said.
"And
if this is what I think it is," Rafik added, "you two will be wanting
to read it for yourselves, not to wait for me."
"Whatever
it is," Gill said in disgust after peering at his printout, "it's
wrapped up in enough bureaucratic double-talk that we'll have to wait for you
to interpret anyway, Rafik."
"Not
all of it," Calum said slowly. "This paragraph-" he tapped his
own hardcopy-"says that our shares in Mercantile Mining and Exploration
are now worth approximately three times what they were when we left Base."
Gill
whistled. "For news like that, they can wrap it up any way they
please!"
"And
that paragraph," Calum went on, "says that they have become nonvoting
shares."
"Is
that legal? Oh, well, for three times the money, who cares? We didn't have
enough shares between us to make a difference anyway."
Calum
was blinking furiously as he translated the announcement into numbers without
bothering to consult the voice calculator. "The net worth of our shares
has increased by a factor of threepoint-two-five, actually. But if -we had ever
voted our shares in a block, our interest in MME would have been sufficient to
influence a close-run policy decision."
"I
believe," Rafik said in an oddly strangled voice, "that if you two
will stop jingling your pocket change and look at the last page, you will
observe the important part of this announcement. It seems MME has been
acquired. By Amalgamated."
Gill
flipped through his hardcopy. "Says here it's a merger, not an
acquisition."
Rafik
shrugged. "When the tiger executes a merger with the goat, which one walks
away?"
"Ah,
it's nothing for us to be concerned about," Gill said. "We hadn't
enough shares to be worth the voting anyway, Calum, and besides, we were never
around for their AGMs when we could vote. And it says right here that nothing
is going to change in the way the company is run."
Rafik
shrugged again. "They always say that. It's a sure sign that heads are
about to roll."
"Back
on Base? Sure. But that won't affect us." "Not immediately, no."
"Oh,
quit spouting doom and gloom, Rafik. Since when do you know so much more about
the ways of big business than the rest of us? Like I said, we're miners, not
pixel-pushers."
"My
uncle Hafiz," Rafik said demurely, "is a merchant. He has explained
some of these matters to me. The next announcement should follow within
twenty-four to thirty-six hours Standard. That will be the company's change of
name. The restructuring and the first revised organizational chart will occur
somewhat later, but still well
before
we reach Base-especially if you still intend mining Daffodil before our
return."
"I'm
beginning to think we should rename DF-4-H3.1 Daffy, in your honor,
Rafik," Gill said. "You can't possibly predict all that."
"Wait
and see," Rafik suggested. "Or to make it more amusing, how about a
small wager? I'll give you odds of-umm-three to two that you'll not recognize
the old MME by the time we bring the Khedive, in again."
Calum
grinned. "Not very good odds, Rafik, for someone who claims to be as
certain as you are of the outcome!"
Rafik's
brown lashes swept down across his face as demurely as any dancing girl in his
ancestors' harems could have looked. "My uncle Hafiz," he murmured,
"also kept racing horses. He instructed me never to bet on longer odds
than I had to."
"And
even if they do reorganize," Gill went on, "we're independent
contractors, not staff employees. It won't affect us."
"Remembering
some of your other famous last words, Gill," Calum said unhappily, "I
rather wish you hadn't said that."
The
Khedive stayed out much longer than their original prospecting plan filed -with
MME. A case of finding Daffodil nearly as lucrative as 'Azelnut and covering a
wider area. Since their water remained pure and their air remarkably clear of
CO2, they really were not at all pushed.
Acorna
also supplied diversion enough to keep all three men from feeling any need to
seek fresher companions. Though their arguments about her upbringing slowly
verged on the "what'll we teach her today" rather than physical
concerns, the debates usually occurred while she was sleeping. She did require
a good deal of sleep, growing out of nap times to at least ten hours in the
hammock they devised as her sleeping accommodation. Once asleep, she was
impervious to noise - except for the one time a thruster misfired and set off
the hooter and she was wide awake in an instant and standing by her assigned
escape pod. (Rafik had put her original pod in it, "just in case"
he'd said, and the others had concurred. As there were only three pods on the
Khedive, and Calum was the smallest of the miners, he would share hers.) So
they would discuss her lessons quite freely and sometimes at the top of their
lungs.
Such
EVA work as was needed was generally accomplished when she was asleep, or so
involved with her "studying" she didn't notice that one of them was
gone.
"We're
going to have to train her out of such dependence, you know," Rafik said
one night. "I mean, when we get back to Base, we'll each have duties that
will separate us, and she's got to learn that having just one of us around is
okay, too."
"How
do we do that?" Calum wanted to know.
"Start
doing short EVAs while she's awake, so she sees us going and coming back. I
think once she realizes that we do come back, she'll settle
down
more," Rafik said, shaking his head and casting a sorrowful glance to
where she swayed slightly in her hammock. "Poor tyke. Losing her family to
who knows what. Small wonder she needs to see all of us all the time."
They'd
been giving her lessons in Basic, naming everything in the KheSive for her. At
first she had reciprocated-at least they thought that -was what she was
doing-with sounds in her own language. But since her words sounded like nothing
they'd ever heard before and their efforts to repeat them were dead failures,
she soon began accepting and using their vocabulary.
"Just
as well," said Gill.
"A
pity for her to lose her original language," Calum said, "but she's
so young, I doubt she had that much command of it anyway."
"Well,
she sure knew how to say ..." and Gill spelled the word out rather than
upset Acorna by hearing it spoken.
"Awi?"
she said aloud in response. The look of expectancy in Acorna's eyes as she
looked toward the airlock of the KheSive nearly had the tenderhearted Gill in
tears.
"She
can spell?" Rafik exclaimed, grasping the important facet of that
incident. "Hey, there, Acorna baby, what does R-A-F-I-K spell?"
Diverted,
she pointed her whole hand, the digits closed as was her habit, at Rafik and
said his name.
"And
G-I-L-L?"
"Gill."
She made the odd noise through her nostrils which the men had identified as her
laugh.
"C-A-L-U-M?"
demanded the last of her parent figures.
"Calum!"
Now she drummed her closed hands on the table and her feet on the floor, her
expression of high happiness.
A good
bit of that day's segment went into a spelling lesson. That evening produced
the knowledge that she had assimilated the alphabet, and with only a little
help from her friends, she began to print what she spelled.
"In
a ten-point type, gentlemen, if you will examine the evidence," Calum
said, holding up one of the sheets she had covered with her delicately wrought
script.
"What's
so amazing about that?" Rafik asked, turning the sheet to the other side
where the printout words were also in ten point type.
"How
much has she absorbed?"
"Damn,"
Acorna said very clearly as the writing implement she was using ran dry.
"I'd
say more than enough, mates," Gill said, "and he who uses foul
language will pay one half credit to the box for every foul-mouthed syllable
uttered from this point onward." He picked up an empty disk box, started
to write FOUL MOUTH on it when Acorna, reading it, repeated the legend. He
erased it hastily and wrote FINE instead.
"What
is 'fine'?" Acorna asked.
That's
when they showed her how to access the Khedive's, reference programs. She had a
bit of trouble getting her oddly shaped fingers to hit just the keys she wanted
until Rafik made up a keyboard with spacings appropriate to her manual
dexterity.
If
improving this new skill kept her occupied so that they could get on with their
professional work and more beneficiated ore was sacked and stored in the drone
carrier pods that festooned the exterior of the Khedive, she totally confounded
them three days later.
"Cargo
pods are nearly two-thirds full. What. . . when they are three-thirds
full?"
"Say
what?" Rafik asked, blinking at her.
"I
think she's trying to ask what we'll do then. We take the three-thirds full
pods back to Base, get paid for them, resupply the ship, and come back for
more," Calum replied, trying to speak in a nonchalant tone.
"But
Daffodil is more than three-thirds cargo pods."
"Well,
you know, we send the iron and nickel back by the mag drive. The ship's own
payload is merely the metals too valuable to send that way," Calum explained,
as if he really expected Acorna to understand him.
"Platinum
is val-uble."
"That's
right."
"Then
palladium and rhodium and ruthenium is val-uble."
"Are,"
Calum corrected absently.
Rafik
had straightened. "Did you hear that? She knows the platinum-group
metals!"
"And
why not?" Gill retorted. "Doesn't she hear us talking about them all
the time?"
Acorna
stamped her foot to get back their attention. "Osmium is val-uble. Iridium
is val-uble. Rhenium is not val-uble."
"Rhenium
isn't one of the platinum group," Calum corrected her, "but at the
moment, thanks to the boom in proton accelerometers, it is very valuable
indeed."
Acorna
frowned. "Not mining rhenium."
"We
would if there was any on Daff, I assure you, honey."
"Rhenium
is. Deep."
"No,
love. Daffodil's regolith is rich in platinum-group metals, but low in iron and
the minor metals, including rhenium. We could tell that from spectroscopic
analysis and . . . um, other instruments," said Gill, who left the
technical task of deciding which asteroids were likely candidates to Calum
whenever he could. "That's why we're miners, hon. This is our job. And we
are very lucky to have found Daffodil. 'Azelnut was good, but the Daff's been
better for us."
"Deep!"
Acorna insisted. "Use auger. Drill. Find rhenium, go back soon. Then go
somewhere new?"
"To
find your folks?"
Acorna's
eyes narrowed and she looked down an elegant but definitely equine nose at her
closed hands.
"Honey,
one of the reasons we've stayed out so long is to make enough money to do a
real good galactic search for your folks. Your Awi. Was Awi the only one in
your ship?"
"No.
Lalli there, too."
"Your
mother and father?" Gill asked, hoping that now her comprehension of Basic
was so good, she might be able to make the leap to translating her mother
tongue.
"No,
Awi and Lalli."
"Nice
try. Gill," Rafik said, laying a sympathetic hand on his arm.
"By
the way, hon, three-thirds full is all full. Three-thirds make one," Calum
said, seeking to distract her from her sad contemplation of her hands.
"Thirds are fractions."
"Fractions?"
Her head came up.
"Parts
of a whole. There're all kinds of fractions, halves and quarters and fifths and
sixths and lots and lots, and when you have two halves, you have a -whole. When
you have four quarters, you have a whole."
"And
five fives is a whole, too?" Her eyes were wide again as she grasped the
concept. "What is the smallest? One and one?"
"We
also got us a mathematical genius," Rafik said, throwing up his slim
fingered hands in humorous awe.
One
mathematical concept led to another, and it wasn't long before Acorna was
accessing algebraic equations. Calum, muttering something about leaving no
regolithic grain unturned, bullied the others into using the tether and auger
to go beneath the fine, friable rubble of Daffodil's outer layers.
"Why
not teach her something useful? Like how to watch the catalytic converter
gauges and switch over at the right temps?" Rafik asked. "Then I'd
get to go out with you guys on EVAs and she'd have less of this dependency
thing."
"I
think," Calum said in awed tones, "she was born knowing more useful
things than we can imagine." He was inspecting the latest drilling samples
by remote control. "Look at this analysis, will you?"
"Rhenium
and hafnium," Rafik said slowly, bending over the screens. "High
concentrations, too. If the drill keeps bringing up this quality of ore, we can
make our payload and be back at Base sooner than if we keep working the surface
regolith for platinum. And the load will be richer by~"
"Forty-two
point six five percent," Calum said, blinking absently. "She dalS)
there was rhenium down deep, you know."
"Daffodil
shows as an undifferentiated asteroid. There've been no atmospheric processes
to move deposits. Logically, the deep rock should be the same metals, in the
same concentration, as the surface regolith . . . just harder to get at."
"Logically,"
Gill retorted, "looking at this analysis, it isn't. There just may be a
few things the cosmologists don't know yet. But I'd give a pretty penny to know
how you knew, Acorna acushla. I think we'd better teach her the rest of the
metals, gentlemen, so she knows what to tell us about from now on. And as for
dependency ..." Gill snorted. "Once you made her her own keyboard,
she undepended herself, or hadn't you two noticed?"
"Some
are born to be hackers, and some ain't," Rafik said.
"Well,
it won't hurt to try, now will it?" was Gill's retort, but he was as proud
of Acorna as they all were. "We're not doing so bad as parents, are we.
"How
mature was she born?" Calum asked, almost plaintively. "She's only
been aboard for ..." He had to access the log for the date she'd been
recovered. "Hey, twelve months and fifteen days!"
"A
year?" Rafik repeated astonished.
"A
year!" Gill cried. "Hell, we forgot her birthday!"
The
other two, tight-lipped with anger, pointed to the FINE jar, which hadn't
actually been fed for some time.
Purely
superficial changes," Gill said as
the Khedive arrived within visual
range of the old MME Base. "You'll not claim your winnings on the basis of
a few cosmetic details, will you now, Rafik?"
"I
should be delighted," Rafik said, "not to claim them at all."
No
announcement of any reorganization had reached them, but the MME logo that had
once decorated both sides of each docking gate had been replaced by a much
larger sign reading, AMALGAMATED MANUFACTURING. Instead of Johnny Greene's
cheerful greeting, they had been read into position by something with a dry
mechanical voice that refused to give its name and complained about their
failure to introduce themselves with "the Amalgamated protocol,"
whatever that might be.
The
docking bay itself was much the same,
but
immediately within the double airlock doors leading to the interior of Base
they were met by the owner of the dry voice, still complaining about their
failure to use the Amalgamated protocol.
"Look,
mate," Gill said, "like the pilot here told you-" he nodded
toward Calum "-we're the Khedive, on contract to MME, and we didn't get
word of any new approach and docking protocol. If you chaps wanted us to use
something new, why didn't you send us the rules?"
"Violation
of regulations to send classified company protocols via unsecured space
transmissions."
"The
ancient Americans had a phrase for it," Rafik said, smiling slightly.
"Something about a twenty-two catch, I believe."
"And
where's Johnny Greene?" "Redundant."
"And
just what is that supposed to mean?" Gill's voice had grown loud enough to
echo down the corridors. A young woman in a pale blue coverall, her fair hair
drawn back into a bun, hurried forward with one hand raised.
"Eva
Glatt," she introduced herself, holding out one small hand,
"TT&A-that's Testing, Therapy, and Adjustment Department. The
consolidation of MME with Amalgamated has resulted in a number of
organizational changes for efficiency, Mr.-Giloglie, is it? I've come to take
charge of the child."
"She
is in our charge," Gill said. "Oh, but surely you won't want to be
bothered with her while you're filling out the docking protocol forms and
reregistering the KheSive as an Amalgamated ship. I've prepared everything,
though your message did not give us much time to make ready."
Raflk
and Calum had convinced Gill that it would be tactful to tell Base something
about the enigma they were bringing back from this latest expedition, but they
had all waited until they were on the way back from Daffodil, just in case Base
had any ideas about issuing an immediate recall.
"And
Dr. Forelle himself wishes to inspect the pod in 'which she was found and your
tapes of the initial contact," Eva went on. "I'll just have that
material brought off the ship and taken to him while you're reregistering
yourselves, shall I? And you can come with me, you poor baby." She knelt
and held out her hand to Acorna, who put both hands behind her own back and
stepped back a pace, narrowing her pupils to vertical slits.
"Not,"
she said with emphasis. "Complete sentences, Acorna acushia," Gill
said with a sigh.
"Now,
dear," Eva Glatt said brightly, "you'll be very bored staying here
with your nice uncles while they do all that tedious paperwork. Wouldn't you
like to come along to the creche and play some nice games?"
Acorna
glanced at Rafik. He gave a small nod and she relaxed her guarded pose
slightly. "Will go," she said. "Short!"
"There,
you see," Eva Glatt said, straightening, "it's just a matter of
elementary psychology. I'm sure she'll be quite docile and trainable."
"That
woman," said Gill as Eva led Acorna off, "is an idiot."
"She
said something about a creche," said Rafik. "Acorna might enjoy being
with some other children for a change. And I do have a presentiment that the
next hour or so will be boring in the extreme."
While
Gill, Raflk, and Calum worked their way through questionnaires demanding
everything from grandmother's middle name to preferences in basic food groups.
Dr. Alton Forelle skimmed through the ship's log of Acorna's first utterances
half a dozen times.
"Again!"
he snapped, and his assistant, Judit Kendoro, obediently replayed the first
segments of that haunting cry.
"Idiots,"
Forelle said cheerfully. "Why couldn't they have recorded everything she
said? Why did they have to interfere by an attempt to overlay Basic Universal
speech patterns? There's not nearly enough data here to analyze."
"There's
enough to tell that she was just a lost baby crying for somebody she
knew," said Judit softly. She thought she might be reduced to-tears
herself if she had to listen to that wail of "Awi, awi!" any longer.
Forelle
shut off the player. "You're anthropomorphizing, Judit," he said.
"How can we presume to interpret an alien speech merely from inflection
and situation? We shall have to make a thorough syntactic and semantic analysis
before any conclusions at all are valid."
"And
just how are we going to do that," Judit said, "when she's been with
these people for over a year, exposed to Basic Universal and forgetting her own
speech patterns?"
"We'll
regress her to the time when she was found, of course," Forelle replied,
as if that should have been assumed. "The technique is simple enough, and
with the right drugs, no one resists a regression. From the number and sequence
of sounds she was making when they found her, she must have had some mastery of
her native language at that time. The information is still there, simply
overlaid by recent experiences. We have only to strip off the overlay."
Judit
made a small, involuntary gesture. Even adults who had volunteered for the
process found a full regression terrifying. What would it be like for this
child? "You'll halt the process, of course, if she appears
traumatized?"
"Of
course," Forelle assured her. "But you mustn't be so tender. We must
have as much evidence as possible to back up this discovery. If she is a
sapient alien, speaking a language totally unrelated to any human tongue,
whatever we can learn of that language will be of inestimable scientific value.
We can't let individual concerns stand in the way of Science."
"And
publication," Judit said dryly.
"Oh,
don't worry about that," Forelle said. "If you help me with the
child, I shall certainly list you as one of the coauthors. And you must bear
the other possibility in mind, too. If she's just a deformed mutant gabbling
some known tongue in a way we didn't recognize from the log, what fools we
should look, announcing the discovery of the first true alien language! We
can't risk that, can we?" He smiled into space and went on, more to
himself than to Judit, "Its high time linguistics came into its own as a
scientific discipline. We've been ridiculously hobbled all these years by a
squeamish reluctance to experiment on human beings. Why, the entire
critical-period theory of language learning could have been settled generations
ago if someone had just had the fortitude to isolate a few dozen babies from
human speech for ten or twenty years. It would be a beautifully controlled
experiment, you see-take a child out every six months and expose it to
language, and when they stop responding, you know the critical period has
passed. Of course, one wouldn't want to contaminate the test subjects by
returning the exposed children, and one has to allow for sickness, and the need
to duplicate results, so rather a large initial test group would be required.
I'm sure that's why my request for funding was turned down. Governments are so
shortsighted about pure research. But this time I won't need to wait for a
grant. I've got the subject right here, at least I shall have as soon as that
Glatt female is through with her puerile tests, and Amalgamated's
psycho-socialization lab is perfectly equipped for the examination."
Judit
Kendoro bit her lip and reminded herself that she had been lucky to get out of
the factories of Kezdet, lucky to win one of the very few technical school
scholarships set aside for indigent students, even luckier to have a good job
with Amalgamated that had paid off her sister Mercy's bond and would, given
just a few more months, see her little brother Pal through school and into a
job of his own. Even forgetting the other considerations that kept her at
Amalgamated, no one could possibly expect her to throw away all those years of
hard work just because some foundling child might be scared by reliving a
traumatic incident of her past. Besides, what could she do?
"I'll
just see how they're getting on with the child at TT&A," she said.
Dr.
Forelle smiled. "Good idea. They've had her quite long enough. And you
might bring the test results with you . . . not that I expect much from the
clumsy, outmoded instruments that Glatt woman uses."
"We've
completed the forms," Gill said, leaning over Eva Glatt's desk, "and
we've come for Acorna. If you could just show us the way to the creche?"
Eva
looked surprised. "Oh, you can't take her now!"
"Why
not? She may be enjoying the chance to play with the other children, but I'm
sure she will be wanting to see us by now."
"Playing?
Other children? I'm afraid you have misunderstood. We've just begun testing her
mental and psychological capacity. She'll be in tests most of this day. Most of
the week, probably. You wouldn't be spending any more time with her in any
case."
"We
would not?" repeated Rafik. "I am sorry, that is not
acceptable."
"She
is used to us," Calum said hastily, trying to smooth things over,
"and . . . we're kinda used to her, too. We figured, unless you located
her people, she could just stay on with us. She's already lost her parents. She
doesn't need to lose us, too."
Eva
Glatt laughed merrily. "How sweet! But you really couldn't expect to
retain care of her, could you? Three mining engineers, isolated for years at a
time . . . I'm sure you've done your best, but you hardly have the training and
expertise to solve her special problems."
"Acorna
doesn't have any special problems," Calum said angrily. "She's a
perfectly delightful little girl, and we Like taking care of her. Oh, I'm not
saying we might not have handed her over to a Company creche if we'd been able
to at the beginning. But she's been with us nearly two years now. We're her
family. Of course we expect to continue taking care of her."
Eva
laughed again. "Don't be ridiculous. Even if the situation were not
obviously unsuitable, your PPPs would invalidate any application for formal
guardianship."
"PPPs?"
Rafik repeated.
"Personal
Psychological Profiles," Eva deigned to elucidate. "I pulled up the
Amalgamated psych files on you. All three of you are classified as maladaptive
personalities who are drawn to a lonely, high-risk profession such as asteroid
prospecting by a combination of self-destructive traits and romantic
thrill-seeking - "
"Excuse
me," Rafik interrupted, "I do not, myself, recall that this company
has administered any psychological tests to me. Calum? Gill?"
The
other two men shook their heads.
"You
just filled out the personnel forms," Eva said patiently. "The
computer analysis was routed to my mailbox immediately, since your personality
problems may have a bearing on the child's psychological problems. The results
are much as I expected."
"Psychology!
When we contracted with MME," Gill said", "we reported to the
Director of Alining Engineering, who was more interested in whether we knew how
to handle an ultra-lowtemp vacuum blasting unit than in what we saw in the
inkblots."
"An
outmoded attitude," Eva said. "Amalgamated considers it of vital
importance to see that only socially well-adapted personnel are retained in the
trying conditions of space."
"And
exactly how," Rafik inquired sweetly, "did you come to this . . .
conclusion . . . about our personalities?"
"It's
self-evident," Eva said. "Why else would you expose yourselves to the
risks and loneliness of such a career, when you all score high enough in
SGIQ-Stabilized Generalized Intelligence Quotient-and have more than enough
education to obtain much better-paid administrative positions right here at
company headquarters?"
"More
money," Calum agreed gravely, "and the benefits of psychologically
designed decor. Why indeed?"
Eva
looked at him uncertainly. "I . . . I'm glad you agree with me. You
understand, then. The child is severely deformed and probably retarded as well
- "
A
hissing noise distracted her for a moment, until Rafik took Gill by the elbow.
"Do not interrupt, my friend," he said. "We are all most
interested in the lady doctor's evaluation of Acorna, are we not?"
"By
height and weight charts, she is a reasonably well-nourished
six-year-old," Eva said, "but on the SLI-Standardized Language
Interaction-she scored as a low two."
"By
my own experience," countered Gill, "she was an infant when we found
her, and that was less than two years ago. She can't be more than three or four
years old."
"And
her understanding of language is excellent," Calum added. "If she's
lagging in expressive speech, it is probably because her brain is not wired for
human language; she's having to learn it analytically, not naturally as a human
infant would."
"I'm
glad to see you admit she has brain problems," Eva said quickly.
"Differences,"
Calum said, "not problems."
Eva
fussed with her desk console for a moment. "Given the degree of language
retardation, -we next administered the Colquhoun ColorMatching Test, which is
of course designed for much younger children. She displayed notable clumsiness
in operating the cursor-"
"Her
fingers are lacking a joint," Rafik pointed out. "Of course she has
trouble with equipment designed for human hands. What are you testing for,
intelligence or manual dexterity?
"The
two have long been shown to be linked," Eva retorted. "Every fool
knows that a child is not ready for reading or computation until he can hop a
straight line on one foot; it's one of the standard creche-readiness
tests."
"Aye,
I'm sure that is one of the things every fool knows," Gill agreed with a
heavy irony that escaped Eva. "Did you test her intelligence at all?"
"Did
you ask her to write a simple program for carbonyl reduction?"
"Or
to calculate the concentration of platinum group metals in the regolith of an
E-type chondrite?"
"Don't
be ridiculous!" Eva snapped. "Even if the child could perform such
tasks, she must have learned them by rote. Doing such extremely
age-inappropriate things is another sign of the social maladjustment -we will
cure after her deformities have been corrected. If she is to develop into an
adaptively competent personality, her upbringing must be entrusted to experts
who will understand how to help her compensate for her disabilities without requiring
excessive achievement from her."
"And
exactly -what did you have in mind?" Rafik inquired politely.
"Well,
I-she must be tested more thoroughly first, of course-but I see no reason why
she should not be trainable to hold a minimum responsibility position in a
sheltered workspace."
"Stacking
trays in the company cafeteria," Gill said.
"Or
folding linen," Calum suggested.
Eva
flushed. "I'm not a miracle worker," she snapped. "You've
brought me a deformed, retarded child who has already suffered the effects of
nearly two years in a socially maladaptive environment."
"I
would not, myself, be so quick to be assuming the child is retarded," said
Calum. "Once you take your eyes away from the psychological tests long
enough to observe that she is not human which any competent biologist could
verify for you-perhaps you will begin to understand that differences are not
the same as defects. And yes, she has some problems with language and with
manipulating equipment designed for humans. So? In any other field. Dr. Glatt,
the expert is the one who knows how to solve problems, not the one who wails
that they're unsolvable."
A gleam
of triumph appeared in Eva Glatt's eyes. "As a matter of fact," she
said sweetly, "I am already preparing to solve some ot the child's
problems. There's no known surgical correction for the hand problem, but that
disfiguring excrescence in the middle of her forehead can easily be
removed."
"That-you
mean you want to cut off her horn?" Gill exploded. "Woman, have you
lost your wits? That's not a deformity; it's an integral part of her."
"Amalgamated's
on-site med team is quite capable of administering a local anesthetic and tying
off any blood vessels that have infiltrated the deformity," Kva said
primly.
"I
think you do not understand." Rafik leaned over Eva's desk, his dark eyes
flashing with intensity. "Acorna is ... not . . . human. Differences are
not deformities. And her race Uife^ that horn. We've already learned that she
can use it to purify air and water, and we suspect it's integral to her
metal-sensing abilities."
Eva
sighed. "I think you three have been Isolated too long. You're beginning
to hallucinate. What you suggest is not scientifically possible."
"We
speak from our own experience," Calum said.
Eva
fapped at her desk console. "In my capacity as head of TT&A, I shall
recommend extended leave and a course of psychological adjustment for all of
you before you are allowed to take out company property such as the KheSlve
again. My evaluation shows that you are not only socially maladaptive but
seriously delusional."
Gill
began to hiss through his clenched teeth again, but Rafik stopped him.
"Never
mind the minor insults, Gill. The first priority is to stop this nonsense of
surgery on Acorna. The horn is an integral part of her. Without it she would be
crippled ... or worse. We will absolutely not, under any circumstances, give
permission for an operation."
"I
think you don't understand. Acorna is no longer your problem. After surgery and
remedial training, she is to be transferred to an orphanage pending
identification of the parents who abandoned her."
"The
devil she is!" Gill roared. "We're taking her back. Now. Are you
going to send for her, or do we go and get her?"
"She
was scheduled to go into surgery at 1330 hours," Eva Glatt said. She
glanced at her wrisi unit. "It's too late for you to make a fuss
now."
"Relax,
Gill," Calum said after checking his own unit. "It's only 1345 now.
They'll still be fiddling around with the anesthesia." He perched on the
corner of Eva Glatt's desk, one arm casually draped over her console. "But
I do think you had better tell us how to get to Surgery. Now!"
A young
woman with a wrist-thick braid of dark hair hanging over one shoulder stepped
into the office. "I believe I can help you gentlemen with that," she
said. Her chest rose and fell as though she had just been running, but her
manner was calm enough. "I'm going that way myself, as it happens."
"That,"
said Gill, "would be very helpful. We're in rather a hurry, though.
..." He steered the girl out into the hall, blocking her view of Eva
Glatt's desk, while Calum slipped behind the desk and stopped Eva from reaching
for one of the recessed buttons in the desk console. "Rafik, go on ahead.
I'll bring this one-keep her under my eye so that she doesn't get any ideas
about calling Security." He hauled Eva Glatt to her feet and clamped his
free hand over her mouth.
"Calum,"
Rafik interjected, "we do not have time to drag a captive with us. And we
do not wish to alarm our guard." Eva Glatt's eyes rolled up in her head as
he approached and she sagged limply against Calum's arm.
"Well,
that's solved," said Calum with relief. "She's fainted."
"No,"
Rafik said, "just weak with fear. I apologize for this," he told Eva,
who was now feebly struggling again, "but we do not have access to your
more scientific methods of quieting people." His fist tapped her forehead,
so quickly she could hardly have seen the blow coming, and this time she fell
back in the complete relaxation of true unconsciousness.
Gill
and the girl who'd offered to guide them were some distance ahead when they
came out of the office, walking at a pace just short of a jog through the long
curving corridor to the left. Rafik and Calum ran and caught up with them at an
intersection where they had paused for a moment.
"Running,"
the girl said severely, "is likely to draw attention. Just -walk as
quickly as you can manage. I gather you three are the men who brought the alien
foundling in, is that right?"
"At
least somebody around here understands she's not of our kind," Rafik said
as they racewalked down the hall. "Yes. Acorna is ours. Or we are hers.
Depending on how you look at it. And she must not be put through this surgery."
"Yes.
My boss-Dr. Forelle-wants it stopped, too. He was to have called ahead, to make
sure they delay until I get there with the orders to release her to our
department."
"Just
a minute!" Gill grabbed the girl by the upper arm. "She's to be released
to US, not to another department of this blasted company."
"You,"
said the girl without slackening pace, "can't get Eva Glatt's orders for
immediate surgery rescinded. I can."
"And
who might you be?" Rafik asked.
"Judit
Kendoro, Psycholinguistics. I work for Dr. Alton Forelle."
"Saints
defend us," Gill exclaimed, "is there nobody works for Amalgamated
but headshrinkers?"
"Amalgamated
decided to use the old MME base as headquarters for the research and personnel
departments," Judit explained. "They're phasing out the independent
mining operations; yours is one of the last contract groups to come in.
Deliveries will be handled by drone and routed to other stations from now
on." Despite the speed they were making, she wasn't even breathing hard.
"Forelle,"
Rafik said. "The man who wanted our logs of the first interaction?"
"Yes.
He believes-or hopes-she is a sapient alien."
"Then
he's on our side?"
"I
wouldn't say that exactly." Judit skidded to a halt just before a
three-way intersection with corridors painted in different patterns of yellow
and green stripes. "He doesn't want her put through surgery before he has
a chance to study her. What do you want with her?"
"To
take care of her," Gill said.
Judit
looked him up and down for a long moment, then turned to Rafik. "I believe
you mean that."
"Believe
it," said Rafik.
"Then
- " She glanced back the way they had come. Calum followed. Judit dropped
her voice. "Don't let Dr. Forelle get her. He'll mine her brain for memories
of language without caring what he does to the rest of her. It could be worse
than the surgery."
"Then
what can we do?"
"Is
your ship ready to take off?"
"We've
just docked, we'd fuel and air to spare, no repairs scheduled ..."
"Then
this," Judit said, "is what we do next." She outlined her idea.
"You
trust us easily," Rafik commented when she had finished.
"One
must trust someone," Judit said, "and . . . I had been listening for
a few minutes outside the door before I interrupted you in Dr. Glatt's office.
Incidentally, dare I hope that you gagged her?"
"No
time," Calum said, catching up with them. "Knocked her out."
"Good."
"If
you were, then you know something of us. But what do we know of you? Why should
you take this risk for us?" Gill demanded.
Judit
threw him a scornful glance. "Have you ever heard of Kezdet? "
Gill
shook his head.
"My
Uncle Hafiz," Rafik said, "recommended it as a place to be
avoided."
"Your
uncle was right. I got myself and my sister out of Kezdet," Judit said,
"and pretty soon I'm going to get my kid brother out. Besides . . . but
that doesn't concern you. Let's just say I have seen enough children suffering.
If I can save this one, maybe . . . maybe it'll make up for what I ignored in
order to get myself out."
A few
minutes later, Judit Kendoro walked through the swinging doors of Surgery and
presented her Amalgamated badge to the desk clerk. "Here to collect Child,
Anonymous, recent arrival on the KheVive," she said in a bored monotone.
"Dr. Forelle will have transmitted the orders."
The
clerk nodded and pressed a button. The doors behind her slid open and a tall
woman in sterile scrubs came out.
"I
wishh you people would make up your minds," she said. "We had to give
her a global anesthetic, the local didn't work. I could go ahead and get all
the restorative work done right now if Forelle would just wait a day."
Judit
shrugged. "It doesn't matter to me, I'm just the courier. You want her
back when we're done?"
"If
the order for surgery hasn't been canceled by some other department," the
woman snapped. "For now, take her with my compliments. I have enough real
patients without getting caught in some power struggle between the psych
departments."
She
nodded toward the room she had come from and a green-gowned aide wheeled out a
gurney on which Acorna lay limp and unconscious. The tangle of silvery curls
had already been shaved in a wide naked semicircle around her horn.
"I'll
take her on the gurney," Judit said in a bored tone, "no need for
your people to waste time with the transfer."
As soon
as Judit had control of the gurney, Rafik sprang forward and grabbed her from
behind. A plasknife slid out of his sleeve and gleamed across Judit's throat.
"Thanks
for showing us the way, dummy," he growled in his best threatening tones.
"We'll take the kid back now."
"You
can't do this! You tricked me!" Judit was a terrible actress; the words
came out as woodenly as someone reading a Basic literacy test.
"Raise
the alarm," Rafik threatened the desk clerk and surgeon, "and the
girl gets it. Keep quiet, and we'll let her go when we're safely away.
Understand?"
Gill
reached down to the gurney and swept Acorna up in one arm, and Calum held the
doors while he and Rafik and Judit made their exit.
"Is
she all right?" As soon as the doors swung shut behind them, Rafik dropped
the pretense of holding Judit at knife point. Now he was at Gill's side,
feeling for a pulse in Acorna's wrist.
"Breathing,"
Gill said. "We'll see about the rest when the anesthetic wears off. Judit,
is there anything we should know about that?"
She
shook her head. "Standard anesthesia. She'll be out an hour, maybe two,
depending on how long ago it was administered. Just as well, really. Gives you
time to get her back on shipboard without a fuss. ... I'd better go with you,
though. Keep the knife out, Rafik, and hold my arm. You may need a hostage
again."
"Which
way from here to the docking bay?" Gill asked.
"We
can take the service tunnels. Less chance of running into people." Judit
pressed a panel in the wall and a narrow inner tunnel opened before them,
barely wide enough to admit Gill with the burden of a sleeping Acorna.
They
reached the docking bay without incident. The bored, mechanical clerk who'd
replaced Johnny Greene hardly lifted his head when they came to his desk.
"Warn
personnel out of the bay and prepare the outer doors for opening," Calum
said. "KheDive departing immediately."
"Not
cleared," the clerk mumbled without looking up from his console.
"Please,"
Judit said in a shaky voice, "do what they say. He-he's got a knife."
This
got the clerk's attention. His head snapped up, he gave a startled look at the
plasknife in Calum's hand, and he dove under his desk. "Do -what you want,
just leave me out of it!"
"Well,
well," said Gill softly, "and here I
thought
the wee man might make trouble by trying to be a hero. Calum, d'you know the
docking system well enough to clear us for departure?"
"If
Amalgamated hasn't changed it too much," Calum said. "Here, hold
this." He handed the plasknife to Judit, who quickly handed it on to Gill.
"I'm a hostage, you idiots," she hissed.
Gill
laughed quietly and accepted the task of holding Judit "hostage."
Calum, having swiveled the desk console to face him, was oblivious to the
byplay. He brought up a series of screens in quick succession, nodding in
satisfaction. "Hmm," he said at the sight of the fifth screen.
"Hmm . . . Uh-huh. Okay, next, okay, uh-huh." He zipped through the
rest of the status screens and tapped in a command. "Okay, that clears us.
But there are a couple of little problems."
"Anything
that would keep us on the base?"
"No,
but. . ."
"Right.
We'll discuss them later. Come on! And Judit, act normal. The bay may be
cleared, but unless Amalgamated's remodeled, the loading staff can watch us
from the top gallery. We don't want any of the staff to notice you're being a
hostage."
"So
I'm not-a-hostage trying to act like a
hostage
trying to act not-a-hostage," Judit muttered as they passed through the
series of doors that protected the interior of Base when the docking bay was
open to space. "It's as bad as singing Cherubino, having to be a girl
pretending to be a boy pretending to dress up as a girl."
"You
like ancient opera?" Gill asked in surprise.
Judit
shrugged. "I was in a couple of amateur productions at school. My voice
isn't good enough to go professional. But one year we got Kirilatova to coach
us in Figure. She did Susanna, of course."
"Kirilatova?
But she's got to be about a hundred and ten by now!"
"Not
quite. She was seventy then," Judit said, "and when she sang Susanna,
if you had your eyes closed, she was a girl of twenty about to be married to
her beloved. It was an incredible performance. I wish I'd been born early
enough to hear her at her peak."
"I
have cubes," Gill said. "Early performances, originally preserved on
DCVCD, then transferred to tri-D when the new format came out."
"Are
you going to invite the girl up to listen to your opera cubes. Gill? How about
lifting Acorna up first?" There was an edge of sarcasm in Calum's voice.
They had crossed the open bay without incident while Gill and Judit talked
about dead singers.
"I
might at that," Gill said thoughtfully. He took Judit's hand. "You
could come with us. You don't belong with the psych-toads at Amalgamated, you
know. As the customer said to the Vassar girl in the brothel, what's a nice
girl like you doing in a place like this?" Judit shook her head. "As
the Vassar girl said to the customer, 'Just lucky, I guess.' I know nothing of
mining; I'd be useless cargo to you."
Calum,
who'd been on the verge of making that point, opened his mouth and shut it
again with an audible snap.
"You'd
better knock me out, too, before you go. The hostage act may not have been
totally convincing."
"After
all the help you've been? I couldn't bear to, acushla."
"It
will lend verisimilitude to an otherwise bald and unconvincing narrative,"
Judit said. "Look, I need this job. I can earn enough here to see Pal
through technical school. Anyway, I ... I have my reasons for staying with
Amalgamated. Now will you get on with it?"
"Can't,"
Rafik said. "You've no protection. If you're in this docking bay when we
open the doors, and not on the ship, you're dead. You "will have to walk
back through the inner doors. As soon as you're safe, -we'll take off. They
won't have time to cancel the clearing sequence."
Unexpectedly,
Judit laughed. "That fat little toad of a receiving clerk is probably
still under his desk, and nobody else knows anything's wrong . . . yet. But I
look too unharmed to have been the hostage of you brutal roughnecks. Give me
the knife. Gill." With rapid efficiency she sliced through her outer
coverall at the point where Gill had been pretending to hold the knife point
against her side, then pulled half the hair out of her braid and let it fall in
a dark cloud over the side of her face. "Do I look enough of a mess
yet?"
"You
look most beautiful," Gill said, "and I shall carry your memory with
me through the cold of space."
"Get
on with it, you two!" Calum snapped. "We've got Acorna webbed in. The
longer you spend chatting the girl up, the more chance of somebody noticing
something's wrong."
"That's
a brave girl," Gill said as he climbed on board the Khedive and strapped
himself in for takeoff. He watched Judit's halting progress across the floor of
the docking bay. "I hope that limp is part of the acting. ..."
"She
was moving just fine on the way to Surgery," Calum pointed out.
"Rafik! Systems ready? I want us in action the minute she's through the
first doors."
"Second
doors," Gill said firmly. "She's too valuable to risk."
"And
Acorna? Not to mention us? And the KheSive?"
"We'll
make it," Gill said -with confidence.
And
they did.
"Now
what?" Calum said when they were well away from Base.
Gill
shrugged. "Long term or short term? Long term, we've still got our skills
and our ship, and there are other companies to contract with or -we can go
independent. Short term . . . you said something about problems when you -were
humming over the console back there. What's our status?"
"Refueling
only partially complete, but that's no problem; -we've enough to make it back
into the asteroid belt, and once there, we can mine a carbonaceous chondrite to
supply hydrogen for the fuel converter."
"A
C-type chondrite will replenish our water and oxygen, too, if necessary,"
Rafik pointed out. "So what's the problem?"
"Food's
low. We're about to be temporary vegetarians."
"At
least one of us won't mind that," Gill said with a tender look at the net
where Acorna lay, moving just enough in her drugged sleep to reassure them all
that she would wake soon enough.
"And
we didn't get the replacement auger bits," Calum said. "'Azlenut
cracked most of them and Daffy just about finished the rest of the box off. Our
tether cables are worn, too. We were due for a good deal of refitting at
Base."
There
were more immediate complications than shortage of spare parts, as they learned
when they activated the com units.
"Just
receiving," Rafik advised them. "Transmitting would give away our
position."
"Ah,
they're not going to follow us out of sector for one little girl nobody had
claimed anyway."
"'Why
step on me?' the ant asked the elephant. 'Because I can, and because you have
annoyed me,'" Rafik answered obliquely. "It is not wise to annoy the
elephant."
"I've
got the. Base frequency," Calum announced. "You two might want to
listen in."
They
listened in tight-lipped anger to the repeated announcement being broadcast to
all Amalgamated bases and ships.
"They're
claiming the KheSive is stolen property!" Gill exploded. "They can't
do that! She's our ship, free and clear!"
"That
ghastly female said something about the Khedive being theirs," Calum said
thoughtfully. "Rafik, is there some legal mumbo-jumbo in the
reorganization that could possibly make it look like we had been leasing the
ship from them?"
"They
can claim whatever they want to," Rafik pointed out. "And if they
catch up with us, and we have to argue it out in the courts, who'll be taking
care of Acorna?" He smiled benignly at his colleagues. "We might be
well advised to take on a new identity."
"We
can call ourselves whatever we "want," Gill grumbled, "but the
ship's registered and known. ..."
Rafik's
smile was seraphic. "I might know someone who can take care of that little
matter for us. For a fee, of course."
"What
have we got to pay your someone with? I have a strong suspicion Amalgamated's
accountants are not going to credit us for all the iron and nickel we've been
sending back by drone," Calum said dourly. "And the platinum and
titanium are sitting in the Amalgamated shipping bay--wrapped up in our only
container nets!"
"We
have," Rafik said gently, "a large block of extremely valuable, if
nonvoting, shares of Amalgamated stock. I think Uncle Hafiz -will be willing to
convert it into local currency for us."
There
was a moment's pause, then Gill laughed and slapped his knee. "So
Amalgamated pays for the refit, after all! Good enough."
"We'll
be broke afterward," Calum grumbled.
"We'll
have our ship, our tools, and our skills," Gill said in high good humor.
"And Acorna! Never worry, man. There are asteroids out there richer than
anything we ever mined on contract. I can feel it in my bones."
"So,
onward to Uncle Hafiz?" Rafik asked, settling himself at the navigational
board and posing his fingers over the keys.
"Yeah.
Where is your famous Uncle Hafiz?"
"The
planet is called Laboue; the location is a family secret I'm not allowed to
divulge," Rafik said, already plotting in a course. He had completed it
and cleared the screen before either Gill or Calum could see what he had
entered. "Naughty, naughty!"
"Nauuughtie?"
a feeble little voice queried.
"Acorna,
sweetie," and Gill, being nearest, strode to her hammock. "Sorry,
hon, sorry. We had no idea at all what those idiots were going to do to our
little Acorna."
Her
pupils widened and the fear drained from her features, her hands and feet
opening in relief at finding herself back on board the Khedive and with them.
"That
stupid woman! Glad I decked her," Calum said.
"Very
stupid woman," Acorna agreed, nodding her head vigorously and then
moaning. "Oh, my head!"
"It'll
wear off, acushia," he said, and then added to Gill. "Get webbed.
We're about to go into the wild black yonder!"
Acorna
was very nervous for the next few days, so they all made a big effort to divert
her and promise, on their honors, that she'd never be left alone with stupid
strangers again. One of the few nonessential tasks that Calum had had time to
do, before they went to collect Acorna, was to pick up some seed from the
chandler. He was offered flowers, too.
"There
are quite a few decorative broad-leafed types, flowering, too, which do give
you some diversity in your 'ponics. Also some botanical oddities that do quite
well on nutrient solutions," he'd been told. "Quick growing."
While
he had been more interested in vegetables and edible legumes and some of the
new bean types, he also picked up alfalfa, timothy, and lucernes seeds,
remarking that he would be making a planetfall and was doing a favor for a
friend.
Setting
out the seeds and using the Galactic Botanical from the ship's library program
to figure out how to speed up their growth helped pass the time and increase
the variety of their meals. Acorna had read just as much as Calum and Gill had
of the GB and she very shortly told them she had the matter well in hand and
they were to please do something else.
"You
don't suppose she remembers stuff . . . racial memory?" Calum asked.
Gill
shrugged. "Who's to know? I did manage to check that blood sample we took
when she scraped her knee. She's not of a known genotype. Shit!" And he
obediently put a half credit in the FINE box. It joined its fellows with a
clink.
"Hey,
man, how much have we got in there?" Calum asked and Gill opened the
container, spilling out a good fifty half-credits.
"Won't
buy much, but it's a start."
"Uncle
Hafiz will set us up, lads," Rafik assured them from the pilots seat. Then
he leaned forward. "Gill, d'you remember that dead ship we found rammed
halfway through an asteroid?"
"What
about it?"
"Wasn't
it the same class as this one?"
"Year
or two older."
"But
same class. Are you getting at what I think you're getting at?" Gill
asked, brightening.
"Indeed
I am, dear lad," Rafik said, grinning from ear to ear. "And that
asteroid belt is also on our present heading . . . well, with a slight
detour."
"We
change identities with it?" Calum asked. "Can we So that?"
"With a little extra help from Uncle Hafiz, that should be no
problemo," Rafik said. "Shall we?"
Gill
and Calum made eye contact.
"Well,
it's -worth the effort, I think, especially if Uncle Hafiz can fiddle some
updates about where that ship has been while she was missing."
"He's
a whiz at that sort of thing," Rafik said and began to whistle off-key.
"Sure
get Amalgamated off our tail if they should bother to come looking for
us," Calum said, looking anxiously in the direction of the 'ponics, where
Acorna was working.
"It
would at that," Gill said, after fingercombing his beard. He held up a
portion of the belt-long hirsute appendage. "Well, I wanted to have a good
trim, but I'll bet Amalgamated axed the barber shop, too."
"I'll
give you a trim," Calum suggested suavely.
"No
way, mate," Gill said, wrapping his beard up and stuffing it down the
front of his tunic.
"Uncle
Hafiz has an excellent barber," Rafik said soothingly.
"I
can't wait to meet this Uncle Hafiz," Gill said.
"He
will amaze you," Rafik said with smug pride. He then added, in a much less
confident tone, "Only one thing. He isn't to know about Acorna."
"Why
not?" Gill and Calum asked in unison.
"He's
a collector."
"Of
what?"
"Of
-whatever's going, and I'm bloody sure he's never seen anything like
Acorna."
"Won't
that complicate matters a trifle?" Rafik cocked his head to one side, then
the other, and shrugged. "I am not my uncle's nephew for nothing. We will
contrive. We can not lose Acorna."
The
physical exchange of their beacon with that of the wreck took, in the end,
three days of sweaty labor. The first problem was that mining tools were ill
adapted to the task of cutting and welding ship parts, and their mechanical
repair tools were not designed to function in the vacuum, dust, and temperature
extremes of the asteroid surface.
"Without
Acorna to purify the air," Calum commented at the end of their first
shift, "this cabin would be stinking like the locker rooms at the
TriCentennial Games by now."
"Water,
too," Gill agreed. With constant recycling, ship's air and water usually
developed a stale tang that nothing could get rid of. "Acorna, you're good
fortune to us."
Acorna
shook her head, sadness filling her dark eyes as the centers narrowed to slits.
"You
are that," Calum insisted. "What's the matter?"
"You
run away. We hide. I ..." Acorna visibly struggled to put the words together.
"If I go back, you do not have to hide. My fault!"
The
men's eyes met over her head. "We've been talking too freely," Rafik
said softly.
"She
speaks so little," Calum agreed, "I forget how much she
understands."
"Never
mind that now," Gill said more loudly. "The important thing is to
explain that she's got it all wrong, don't you think?" He picked Acorna up
and hugged her. "Not your fault, sweetie-pie. Remember the stupid woman
Uncle Calum decked? Not your fault she was such a twit, was it now?"
Acorna
put the fingers of one hand into her mouth. Her eyes were dark disbelieving
pools.
"Listen,
Acorna," Rafik said. "We did not like those people at Base. We did
not want to work for them. If we had never . . . met . . . you, we would still not
work for Amalgamated. Would we, fellows?"
Calum's
and Gill's emphatic "No!" seemed to halfway convince Acorna; at
least, the silvery pupils of her eyes slowly returned to normal and she
consented to munch thoughtfully on the spinach stalks Rafik offered her. By the
end of the shift, she was sufficiently recovered to pester them about why they
stayed on an asteroid that she could tell held no interesting concentration of
metals.
"This
is a carbonaceous chondrite, Acorna," Calum explained.
"Simplify
it, will you? The kid doesn't know those big words!"
"Just
because basic astronomical chemistry is beyond you, Gill," Calum retorted,
"don't assume Acorna is as thick as you are. She knows the words we teach
her, and we might as well teach her the right ones for the Job." He went
on explaining that the hydrogen and oxygen they could extract from this
asteroid would provide them with extra air and water, as well as with the fuel
they would need to reach their next stop.
"I
clean air," Acorna said, stamping a hooflike foot.
"So
you do," Calum agreed easily, "but we don't know your tolerances yet,
see, and we don't want to have you doing more than you can handle at this body
weight. Besides, we need fuel. . . ." Every few sentences he had to stop and
draw diagrams of molecular structures and conversion routines. Acorna was
fascinated, and Calum drew the teaching session out until she fell asleep in
his arms.
"Whew!"
Calum fastened the sleeping child in her net and stood up, stretching his back.
"Okay, fellows, a few ground rules. We'd better discuss certain things
only when Acorna is asleep. She's too clever by half; if she knows everything,
she'll carry a load of guilt she doesn't need. That goes for the beacon switch,
too. If she doesn't know? about it, she won't ask inconvenient questions about
it later. As far as she's concerned, we're just here to refuel, right?"
"Just
as well we never got around to picking a suit small enough for her out of
Stores," Gill commented.
Rafik
nodded. "Soon she must be allowed to go outside with us. She can be
inestimably useful in locating and assessing mineral deposits, and irrespective
of the benefit to us, Acorna needs to feel useful. But for now, yes, it is as
well to keep her in ignorance of our real reason for stopping here."
After
that it took even longer to exchange the beacons, because they had to do the
work only when Acorna was asleep, officially confining their activities when
she was awake to the extraction of hydrogen and oxygen. Once the onerous task
was completed, Rafik reprogrammed the navigation computer for the destination
he still refused to reveal, and all three men slept as much as possible on the
way to planetfall.
"Are
we to stay on the ship the whole time we're here?" Gill demanded.
"Rafik's
probably afraid you'll be able to identify this planet's star if we set foot
outside the port area," Calum said. "You can stop worrying, Rafik.
There was really no point in those little games you played with the
navigational computer. I know exactly where we are."
"How?"
Rafik demanded.
"Fuel
consumption," Calum said smugly. "Triangulation on known stars. Time.
Course corrections. I plotted the course in my head and checked the numbers on
my wrist unit. We're on the fourth planet from - "
"Don't
say it," Rafik interrupted. "At least let me swear to Uncle Hafiz
that the name and location of his hideaway have never been spoken on board this
ship."
"Why?"
Calum asked. "What's the big deal? Anybody could compute - "
"No,
Calum, they couldn't!" Rafik rolled his eyes heavenward. "I could
write a book on the hazards of shipping with a mathematical genius 'who hasn't
an ounce of street sense to balance the other side of his head. There are all
sorts and conditions of people here, Calum, and the one thing they all have in
common is a strong desire for anonymity. A desire," he added pointedly,
"which we share with them, or have you forgotten already? Now, lets keep
this simple. You stay right here. I visit Uncle Hafiz and see what sort of a
cut he'll want from the profit on our shares in return for converting them to
galactic credits and fixing the registration of the new beacon."
"He's
not going to do it from family feeling, huh?" Gill asked.
Rafik
rolled his eyes again and sighed heavily. "Just . . . stay . . . here.
I'll be back as soon as I can, okay?"
"If
you people are that big on secrecy, why couldn't we do it all by tight-beam
transmission from low orbit? Why make a personal visit?"
Rafik
looked shocked. "All this time working together, and you two have yet to
learn decent manners. You infidels can cut deals electronically if you wish,
but Children of the Three Prophets meet face to face. It's the honorable way to
settle an agreement. Besides," he added more prosaically, "no
transmission is so tight that it can't be intercepted."
He was
back sooner than they expected, tightlipped and burdened down with a quantity
of squashy parcels wrapped in opaque clingfilm.
"You
do not look entirely happy. What's the matter, does Uncle Hafiz want an
extortionate cut of the shares?" Calum asked.
"And
how come you stopped off to go shopping?" Gill added.
"Uncle
Hafiz," Rafik said, still tight-lipped, "is more traditionally minded
than I am. He -wishes to meet the other parties to the agreement face to face
before -we begin serious discussions."
"Not
Acorna!"
"Port
authorities reported four crew members. He wants to see all four. It'll be all
right," Rafik soothed Gill, "he won't actually see Acorna. I've
thought of a way around it. It's a good idea, too; one we might want to use
from now on."
"And
it involves yards and yards of white polysilk," said Calum, investigating
the contents of one of the packages. "Umm, Rafik, don't take offense, but
I've had previous experience with some of your 'good ideas.' If this is going
to be like the time we tried to slip into Kezdet space to collect that titanium
that was just sitting there begging to be mined and refined ..."
"That
was a good idea, too!" Rafik said indignantly. "How was I to know
that the Kezdet Guardians of the Peace had just hired a new hand who would
recognize our beacon from old days at MME?"
"All
I'm wondering," Calum murmured, "is what crucial factor don't you
know this time?"
"It's
nothing like that," Rafik said. "Just a minor costume change. Look,
we don't want anybody noticing Acorna, right? So -we're going to be more
traditional even than Uncle Hafiz. I told him I'd been studying the Three
Books-that made him happy. Then I explained that I had been
inspired
by the First Book to study further, and that I had been accepted into the
NeoHadithians."
"All
of which means precisely what?" Gill asked.
"The
theological ramifications are probably beyond you," Rafik said. "The
important point is that my -wives -wear hijab, which will be the perfect
disguise for Acorna." He took a length of white polysilk from Calum and
held it up with both hands so that they could see the shape of the garment: a
many-layered hood atop a billowing gown of even more layers, each individual
layer light and seemingly transparent, but collectively a cloud of iridescent
reflective white. "As an enlightened Child of the Three Prophets,
naturally I know better than to adhere to the ancient superstitions about the
veiling of -women. There is actually nothing in the First Book--what you
unbelievers call the Koran-that requires -women to be veiled and secluded. And
the Second Prophet absolutely repudiated that and other barbaric practices,
such as the prohibition against fermented liquors. But the Neo-Hadithians claim
that the Hadith, the traditional tales of the life of the First Prophet, are as
sacred as the words of the Books. They want to go back to the worst of the bad
old ways. Including the veil. Uncle Hafiz is disgusted -with me, but he says he
-will respect my religious prejudices -while waiting for me to outgrow them. He
-will not actually look upon the faces of my wives, but they must be present
during the agreement."
"Wives?"
Calum repeated.
Rafik's
eyes sparkled. "That is the really brilliant part of the idea. I told
Uncle Hafiz that I was accompanied by my partner, an unbeliever, and by my two
"wives". You see, that neatly accounts for the four people reported
on this ship. And anybody looking for three miners and a little girl will
probably not think to investigate a neo-Hadithian, his two wives, and his
partner."
"Sounds
risky to me," said Calum. "You mean one of us stays on the ship and
you pick up some local girl to play your second wife? How can you be sure she
won't talk?"
"That-er-was
not quite what I had in mind," Rafik said. He shook out the second length
of white polysilk and held it up against Calum. "Yes. I estimated your
height quite well. Now, do remember to take small steps and keep your eyes down
like a proper Neo-Hadithian wife, will you?"
"I
don't believe it," Dr. Anton Forelle said explosively when he read the
reports on the KheSive. "I - don't - believe - it."
"I
didn't want to believe it either," said Judit, "but the reports are
quite clear." She had been crying. "It's so sad. Those nice men, and
the little girl..."
"If
it were true," Forelle said, "it would be a tragedy. The end of my
chance for the research coup of the decade-of the century! But it's not true.
Amalgamated hires fools; I should know, I'm in charge of inventing the language
of the lies they
feed
their fools, making up nice-sounding words for inhumane policy
directives." He shot a shrewd glance at Judit. "You don't like the
sound of that, do you, girl? Don't like me to say straight out what our
department's about. But you're not as stupid as the rest of them. You must have
noticed. Well, I had my reasons for taking the job deplorable, the lack of
support for pure research these days, and no matter what my ex-colleagues at the
university say, I could have completed a respectable thesis if I'd been able to
get funding for my research. And I suppose you have your reasons for putting up
with Amalgamated, too."
"They
pay well," Judit said. "I've a younger brother on Kezdet. He's not
quite through school yet."
"And
when he is," Forelle said, "no doubt you'll find some other excuse to
make to yourself for taking their money. They buy a few good minds and corrupt
us, and use us to buy as many fools as they want. Including the idiots who
think the Khedive crashed on an asteroid!"
"The
beacon signal-" Judit began uncertainly.
"Faked.
I don't know how, I'm no engineer, but it was faked."
"Too
hard. There'd be registration numbers on the ship body and engines."
"Ha!
Nobody went out and actually looked, did they? They just trusted the computer
records."
Judit
was silent. Forelle's idea was insane . . . but it was true, nobody had
physically checked the crash site.
"I'll
wager you that ship is not the Khedive. Yes, that's it. The beacon signal is
faked, and they're in some different sector of space by now, laughing at us
all. And Amalgamated "will let the matter drop, because they know that no
matter what legal juggling they indulged in, no sensible court would uphold their
claim to the ship - so rather than pursue it, they'd just as soon write off the
ship as a wreck and the dissidents as dead. But I'm not going to let it
drop!" Forelle glared at Judit as if she'd dared to think of contradicting
him. "That that unicorn girl is too conspicuous to disappear without a
trace. Amalgamated has plants and bases galaxy-wide. I shall put out a standing
order for any mention of a child with those particular deformities to be routed
to my console with top priority. Sooner or later, they'll slip up. I'll find
her, and we'll get our paper, Judit. And then I'll be able to leave these fools
and take up the university position I deserve. They'll probably endow a chair
for me. Well, get on with it. Compose the order, and I'll edit it so that they
know? it's urgent and won't question why, and won't forget it either. Finally
applied psychohnguistics will be good for something besides keeping
Amalgamated's workforce happy."
Judit
thought he was deluding himself, but it was a delusion she would have liked to
share. However, if the child had by some miracle lived, she had no desire to
see Forelle get hold of her for his experiments. So she put her best
psycholinguistic training into composing a memo that would look urgent enough
to satisfy Dr. Forelle, while actually encouraging anybody who skimmed it to
mentally
dismiss the whole matter as "just another one of Anton's crazy
ideas."
The
skimmer that Rafik rented to take them from the port area to Uncle Hafiz's
residence passed over a trackless expanse of tropical vegetation, brilliant
green sprinkled with blazes of red and yellow flowers. To the east, an
indigo-blue sea gave off glints of silver in the sunlight; to the west, they
could just see the long blue line of an escarpment that must have discouraged
any building of roads into the interior of the continent.
"The
Mali Bazaar," Rafik said as they passed over a collection of buildings
with flat roofs inlaid in jewel-toned mosaics.
Gill
pressed his nose to the window of the skimmer to get a better view of the
pictures delineated by thousands of glazed ceramic tiles. "Anywhere
else," he said reverently, "that would be a major tourist attraction.
Why do they put it on the roof where nobody can see it? "
"Most
travel here is by skimmer," Rafik said, "and it's a kind of
advertisement for their services. Everybody knows where the Mali Bazaar is.
That's where I bought your hijab, by the way."
"Isn't
it a nuisance not having roads to the port?" Gill asked. "How do you
transport heavy goods and machinery? "
"By
sea, of course," Rafik said. "There are, if you think about it, many
advantages in dispensing with a road network. Most of the residents of Laboue
have a strong preference for personal privacy; traveling by skimmer reduces the
chances of meeting other travelers who might be curious about one's errands. It
certainly works in our favor, wouldn't you agree? Then, too, roads require a
degree of cooperation which is difficult for the strong individualists -who
make their homes here. There's no central government, no taxation, no centrally
supported infrastructure."
"Expensive,"
Gill murmured. "Inefficient." Rafik gave him a bright-eyed glance of
amusement. "Can any system really compete with the massive inefficiencies
of a well-entrenched bureaucracy? As for expense . . . one entrepreneur did
attempt a network of toll roads, but he couldn't afford the cost of guarding
them."
"You
have problems with bandits?" "Let's say there are residents who find
it difficult to put aside their traditional ways of life," Rafik said,
banking the skimmer into a smooth turn that brought them down in a paved square
surrounded by high bougainvillea-covered walls. He handed Acorna and Calum out
of the skimmer with the care a Neo-Hadithian would be expected to take of his
delicate and precious wives. "Remember," he whispered to Calum,
"don't talk! As long as you're wearing that veil, convention dictates that
you are not really here."
The
long, multilayered Neo-Hadithian robes of white polysilk concealed Calum and
Acorna marvelously; in the brilliant sunlight they looked like two moving
clouds of white iridescence, shapeless and indistinguishable save that one was
somewhat taller than the other.
As Gill
made his exit from the skimmer, a section of bougainvillea-covered wall swung
away from the rest, revealing a dark man of medium height in whom Rafik's
elegant features were sharpened to a look of dangerous wariness.
"You
and your family and guests are welcome to this humble abode," he said to
Rafik, with a quick gesture of his right hand from forehead to lips to chest.
Rafik
repeated the gesture before embracing him. "Uncle Hafiz! You are gracious
indeed to receive us. You are well?" he asked as though they had not been
conversing only a few hours before.
"I
am, thanks be to the Three Prophets. And you, my nephew? You are well?"
"Blessed
be the Hadith and the revelations of Moulay Suheil," Rafik said, "I
am, and my wives also."
A faint
shadow of distaste crossed Uncle Hafiz's features at the mention of the Hadith,
but he controlled himself and gave properly courteous answers as Rafik went on
to inquire about the health of innumerable cousins, nephews, and distant
connections. Finally, the initial greetings finished, Uncle Hafiz stepped back
and invited them, with a wave of his hand, to precede him into the garden
revealed beyond the walls around the skimmer landing area.
A path
of deep blue stepping-stones wound among flowering shrubs. As Gill stepped on
the first stone, a clear pure middle C sounded in the air. The next two steps
produced an E and a G; the sounds lingered on the air and blended in a perfect
chord.
"You
like my walkway?" Hafiz asked with a satisfied smile. "Perhaps you
have not before encountered the singing stones of Skarrness."
"But
I thought they were-" Gill choked down the rest of the sentence. The
once-famous singing stones of Skarrness were virtually gone now, having fallen
prey to unscrupulous collectors, who removed so many of the stones that the
remaining ones could not maintain their population. But Rafik had said Hafiz
was a collector of rarities and had implied that he was not overburdened with
scruples. It would probably not be tactful to complete his thought.
"Quite
rare, yes," Hafiz said. "It was my great good fortune to obtain a
perfectly tuned set in C major, and an even rarer set in the Lydian mode. Very
few complete sets, alas, are available now."
Thanks
to jerks like you, Gill thought, but he managed to keep his thought to himself
and his face composed.
The
walk-way led them musically to a high wall of dark stone which Hafiz identified
casually as Farinese marble. A double gate of lacy, handwrought metal work
opened into a second garden, this one surrounded on three sides by a roofed
gallery with columns of the same Farinese marble. Through the columns Gill
could glimpse openings into a shadowy interior of polished floors, carved
wooden screens, and silk hangings.
Hafiz
clapped his hands and several robed servants appeared, two carrying cushions of
jewelcolored silk, another with a tall crystal pitcher, and a fourth behind him
-with a crystal bowl and a stack of towels so richly embroidered in gold thread
that only a small silken square was visible in the center of each.
"We
have, of course, completely modern facilities within," Hafiz said
apologetically, "but it delights me to keep to the old customs of offering
guests water with my own hands, and food and drink in my own garden, as soon as
they have arrived." He took the pitcher and poured a thin stream of cold
water over Rafik's outstretched hands. Gill copied Rafik's motions and took one
of the embroidered towels to dry his hands. Hafiz handed the pitcher to Rafik
with a bow. "Perhaps you would prefer to offer water to your wives yourself.
I should not like to insult your new beliefs."
Rafik
bowed acknowledgment and held out the pitcher for Calum and Acorna to wash
their hands, casually moving as he did so that his body blocked any view Hafiz
might have had of Acorna's oddly shaped digits and Calum's masculine fingers.
Hafiz
indicated that they should all seat themselves on the silken cushions,
mentioned casually that the pitcher and bowl had each been carved from a single
piece of Merastikama crystal, and told the servants to take back the washing
implements and bring refreshment for his guests. The placement of brass trays
on three-legged wooden stands, the handing round of minute glasses full of
fiery liquor and delicate bowls of fruit-flavored sorbet, took what seemed to
Gill an inordinately long time while Hafiz and Rafik chatted of trivialities.
Rafik made a show of refusing the liquor, in keeping with his pretense of
conversion to the strict NeoHadithian sect, which had revived all the
prohibitions of the First Prophet and then some. Gill at first felt glad to be
an official unbeliever and free to enjoy the drinks; then, after one burning
swallow, he began considering the possibility of announcing an instant
conversion to Rafik's tenets. He was relieved to see that Acorna managed to
take a dish of sorbet under her veil; he'd been afraid that eating and drinking
would tax her disguise too much. But it seemed the Neo-Hadithians had designed
their women's costumes so that the veils need not be removed for anything. Gill
wondered sourly whether they removed them in bed.
Finally,
as a casual afterthought to a lengthy discussion of the problems of
interstellar trade, Rafik mentioned that he and his partner had encountered a
small technical difficulty with which Uncle Hafiz might be able to help them
out-for a consideration, of course.
"Ah,
these minor technicalities." Hafiz sighed sympathetically. "How they
plague us, these petty bureaucrats with their accounting details! What seems to
be the difficulty, son of my best beloved sister?"
Rafik
gave Hafiz a severely edited account of their difficulties with Amalgamated,
leaving out any mention of Acorna and stressing the basic illegality of
Amalgamated's claim to own the Khedive.
"If
their claim is entirely without foundation," Hafiz asked, as though
motivated by idle curiosity,
"why
do you not take your case to the courts of the Federation?"
"It
is written in the Book of the Second Prophet," said Rafik, "'Trust
kin before countrymen, countrymen before outlanders, and all before
unbelievers.'"
"And
yet your partner is an unbeliever," Hafiz pointed out.
"Our
partnership is of long standing," Rafik said. "Besides, there is a
minor complication in the matter of money advanced by MME-the company with
which we had previously contractedfor mining equipment and supplies. The dogs
of unbelievers at Amalgamated claim our ship as security against the advance,
though if they had credited us with the metals sent back by drone over the last
three years, the debt would have been paid three times over. However, we left
the Amalgamated base in some haste and the matter was not resolved."
"It
is also written," said Hafiz, '"Be not in such haste to collect the
silver that ye let the gold fall by the wayside.'"
"A
most excellent precept, O Revered Uncle," said Rafik politely, "but
one which I found myself unable to honor under the circumstances." He
lowered his voice as if to make sure that the veiled figures on the other side
of the brass tray should not hear. "It was a matter of a woman-you
understand?"
Hafiz
smiled broadly. "I begin to see why you have joined the Neo-Hadithians, my
son! It is their revival of polygamy which appeals to you.
So, two
wives -were not enough. You had to get yourself in trouble with some unbeliever
on the Amalgamated base?"
"In
confidence," Rafik said, "the taller of my two wives is so ugly one
might imagine her a man, and I have no use for her as a woman; while the
smaller one is too young yet to be taken to my bed. Both marriages were made to
strengthen my claims to kinship -within the Neo-Hadithians and not for carnal
desire."
Calum
choked under his veil. Gill reached under the table and pinched some part of
his anatomy through the billowing white layers of polysilk, hard enough to
distract Calum from whatever he might have been tempted to say.
Hafiz
laughed merrily at Rafik s account of his marital troubles, and seemed more
disposed to help them out if he could get the satisfaction of teasing his
nephew for the bad bargain he had made in joining the Neo-Hadithian sect.
Transferring registration of their new beacon into their name, he warned, was a
complicated task and would require facilitation payments to a number of
individuals, not all of them so liberal in their thinking as he was. He would,
however, be happy to arrange the entire matter, if Rafik could see his way to
putting sufficient credit at his disposal.
"That
brings up another minor point," said Rafik, and showed Hafiz the share
certificates from Amalgamated.
"These
can, of course, be converted into Federation credits," Hafiz said,
thumbing rapidly through the certificates, "although at a substantial
discount." "The discount on shares from such a galactically
recognized company, all but certain to rise in value, should be only
nominal," Rafik protested.
Hafiz
smiled. "Is it not written in the Book of the Third Prophet, "Count
not the light from a distant star among your assets, for that star may have
been long dead by the time its light reaches thine eyes'?" He glanced at
Acorna, who had begun wriggling under her veils in a way that was causing Calum
and Gill grave anxiety. "But your younger wife is restless. Perhaps your
wives would care to retire to the rooms which have been made ready for them
while we settle the minor matter of the discount on these shares and the
payments necessary to facilitate reregistration of the new beacon? Or would
they like to stroll in the outer garden? I can call one of my women to attend
them."
"That
will not be necessary," said Gill, rising to his feet. "I should be
honored to escort the ladies."
Rafik
smiled seraphically. "I repose complete trust in my partner," he
assured Hafiz. "As he trusts me to complete the negotiations, so can I
trust him with my honor and that of my women."
"Particularly,"
Hafiz needled him as the others left, "since one is, by your own account,
too ugly to bed and the other too young."
"Just
so," said Rafik cheerfully. "Now, about this discount. . ."
As soon
as they were concealed among the flowering shrubs of the outer garden, Calum
shoved back his multilayered veil and took a deep breath. "I am going to
kill Rafik," he said.
Gill
snickered. "Remember to take tiny little ladylike steps," he teased.
"And better keep the veil down. Even with Rafik's warning that you're as
ugly as a man, Hafiz might get suspicious if he saw that you need a
shave."
"I
just hope they finish dickering so we can get back to the ship," Calum
said sourly, but he flipped the veiling back over his face. "I'm tired of
fancy dress."
Acorna
tugged at Gill's sleeve and pointed at the grass that grew around each of the
blue singing stones. "What? Oh, sure, sweetie, go ahead and nibble if you
like. You've been a good girl. Just remember to cover your head if we hear
anybody coming. The singing stones ought to give us plenty of warning,"
Gill said rather defensively to Calum.
"You
didn't let me unveil."
"Modesty,
modesty." Gill chuckled. "You don't need a snack. Acorna's metabolism
needs more than the occasional dish of sorbet, you know. And if Hafiz expects
us to stay for a meal, it'll probably be mostly meat dishes and she can't eat
those."
Acorna,
ignoring the argument, had quietly knelt down within her billowing veils and
pushed the face veils back so that she could see to pluck the tender tops of
the sweet grasses. "Good girl, good," Gill encouraged her.
"Don't make any divots, now."
"Is
rude to make holes in grass," Acorna said. tlv Is a no. "
"A
very big no, in somebody else's garden," Gill agreed. "But the stuff
has to be mowed, I assume, so it'll do no harm if you take an inch or two off
the top."
Five
notes in a -wailing pentatonic scale sounded in quick succession. Acorna tried
to jump up, but the swathes of filmy fabric impeded her movements and she would
have fallen if Gill hadn't grabbed her hand and pulled her upright by main
force. She was still fumbling for her veil when Hafiz and Rafik came into view.
Hafiz's
eyebrows shot up and he came forward rapidly. "By the earlocks of the
Third Prophet!" he exclaimed. "A rarity indeed! Rafik, beloved
nephew, I do believe we can come to a mutually agreeable arrangement at a
considerably less discount than I had anticipated."
"Uncle,"
Rafik said in reproving tones, "I beg of you, do not insult the modesty of
my wives and the honor of my family." But he was too late; Hafiz was
already stroking the short horn that protruded from Acorna's forehead. She
stood quite still, only the narrowing of her pupils showing her distress and
confusion.
"You
were complaining that this one was too young to be of any use," Hafiz said
without looking away from Acorna. "How fortunate that your new religious
friends hold to the old traditions in the matter of divorce as well as of
polygamy and hijab. Nothing could be easier than a quiet family divorce, at
once freeing you of an undesired entanglement and allowing me the acquisition
of a new rarity."
"Unthinkable,"
Rafik protested. "Her family have entrusted her to me; she is my sacred
responsibility. "
"Then
they will no doubt be delighted to hear that she will henceforth grace the home
of such a distinguished and benevolent collector as myself," Hafiz said
happily. "I am willing to undertake to respect all the religious
prohibitions of your sect. She can have the rooms which I had set aside for you
and your wives tonight; I will establish them as secluded women's quarters for
her and her servants alone, so that the Neo-Hadithian scruples need not be
outraged. You will be able to tell her family that she is kept in every
possible luxury."
"I
am sorry," Rafik said firmly. "I do not sell my women. Uncle Hafiz,
this touches on my honor!"
Hafiz
waved the objections away with an airy hand. "Ah, you young people are so
impetuous! I would not be doing my duty as your uncle, my boy, if I permitted
you to refuse in haste what will upon reflection appear to you as a most
advantageous solution to all your difficulties. No, family feeling dictates
that I make sure you have time to reflect upon the situation at leisure. You will
remain as my guests until you have had sufficient time to perceive the wisdom
of this course."
"We
cannot impose upon you," Rafik said. "We will return to our ship
tonight and there discuss the matter among ourselves."
"No,
no, dear boy, I could not hear of it! My household would be dishonored forever
should I fail to offer you appropriate hospitality. You will be my guests
tonight. I simply insist," Hafiz said, raising his voice slightly.
There
was a rustle among the bushes, and suddenly two robed and silent servants stood
behind each one of them.
"The
singing stones, although a great curiosity, are sometimes inconvenient,"
Hafiz said cheerfully. "There are other ways through the garden for those
who serve me."
Rafik
caught Gill's eye and gave a slight despairing shrug. "We shall be
delighted to accept your hospitality tonight. Uncle. You are too generous.
Hafiz's
generosity extended to the provision of separate quarters for them, one set of
rooms for Rafik and his "wives," and another room, on the far side of
the sprawling mansion, for Gill. "You would naturally wish your women to
be housed in seclusion and far from any man's sleeping place," he
explained smoothly.
"And
that makes it even harder to get away," Calum growled as soon as Hafiz had
left them on their own. "How are we going to find Gill and get to our
skimmer?"
"Peace,"
said Rafik absently.
"You're
not thinking of giving in to him!"
"I
played in this house as a boy," Rafik said. "I know every inch of the
grounds, perhaps better than my uncle; it has been some years since he had the
figure to wriggle along the low paths under the shrubbery, or to swing from
cornice to pipe along the upper stories. But we will temporize for a day or
two, Calum."
"Why?"
"We
do," said Rafik sweetly, "want to give Uncle Hafiz time to fix the
registration of our new ship's beacon, don't we? Let him think -we're
cooperating until that is done; then it will be time enough to get away."
"And
how do you think you're going to get him to switch the registration and launder
our shares without handing over Acorna?"
"Don't
worry about a thing," Rafik said. "I'm a master negotiator. I learned
from an expert."
"I
know," said Calum. "We're negotiating with the expert in question,
remember?"
Acorna
woke to the dawn-chirping of birds in the sweet-scented flowering vines outside
the window. The night had been still and hot and she had pushed all the covers
off her bed; now it was cool, almost chilly. She wrapped the clinging layers of
white polysilk around herself. The robes were enough to keep her warm, but she
was unable to recreate the drapery of hood and robe and face veils that Rafik
had arranged about her the previous day. She looked doubtfully at the sleeping
Rafik and Calum. Would it be a big "no" to leave the room like this,
-without the veils over her head? She hated the veils anyway; they clung to her
mouth and nose and chafed her forehead -where the growing horn was still
tender. It -would probably be an even bigger "no" to wake Calum and
Rafik and ask them to dress her, -wouldn't it?
The
pressure in her bladder settled the question. Tiptoeing so as not to -wake the
miners, Acorna quietly slid the carved wooden door open just enough to let her
squeeze out. She remembered the -washing-place they had been shown last night,
a -wonderland of blue tiles and jets of hot and cold -water and minty steam
rising up through
wooden
slats. But this morning there -was no one to make the hot water come out for
her, and after relieving herself she abandoned the washing-place and tiptoed
down two flights of stairs to -where she could see the garden through an open
archway.
The
blue stones sang when she stepped on them, just as they had last night.
Entranced by the sweet pure tones, Acorna dropped her clinging draperies and
danced back and forth, improvising a tune by leaping from one stone to another
and accompanying the music of the stones -with her own singing. She did not
realize how loud she
was
getting until a discordant note interrupted her melody. She -whirled and saw
Uncle Hafiz standing at the beginning of the blue stone path.
Acorna's
song broke off and the sudden stillness of the garden shocked her into
realizing how boisterous she had been.
"Too
loud?" she asked, penitent. "If I make too much noise, that is a big
no?"
"Not
in the least, my dear child," Uncle Hafiz said. "Your singing was a
delightful interruption to a boring task. No, no-" he forestalled her as
she belatedly tried to -wind the robes around herself again, "there's no
need to trouble yourself with those things, not among family."
"I
must be covered. Rafik said."
"On
the streets, perhaps," Uncle Hafiz agreed, "but among your own
relatives it is different."
Acorna
thought this over. "You are rel-tive?"
"And
I hope soon to be a very close relation indeed."
"You
are rel-tive to me?"
"Yes."
"And
I am rel-tive to Rafik and Gill and Calum. So you are rel-tive to Gill?"
Uncle
Hafiz was so dismayed at the thought of claiming kinship with the red-bearded
unbeliever that he didn't even think of asking who Calum might be. "Ah-it
doesn't -work quite like that," he said hastily.
"How
many percent rel-tive to Gill are you?"
"Zero
percent," Hafiz said, then blinked. "Aren't you a little young to be
learning fractions and percentages? "
"I
know fraction, percent, decimal, octal, hexadecimal, and modulo," Acorna
said cheerfully. "I like numbers. You like numbers?"
"Only,"
said Hafiz, "when the odds are in my favor."
Acorna
frowned. "Odd is not-even. Even is not-odd. Odds is not-evens?"
"No,
no, sweetheart," Hafiz said. "The boys have neglected an important
part of your education. Come along inside. I can't explain without drawing
pictures."
When
Rafik came pounding down the stairs an hour later, sure that Acorna had been
kidnapped while he and Calum slept, the first thing he heard from Hafiz s study
was a familiar piping voice asking a question.
"That's
right!" Uncle Hafiz sounded more relaxed than Rafik had ever heard him,
almost jovial. "Now, suppose you're making book on a race where the
favorite is running at three to two, so you offer slightly better odds-like,
say, six to five - "
"Six
to five is much better," Rafik heard Acorna object. "Should not give
more than seven to four."
"Look,
it's just an example, okay? Suppose you offer seven to four, then. What
happens?"
"Many
people place bets with you."
"And
what do you do to make sure you don't lose your money?"
"Lay
off the bets with another bookmaker?"
"Or,"
Uncle Hafiz said cheerfully, "make very, very sure the favorite doesn't
win."
That
was the point at which Rafik interrupted them and brought Acorna back to their
rooms for the excellent breakfast Hafiz had ordered sent up to them. He and
Calum wrangled over the sliced mangoes and pointed skewers full of grilled lamb
like weapons at one another while Acorna quietly worked her way through the
bowl of leafy greens Hafiz had ordered especially for her.
"How
could you be so careless and irresponsible?" Calum demanded.
"You
were sleeping in this room, too," Rafik pointed out acidly. "I happen
to know that you slept very well last night. You snore!"
"You
should have told her not to go out without one of us!"
"Look,"
Rafik said, "no harm's been done, okay? He didn't hurt her."
"From
your own account," Calum retorted, "he was teaching her to gamble!
That's not the sort of education I want for my ward."
"She's
mine, too," Rafik said, "and there is nothing inherently criminal
about the profession of being a turf accountant."
Acorna
chose that moment, having finished all the sweet greens and the sliced carrots,
to speak up. "Nobble the favorite," she said clearly, and smiled with
pleasure at her new word.
"I
rest my case," said Calum, arms folded. "And what's more, you are not
getting me back into those ridiculous garments. If Acorna can run around
unveiled, so can I."
"You
will not," Rafik said with quiet intensity, "do anything to destroy
my cover as a Neo-Hadithian. And that includes raising your voice. We're just
lucky that Uncle Hafiz respects my religious beliefs enough to order the
servants to keep away from these rooms, or we'd be blown already."
"I
think we are blown," Calum said. "Blown clear out of the water. Now
that he's seen Acorna, what's the point of wrapping ourselves up like white
tents?"
"My
conversion to Neo-Hadithian tenets," Rafik said, "is an essential
part of my negotiating strategy. And it's not such a bad thing that Acorna has
charmed Uncle Hafiz, either. He'll be all the more inclined to complete the
transaction and speed us on our way."
Calum
stared. "You sound as if you actually mean to give him Acorna!"
Acorna's
eyes narrowed until the silver pupils were all but obliterated. She leaned
across the table to grab Calum by one hand and Rafik by the other.
"It's
okay, sweetie," Calum soothed her, "we're not going anywhere without
you. Are we, Raflk?"
"Want
Gill," Acorna said firmly. "All together."
"We
will be together, darling, in just a little while," Rafik promised.
"Want
Gill here now!" Acorna's voice rose.
Calum's
and Rafik's eyes met over her head. "I thought you said she was over the
dependency," Rafik mouthed.
"Being
auctioned off as a curiosity makes a girl insecure," Calum whispered back.
"Gill!"
Acorna wailed on an even higher note.
"Just
so you understand," Calum said some time later, "I'm only doing this
for Acorna."
"Darling,
I would never ask you to put on hijab for my sake," Rafik said sweetly.
"White isn't your color."
They
were strolling in the garden, Calum and Acorna decently veiled so that Gill
could join them without outraging Rafik's supposed NeoHadithian sense of
propriety.
"Explain
to me again," Calum said while Acorna skipped ahead, holding Gill's hand,
"exactly how wrapping me up in a bolt of polysilk is an integral part of
your negotiating strategy. And don't giggle!" he added sharply, almost
tripping over some of the lower layers of robes.
"Don't
hike your skirt up, it's not decent," Rafik said. "If you'd take
small steps, like a lady, you wouldn't trip all the time. Ah, Uncle Hafiz! The
benevolence of your smile lights the garden more brightly than the summer
sun."
"What
joy can be sweeter than the company of beloved relatives," Hafiz replied,
"beloved relatives and, er, um ..." He looked at Gill's flaming red
beard and freckled skin. "... relatives and friend," he finished with
an audible gulp. "I trust you have had time and privacy sufficient to
confer with your family and your partner, dear nephew?"
"We
accept your offer," Rafik said. "Transfer the registration of the
ship's beacon and sell the shares for us, and ..." He nodded at Acorna,
who was happily chattering to Gill about the new kinds of fractions she had
learned, such as three-to-two and six-to-four.
"Excellent!"
Now Uncle Hafiz was truly beaming. "I knew you'd be reasonable, dear boy.
We're two of a kind, you and I. If only your cousin Tapha could do as
well!"
Rafik
looked slightly queasy at being compared to his cousin, his uncle s heir.
"Where is Tapha, by the way?"
Hafiz's
smile vanished. "I sent him to take over the southern half of the
continent. Yukata Batsu has been running it long enough."
"And?"
"I
don't know where the rest of him is," Hafiz said. "All Yukata Batsu
sent back were his ears." He sighed. "Tapha never had what it takes.
I should have known when I abducted his mother that she didn't have the brains
to give me a worthy successor. Yammer, yammer, yammer, all the time complaining
at me that she could have had a career dancing topless at the Orbital Grill and
Rendezvous Parlor. Her and her perky breasts. Yasmin, I told her, all the girls
have perky breasts in zero-g, you were nothing special, you're lucky a good man
took you away from all that. But would that woman listen?" Hafiz sighed
and brightened up. "However, I'm not too old to try again. Now that I've
found a woman with intelligence to match my own..." His eyes strayed to
Acorna. "Don't you mind her holding hands with that dog of an
unbeliever?"
"She's
only a little girl," Rafik said stiffly.
"Not
for much longer," Hafiz said. "They grow up faster than you
think."
A
sputtering sound escaped from behind Calum's layers of white veiling. Hafiz
looked startled. "Your senior wife? She is unwell?"
"She
suffers from nervous fits," Rafik said, grasping Calum's wrist and hauling
him away from Hafiz.
"A
sad affliction," Hafiz said. "Meet me within the house when you have
calmed your women, Rafik, and we will pledge faith to our agreement over the
Three Books." He turned away, muttering, "Ugly, prone to fits, big
feet, and what a hairy wrist! No wonder he is reluctant to give up the other
one . . . but with his ship and his credits, he can easily buy another
wife."
"And
just what were you snickering about?" Rafik demanded in a whisper when
Hafiz had passed back into the house.
"'They
grow up faster than you think,'" Calum quoted. "If he only knew how
fast! Would he believe Acorna was a toddler when we found her less than two
years ago?"
"Let's
don't tell him," Rafik suggested. "This whole deal depends on mutual
trust, and he'd be sure I was a thumping liar if I tried to tell him how fast
Acorna grows. Besides, she's not going to be here long enough for him to find
out."
"But
its the truth!" Calum said.
"Truth,"
Rafik said, "has very little to do with verisimilitude."
Gill
kept Acorna amused in the garden while Rafik and Calum went into the study to
meet Hafiz. He was seated behind a gleaming, crescentshaped desk with the usual
consoles and controls, plus a few that Calum did not recognize, inlaid flush
with the surface so as not to spoil the smooth lines of the desk. Incongruously
stacked atop the modern equipment were two antique books, the kind with hard
covers enclosing a stack of paper sheets, and an old-fashioned databox with
only six sides.
"You
admire my desk?" Uncle Hafiz said pleasantly to Calum. "Carved from a
single piece of purpleheart . . . one of the last of the great stand of
purpleheart trees on Tanqque III."
"My
wife prefers not to talk to other men," Rafik said sharply.
He'd
rumbled lu, Calum thought in despair. He knows I'm not a woman. Rafik and hid
damn <>dly gam&f!
"Dear
boy," Hafiz said, "surely within a family as close as ours, and soon
to be united even more closely by the exchange of wives, even you NeoHadithians
can drop some of these ridiculous . . . oh, all right, all right, I didn't mean
to insult your . . . religion." He pronounced the last word with the faint
distaste of someone directing the servants to remove whatever it was the cat
had dragged in and failed to finish eating.
Rafik
bridled, scowled, and gave what Calum thought an excellent imitation of a man
on the verge of taking mortal insult.
"Your
ship," Uncle Hafiz said, "is now registered as the Uhuru, originally
of Kezdet."
"Why
Kezdet?"
"That
-was the original registration of the beacon you appropriated. It would have
been extremely expensive to delete all traces of the beacon's history. I think
it suffices that We can now show an electronic trail of three transfers of
ownership. Appropriate insignia have been applied to the body of the ship,
along with some . . . ah . . . cosmetic changes."
Calum
choked.
"Every
rascal in the galaxy registers under Kezdet," Rafik protested.
"They're a known cover for all sorts of thieves, desperadoes, con men, and
cheats."
Uncle
Hafiz's brows rose. "Dear boy! My own modest personal fleet has Kezdet
registration."
"Exactly,"
muttered Calum, too low for Hafiz to hear him. He jabbed Rafik in the side with
one veiled elbow, hoping to remind him of the other problem with using Kezdet
as their port of registration.
"And,"
Rafik said, "as it happens, I have had an ... unfortunate encounter with
Kezdet patrols. One of those pesky matters of trespassing that can occur with
the best of will on both sides, but I am afraid they took it in a poor
spirit." There was no way of knowing for sure, but it seemed a safe bet
that the Guardians of the Peace were still unhappy about the patrol cruiser he,
Calum, and Gill had crippled and marooned before taking off with that load of
titanium.
"Then,"
Uncle Hafiz said smoothly, "you will have an excellent excuse for not
returning to your port of registration, will you not? Now, your shares have
been converted to ..." He named a sum in Federation credits that made
Calum gasp through his veils.
Rafik
actually managed to look disappointed. "Ah, well," he said sadly,
"that would be after your discount, of course?"
"By
no means," said Uncle Hafiz, "but I propose to take no more than
twenty percent of the gross, which I assure you will barely cover my expenses
in arranging . . . facilitation payments . . . to all the bureaucracies
concerned."
"It
was seventeen percent yesterday."
"Delay,"
said Uncle Hafiz, "increases the expense. How fortunate that you have come
to a wise decision! It only remains to complete the transaction. If you will
swear on the Three Books to honor our agreement, then call Acorna in and
divorce her, I shall marry her immediately and you will be free to
depart."
Rafik
looked mournful. "If only it were that easy!" he said. "But I
must warn you that the Hadith require a -waiting period of at least one sunset
and dawn between a woman's divorce and remarriage."
"That
is not in my understanding of the Hadith," Uncle Hafiz said sharply.
"It
is a new revelation of Moulay Suheil," Rafik countered. "He had a
dream in which the First Prophet, blessed be His Name, appeared and expressed
his concern lest women, being weak in understanding and easily led, might be
drawn into error by too much haste in the matter of divorces and remarrying. A
divorced "woman must spend one night in prayer, seeking the will of the
First Prophet, before she may enter into any new alliance."
"Hmmph,"
muttered Uncle Haflz. "I would scarcely describe the young rarity out
there as being weak in understanding. I've never seen anyone catch on so fast
to the idea of keeping a double set of accounts, one for the Federation and one
for private purposes."
Calum
choked and Rafik trod on his foot. This was no time to resume the argument
about whether Hafiz was teaching Acorna suitable things!
"However,"
Rafik said, "to allay your anxieties, I will do better than swearing on
the Three Books. I will swear on this copy of the Holy Hadith themselves,
authenticated by Moulay Suheil, and most sacred to me and to all true
believers." He drew a datahedron from his pocket and kissed it reverently
before extending it in his cupped hands. Uncle Hafiz recoiled as if from a snake.
"You
swear on your Hadith," he said, "and I will make my oath on the Books
of the Three Prophets. Thus each of us will be bound by that which one holds
most sacred."
"An
excellent idea," said Rafik.
Calum's
attention wavered during the lengthy oath-taking which followed, most of -which
was not performed in Basic Interlingua but in the language of Hafiz and Rafik's
culture of origin. It sounded to him like a group of birds choking on something
unpleasant, but it seemed to make sense. At one point they called for Acorna to
be brought into the room; she stood quite still under her veils while more of
the unfamiliar language spouted over her head. At the end Hafiz kissed the
topmost of his Three Books, and Rafik pressed his lips to the datahedron again,
and both men smiled as if in the satisfaction of a bargain concluded.
"With
your permission. Uncle, I will now escort my former wife to the place set apart
for her, that she may begin her vigil of prayer. I know you will not wish to
delay the final ceremony," Rafik said.
"Since
I myself am not a Neo-Hadithian," Hafiz said, "I see no need at all
for this delay."
"I
must report to her family that all has been handled decently and in good
order," said Rafik. "It is a matter touching my honor. Uncle."
Hafiz
muttered and grumbled but finally let them go, after receiving Rafik's
assurances that Acorna's prescribed time of prayer need not interfere with her
attending the wedding feast that night. "Only family," he promised.
"Only ourselves and your partner."
Rafik
looked surprised. "You will break bread with an unbeliever?"
"You
consider him as family and entrust him with your honor in the persons of your
wives," said Hafiz, looking as though he had just swallowed something very
unpleasant. "In loving respect to you, my dear nephew, I can do no
less."
"What,"
Calum demanded as soon as they were safely in the secluded rooms upstairs,
"was all that about?"
"Well,
you didn't want me to hand Acorna over to him then and there, did you? I had to
come up with some reason to delay. Now that the credits and registration are in
order and he's told me the passwords to access them, we can sneak out tonight.
Have to wait until after this blasted feast, though." Rafik frowned.
"I wish I knew why he insists on having Gill there. He obviously didn't
like the idea above half."
"Makes
it convenient for us," Calum pointed out.
"That,"
said Rafik, "is what worries me."
Out of
consideration for Rafik's supposedly strict religious views on the seclusion of
women, Hafiz arranged that no servants should be present at the celebration
feast that night.
"You
see, dear boy," he said, gesturing at the spacious dining hall with its
carved lattice-work screens and colorful silk-covered divans, "all is
prepared. The table is, after all, adequately furnished with heating and
chilling chambers to keep food at the proper temperature. What could be
pleasanter than a simple dinner en famlile? The employment of dozens of
servants to carry trays and pour drinks is merely an outmoded tradition of
conspicuous consumption, something which the Third Prophet enjoined us to
abjure at all times. Do you not agree?"
Gill
was glad that he, as an unbeliever, and Calum, as Rafik's senior wife, were not
expected to reply to this statement. All he had to do was keep a straight face
as Rafik praised the modesty and simplicity of Hafiz s arrangements . . . and
try to keep his eyes from wandering over the incredibly lavish display before
them.
A long,
low table stretched between two rows of divans covered in emerald and crimson
silk. Dishes covered the table from one end to the other: bowls of pilau,
silver trays of sizzling-hot pastries, sliced fruits arranged as an elaborate
still life on a specially inset chilling tray, skewers of grilled lamb, dishes
of yogurt with chopped mint, Kilumbemba shellfish fried in batter, crystallized
rose petals and sugared goldenhearts. . . . Between the dishes stood tall
tumblers frosted with ice, and a pitcher of some sparkling fruit drink rested in
another cooling tray beside Hafiz's divan at the head of the table. The far
wall of the dining hall appeared to be a cliff of moss-covered rock with a veil
of water running down its surface and splashing into a recirculating stream at
the bottom of the miniature cliff. From behind the carved lattices, a recording
of Kitheran harp music provided a softly tinkling counterpoint to the sound of
the falling -water.
"We
shall even pour our own drinks," Hafiz said, gesturing toward the pitcher.
"I have seen that as a good Neo-Hadithian you follow the First Prophet's
words and abjure wine, rather than accepting the dispensations of the Second
and Third Prophets. I myself usually enjoy a Kilumbemba beer with my dinner,
but for tonight I -will share the iced madigadi juice prepared for my
guests."
Rafik
nodded, rather sadly. Actually, as both Calum and Gill well knew, he would have
liked a mug of cold Kilumbemba beer, the other specialty of that planet, to
wash down the fried shellfish.
"Don't
even think about it," Calum muttered in his ear. "If I can wrap
myself up like a white balloon to substantiate your conversion, you can drink
fruit juice for one evening and like it."
"Your
senior write is disturbed?" Hafiz inquired. "Not another fit, I
trust? "
Rafik
tried to step on Calum's foot, but only succeeded in trampling the hem of his
robe. "She is in excellent health, thank you, Uncle," he replied,
"only inclined to chatter about trifles after the manner of women."
"Women
who are not kept veiled and secluded," Hafiz pointed out rather acidly,
"have more of a chance to develop Interesting topics of conversation-oh,
all right, all right! I won't say another word against the revelations of
Moulay Suheil."
"We
are returning to the pure traditions of our original faith," Rafik said
stiffly.
"Then
let us enjoy another tradition tonight," Hafiz said, "and drink from
the same pitcher in token of perfect trust within the family." He made a
show of pouring the iced madigadi juice into each of their cups, finishing with
his own and taking a deep draught from it as proof of the drink's harmlessness.
Rafik raised his own cup, but a sudden commotion outside the room surprised him
into setting it down again. There was a babble of excited voices, then the
high-pitched wail of a woman: an old, quavering voice.
"Aminah!"
Hafiz sighed and stood up. "Tapha's old nurse. She treats each bit of news
from the south as another installment in a vid-drama. I had best calm her.
Forgive the interruption. Please, go on with your meal; I may be some
time." He strode out of the room quickly, a frown between his brows.
Gill
took a handful of the batter-fried shellfish and crunched them with enjoyment.
"Well,
he did say to go on," he said when Rafik raised an eyebrow, "and even
if the table does keep these things hot, it can't keep them crisp
indefinitely." He took a deep breath and reached for his own cup.
"Must say, I've never had them served quite so hot and spicy before."
"Any
decent food tastes overspiced to you barbarians," Rafik said.
"Acorna, what are you doing?" She kept pushing and pawing at her
veils until they were a tangled mess around her face.
"Here,
honey, let me fix that for you," Gill said. "Any reason why she shouldn't put her veils back for
dinner, Rafik? It's not as if Hafiz is gonna see anything he hasn't seen
before."
"Only
that he may wonder why I do not permit my other wife to unveil," Rafik
said with resignation. "I suppose I shall have to explain that she is so
ugly, I fear the sight would put him off his food."
Calum
kicked him under the table.
"That's
odd," Gill said, feeling Acorna's forehead.
"Do
you think she has a fever?"
"Her
skin is cool enough. But look at her horn!"
Great
drops of clear liquid were forming on the fluted sides of Acorna's horn. She
mopped at them ineffectually with the end of her veil.
"Have
a cool drink, sweetie, it'll make you feel better," Gill suggested,
holding her cup for her.
Acorna
stared at it blankly for a moment, then took the cup from Gill and, instead of
putting it to her mouth, dipped her horn into it.
"What
the deuce?"
"She
does that with the dirty bathwater, too. Acorna, sweetie-pie, do you think the
juice is dirty? It's okay, that stuff floating in it is just madigadi pulp."
"Is
not dirty," Acorna said firmly.
"Well,
that's good-"
"Is
bad." She dipped her head again, this time plunging her horn into Gill's
cup. "Now is one hundred percent good," she informed him.
The
three men looked at one another. "He made a great show of pouring all our
drinks out of the same pitcher," Gill said.
"Why
would he want to poison us? He thinks-I mean," Calum said, choosing his
words carefully in case of unseen listeners, "we have agreed to all his
wishes."
"Oh,
it's just a foolish fancy of the kid's," Rafik said easily, but he rose to
his feet as he did so and offered Acorna his cup and Calum's. "Nothing to
worry about. Let's go on with the meal!" At the same time a subtle head
shake warned both the other men not to take his words literally.
Acorna's
horn broke out in drops of sweat again as she brought her face close to Rafik's
cup. She dipped her horn into the juice for a moment, then smiled in
satisfaction.
"Ah-just
a minute," Rafik said as she moved to repeat the treatment on Calum's cup.
He put that one back on the table and offered Acorna the cup Hafiz had been
drinking out of. Her horn showed no reaction.
"How
did he do it?" Gill mouthed soundlessly.
"The
drug must have been in the cups, not in the pitcher," Rafik replied in the
merest thread of a whisper. Quickly he exchanged Calum's cup with Hafiz's, then
sat and served himself a plate of rice and pilau. "Come on, wives,"
he said loudly and heartily, "let us feast and rejoice!" He piled Acorna's
plate high with fruit and greens just as Hafiz rejoined them.
"I
trust the news from the south is not bad, Uncle?" Rafik inquired.
Hafiz's
thin lips twisted in an unpleasant gri-mace. "It could be worse," he
said. "It could be better. Yukata Batsu has sent back the rest of Tapha.
Alive," he added, almost as an afterthought. "Aminah cannot decide
whether to bewail the loss of his ears or celebrate the return other
nursling."
"Felicitations
on your son's safe return," said Gill. "And-er-I'm sorry about his
ears."
Hafiz
shrugged. "My surgeon can replace the ears. No great loss; the original
ones stuck out too far anyway. As for Tapha himself..." Hafiz sighed.
"No surgeon can fix -what should have been between the ears. He, too,
expected me to congratulate him on his return, as if he did not realize that
Batsu freed him as a gesture of contempt, to show how little he fears Tapha's
attempts against him. He is as foolish as his mother was." He twirled a
ball of sticky rice on two fingers, dipped it into the pilau, and downed the
combination in a single gulp. "Eat, eat, my friends. I apologize for
allowing this minor contretemps to interrupt our pleasant family dinner. Do try
the madigadi juice before it loses its chill; as it warms, the subtleties of
the flavor are lost to the air." He took another lengthy pull from the cup
beside him.
"Indeed,"
said Rafik, following his uncle's example, "this particular juice has some
subtle, lingering aftertaste that is unfamiliar to me."
"Almost
bitter," Gill commented. "Good, though," he added, quickly
taking a deep drink before Hafiz could become too alarmed.
Since
none of them had any idea what drug Hafiz had put in the cups or how quickly it
was supposed to act, they watched him for cues. Within fifteen minutes Hafiz
had all but stopped eating, as if he had forgotten the food on his plate. His
speech wandered and he began forgetting what he had said and repeating himself.
"Ever
hear te' one about the two racehorses, the Sufi dervish and the jinn?" He
launched into a long complicated story which Gill suspected would have been
extremely obscene if Hafiz had not kept losing the thread of his own narrative.
Rafik
and Gill ignored their own food, leaned forward over the table and laughed as
loudly as Hafiz did. Calum leaned back against the wall, an anonymous white
bundle of veiling, and produced a rattling snore. Acorna's eyes went from one
man to the next, the pupils narrowing to slits until Gill surreptitiously
squeezed her hand.
"Don't
worry, sweets," he whispered under cover of Hafiz's raucous laughter,
"it's just a game."
Finally
Hafiz abandoned the Sufi dervish in midsentence and slumped forward into his
rice. The other three waited tensely until his snores convinced them that he
had lost consciousness.
"Okay,
let's get out of here," Gill whispered, standing and swinging Acorna to
his shoulder. Calum followed suit, but Rafik bent over his uncle s form for a
moment, fumbling in his stained silk robes.
"Come
on, Rafik!"
Finally
Rafik, too, stood, showing them a
holographic card that flashed a complex threedimensional image of
interlaced knots.
"Uncle's
skimmer key and port pass," he said happily. "Or -were you planning
to walk to the port?"
Hey,
Smirnoff?" Ed Minkus called to his office mate in the Kezdet Security
office.
"What?"
Des Smirnoff replied without real interest, for he was scrolling through some
routine ID checks as fast as he could and had to keep his eye on the screen,
just in case something interesting turned up in the latest haul of dockside
indigents.
"Gotta
match on an ooooold friend."
"Who?"
Smirnoff was still not dividing his attention.
"Sauvignon,"
and he immediately had Smirnoff's complete attention.
"I
told you then," and Smirnoff savagely stabbed the hold key, "that
perp wasn't dead. He may have had to lie low a while. . . . Send the item over
here." He drummed his fingers for the few seconds it took for Ed to
transfer the file to his screen. "Registered as the Uhuru now? Couldn't
change the origin, could he? So the ship's still Kezdetian."
"I
can't imagine a clever perp like Sauvignon ever returning ..."
"Voluntarily,
at least," Ed interjected with a sly grin.
".
. . into our own dear jurisdiction. But you ..."
"Never
know, do you?" Ed had a habit of finishing Smirnoff's sentences for him.
"I
can," and Smirnoff's thick fingers stabbed each key as he typed in a
command, "make sure that we, and our dearest nearest neighbors in space,
are aware that the Uhuru is of great interest to us here in Kezdet."
He gave
the final number of the code sequence such an extra pound that Ed flinched.
Keyboards suffered frequent malfunctions at Smirnoff's station, to the point
where both Supply and Accounting now required explanations. They always got the
same one: "Get a new supplier, these boards are made of inferior materials
or they'd stand up under normal usage."
Since
most of such equipment was made in the sweat-levels (and quite possibly out of
inferior grade plastics), the ones who suffered were the unfortunates who eked
out a bare living anyhow. Who cared how many got fired and replaced? There were
always enough eager youngsters with nimble fingers to take over.
Having
instituted a program that would apprise the office of Lieutenant Des Smirnoff
the instant the beacon was scanned in any of the nearby systems which
cooperated, however unwillingly, with Kezdet Guardians of the Peace (a piece of
this and a piece of that was what the neighbors said), the proximity of the
Uhuru would now send off bells, whistles, and sirens.
"So
the report of Sauvignon s death is greatly exaggerated," Des said,
grinning with evil anticipation of future revenge. "How delightful."
"Sauvignon
may be dead," Ed suggested. "The new reg lists three names, and none
of them are Sauvignon's."
"Whose
are they?"
"Rafik
Nadezda, Declan Giloglie, and Calum Baird," Ed replied.
"
What?" Smirnoff erupted from his chair like a cork from a bottle of fizzy.
"Say again?"
Ed
obeyed, and suddenly the names rang the same bell in his head.
"Them?"
Smirnoff
punched one big fist into the palm of his other hand, jumping about the office
in what had to be some sort of a victory gig, waving his arms and hollering in
pure, undiluted, spiteful joy.
"Is
everything all right?" and their junior assistant, a female they had to
employ to keep the Sexist Faction satisfied, though Mercy Kendoro's role in
their table of organization began and ended with taking their messages and
supplying them with quik-sober. On seeing Smirnoff's unusual antics she had
hoped that one, he'd been poisoned, or two, was having a fatal heart attack or
convulsion. Sometimes, not even getting out of the barrios of Kezdet made up
for the humiliation she suffered at their hands.
"I
got 'em. I got all of 'em," Smirnoff was chanting as he bounced from one
large boot to the other. " Close the door!" he roared when he saw
Mercy's head peering in at them. Her reflexes were excellent and he missed her
when his big boot slammed the door shut.
"Weren't
Nadezda, Giloglie, and Baird those miners who marooned us on an asteroid before
they made off with a fortune in titanium?"
"They
were, they are, and they will be ours," Des Smirnoff said, rubbing his
hands together. The expression of great gleeful anticipation intensified on his
face. His thick upper lip curled: a sight that made many timorous souls tremble
in fear. He was not a man to cross and he had sworn vengeance on these three by
all that he held sacred. Instead of prayers, Smirnoff had a nightly litany of
those who had crossed his path and on whom he was sworn to take revenge. This
not only kept the names alive, but topped up his capacity for vengeance,
certain in his own little mind that he would one day cross paths with every one
of those in his bad books. This mining crew would pay dearly for the indignity
and suffering he had endured at their hands. He was still paying off his share
of the repairs to the patrol cruiser. Kezdet Guardians of the Peace were not a
forgiving authority and you ponied up out of your own credits for any damage
above normal wear and tear. And for rescue and salvage.
In
point of fact, he hadn't actually paid out of his own private account, but out
of the public one into which he had dribbled the credits required for
the
monthly payments from his little side business of protection monies. But he had
other plans for that credit and meant to take it out of the miners' hides if he
ever had the chance.
"So
Sauvignons off the hook?"
"Nonsense."
Des Smirnoff swiped the racks of data cubes off their rack. "They've got
the ship, they've got the fines accrued against it." The thought had him
settling at his keyboard again while he accessed those fines and chuckled at
the amount of interest that had accrued since Sauvignon's disappearance.
"You'll
own the ship, too, at that rate," Ed said, sniffing enviously. He tried
not to show it, but he did really, honestly, deeply, sincerely feel that Des
kept more than his fair share of the covert rewards of their partnership. He
was waiting for the day when he found some little inconsistency in Smirnoff's
duties that he could use as a handle to bargain for a larger percentage.
"What'd
I do with a crappy old tub like Sauvignon cruised? It was all but falling apart
as it was. Amazing he survived. I was sure we'd penetrated the life-support
system with that last bolt we fired at him."
"Yeah,"
and Ed scratched his head, "sure looked like a direct hit, if I remember
correctly."
"You
better remember my aim is always accurate."
"Odd
though that the ship survived, isn't it?"
Des
Smirnoff held up one hand, his big, bloodshot brown eyes -widening.
"Wait
a nano ..."
"It
didn't survive," Ed said. "Those miners have switched beacons."
"Do
we have their IDs?" But he didn't wait for an answer, his big fingers
slamming down the keys as he completed his own search. Then he flipped the
offending keyboard up, pulling it out of the desk socket and spinning it across
the room, where it crashed and split against the far wall. "We don't. We
should. They were MME, weren't they?"
"MME's
been absorbed by Amalgamated, I heard," Ed replied, disguising his sigh as
he opened the com unit to Mercy Kendoro. "Bring in a replacement keyboard.
Now."
When
Mercy entered, she handed the keyboard to Ed rather than approach Smirnoff, who
had his hands tucked up under his arms and was clearly seething over whatever
had caused him to break the latest keyboard.
"Rack
up those cubes, too, while you're in here. This office must be kept neat and up
to standard at all times," Des said and smiled anew as he saw the
trembling assistant bend to her task.
Later
that day. Mercy Kendoro took her midday meal break at a workers' canteen near
the docks, where the balding owner teased her affectionately about moving into
the tech classes and forgetting her origins.
"That's
right, Ghopal," Mercy replied as always, "if I'd remembered how
terrible your stew is, there's no way I'd be eating here! What did you
put in
it this morning, dead rats? At least three of them, I'd guess; I've never seen
this much meat in it before."
Ghopal
took the teasing in good part and personally cleared away Mercy's bowl when she
had finished eating. Later, when the midday rush had petered out, he put in a
call to Aaaxterminators, Inc. "We've found three dead rats in various
spots too near the kitchens for my liking. If you'll send out a man I'll give
him a list of the specific locations so he can find where the vermin are hiding
and clear them out. And-as usual, no need to trouble the Public Health office
with the matter. Eh? After all, I'm dealing with it promptly, like a good
citizen."
Ed
Minkus came across that transcript when reviewing the day's tapes of private
calls from citizens in whom Security took an interest.
"Hey,
Des," he called, "Time to pay a little semi-official visit to Ghopal.
He's having problems with vermin again, and he'd probably be grateful not to
have the matter called to the attention of Public Health. About fifteen percent
grateful, I estimate."
"Small-time,"
Des grunted. "If I catch those miners-and I will-we won't need to bother
shaking down dockside bistros any more."
But by
then the representative of Aaaxterminators, Inc. had called at the back door of
Ghopal's kitchen and had gone away with the note Ghopal handed him, promising
to take care of the rat problem.
On his
way back to the office, the Exterminators man stopped at a kiosk and bought a
cluster of happy-sticks, paying in real paper credits from an impressive wad he
kept in his inner coverall pocket. He flirted outrageously with the girl who
sold him the happy-sticks, which might have explained why she seemed a bit
flustered and took longer than usual to give him his change.
That
evening, as always, Delszaki Li's personal assistant went out to the same kiosk
to buy a flimsy of the racing form sheets for the next day. He and the kiosk
girl laughed over the old man's refusal to subscribe to the racing news via
personal data terminal and agreed, as they always did, that if a nice old man
was embarrassed by his fascination with this form of gambling and thought that
buying flimsies with hard credits would preserve his anonymity, there was no
need to disturb his illusions. The folded flimsy sheet Pal Kendoro took back to
the Li mansion was thicker than usual. After he had unfolded it and read the
contents of the inner page, he dissolved that page in water, poured the water
down the drain, and requested an immediate interview with his employer.
"Sauvignons
ship has been reported in transit, sir," he said, standing as straight as
a military attache before the old man in the specially equipped hover-chair. A
wasting neuromuscular disease had rendered Delszaki Li's legs and right arm all
but useless, but the intelligence in those piercing black eyes was as keen as
ever, and with one hand and voice commands he had remained in charge of the Li
financial empire for fifteen years sir, after enemies had predicted his speedy
demise. Pal Kendoro was proud to serve as Li's arms, legs, and eyes outside the
mansion.
"And
Sauvignon?"
"I
don't know. There is still a party of three aboard the ship, but the names are
not those of our people. It is now registered to Baird, Giloglie, and
Nadezda," Pal recited from memory.
"Would
have been most unwise for Sauvignon and party to retain same names," Li
pointed out. "Do you think they attempt to make contact with us
again?"
"Unlikely.
This information came from a Guardians' office."
Delszaki
Li's black eyes snapped fire. "Then is most urgent to find them before
Guardians do. Must be you who goes. Pal. Wish I could keep you here, but who
else would be believed as doing errand for me and at same time reestablish
contact with Sauvignon?"
Pal
nodded agreement. Most of the members of the league were from the underclass, with
no visible means of going off-planet, no obvious reason to go, and no
off-planet passes. The few, such as Pal, who had risen through the tech
schools, were the only ones who could travel freely without inconvenient
questions being asked. But he didn't like leaving Delszaki Li with only his
regular servants, at least half of whom were secretly in the pay of Kezdet
Guardians of the Peace-and secure in the belief that their second source of
income was a secret.
"If
I might make a suggestion, sir, you will need a personal assistant while I'm
gone. My sister might be able to oblige."
"Mercy?"
"No!
She's too useful where she is. My older sister, Judit; I don't think you've
ever met her. She's brilliant. Finished Kezdet tech schools at sixteen and scored
highly enough on the final exams to win a scholarship to study off-planet.
She's working in the psych section at Amalgamated's space base."
"Would
be willing to leave this fine job?"
"Like
a shot, sir. She hates the place, was only working there for the money to put
Mercy and me through school so we, too, could escape the barrios. It should be
safe enough for her to return to Kezdet. Due to leaving so early, she's never
been . . . active," Pal said delicately.
"And
therefore is unknown to the Guardians' offices, except as sister to girl who
works as their assistant." Li nodded his satisfaction. "Could hardly
have a better guarantor." Li chuckled quietly. "Is good, Kendoro.
Send word to sister, but do not wait for her arrival. I shall manage well enough
for few days, and Sauvignon may need help."
"If
it is Sauvignon," Pal said under his breath, but the old man heard.
"And
if is not Sauvignon, then maybe ship in hands of those who kill our friends. In
which case ..."
"Terrorism
is against the principles of the league, sir. Despite -what they say about us
in the newscasts."
"Is
extermination of rats," Li snapped. "Is not terrorism."
So the
chain of information from the Guardians' office to the Li mansion ended as it
had begun, with a discussion of dead rats.
"I
want that boy," Hafiz told his trusted lieutenant, Samaddin.
"With
respect, patron, I thought it was a girl."
"What?
Oh-the curiosity. Yes, well, of course I want her, too. But I want young Rafik
more. The son of a camel and a whore outsmarted me!"
"With
all respect, patron!" Samaddin bowed even lower. "Forgive me, but the
patron would not wish, later, to recall that he had spoken of his sister in
such terms."
"Family!"
Hafiz said in disgust. "When they double-cross you, you can't even curse
them properly. Get me that sheep-buggering boy, Samaddin."
"Consider
it done," Samaddin promised. "Er you want him with his balls or
without them?"
"You
idiot! You misbegotten son of a jinn's meeting with a jackass, may the grave of
your maternal grandmother be defiled by the dung of ten thousand syphilitic
she-camels!" Hafiz indulged the bad temper resulting from a major drug
hangover and the loss of his prized unicorn by abusing Samaddin for several
minutes, while his lieutenant's expressionless face grew steadily closer to
purple than its normal creamy tan. Finally Hafiz calmed down enough to explain
that he wanted Rafik back alive and unharmed, and especially with his
generative capacities intact.
"He'll
pay for what he did to me, never fear. But after he works off his debt, I've
got plans for the boy. Do you know how long it's been since anybody
double-crossed me, rather than the other way round, Samaddin? He's got the
brains and the guts to take over after me, and I want him to have the balls to
sire more sons, too. I'm going to adopt him and name him my heir. Well? What
are you staring at? Perfectly normal practice-good families, no son to carry
on, bring in a young relative."
"The
patron has a son," Samaddin murmured.
"Not,"
said Hafiz grimly, "for long. Not after the way he screwed up the southern
operation. Soon as his new ears are fixed, I'm sending him back to do the job
right this time."
"Patron!
This time Yukata Batsu will kill him!"
"Sink
or swim," Hafiz said with a benign smile, "sink or swim." He
considered for a moment. "Better not send him until you've got Rafik
safely back here, though. The family is short of young males at the moment.
Tapha is, I suppose, better than nothing."
"Waste
not, want not," Samaddin said helpfully.
In the
curtained room where Tapha lay with his head wrapped in bandages, old Aminah
whispered with the servant girl she'd sent to dust the latticework outside
Hafiz's office. She raised her hands and eyes to heaven in horror when she
heard Hafiz's plans for his own son.
"What
shall we do?" she wailed. "If he goes back to the south, that fiend
Yukata Batsu will surely kill him. And if he stays here, that other fiend, his
father, will kill him. We must smuggle him away as soon as he has healed from
surgery. There must be some place where he can hide."
Aminah's
wailing awakened Tapha, and he struggled to sit up in his bed. "No,
Aminah. I will not hide."
"Tapha,
nursling! You heard me?" Aminah fluttered to his side.
"Yukata
Batsu took my outer ears, not the brain which hears and understands,"
Tapha said sourly, "and a deaf beggar would have been awakened by thy
wailing, old woman. Now tell me all that you know?."
When
Aminah had poured out her story, Tapha lay back on his pillows and considered.
His face was somewhat paler than it had been, but that might have been from the
exhaustion of sitting up.
"I
will not hide," he declared again. "It is unbefitting a man of my
lineage. Besides, there is no place where my beloved father, may dogs defile
his name and grave, could not find me if he wished. There is only one thing to
do." He smiled sweetly at Aminah. "You will tell my beloved father
that I am not recovering from the restorative surgery, that it is feared I will
lose my life to an infectious fever brought back from the southern
marshes."
"But,
my little love, you grow stronger with every hour! You have no fever; I, -who
have always nursed you, should know."
"Try
not to be more stupid than you were made, Ammah," Tapha said. "Since
when is it necessary to declare to my father the exact truth of what passes in
these rooms? Or will you no longer protect me as you did when I was your
nursling in truth, and you lied to deflect the wrath of my father over minor escapades?"
Aminah
sighed. She had lied for Tapha too many times to stop now.
"But
the deception must soon be discovered, my darling," she pointed out.
"You cannot pretend to lie abed with the marsh fever forever."
"No.
But while my father is staying well away from these rooms for fear of the
infection, I can get off-planet. I do not think he will kill you when he
discovers the deception," Tapha added after a moment's thought. "He
may not even beat you very badly, for you are old and weak, and it is shame to
harm one's servants."
"Dear
Tapha," Aminah said, "don't worry about me. My life is as nothing
compared to a single hair of your head."
Tapha
had no quarrel with this assessment.
"And
so you will hide after all?"
"By
no means." Tapha smiled. "By no means. Running away and hiding offers
only a temporary safety. There is only one way to make sure that my position as
my father's heir remains unchallenged, and that he treasures my life as a
loving father ought. I shall simply have to find my cousin Rafik," he
said, "before Samaddin does."
The Uhuru was unloading a collection of miscellaneous minerals on Theloi
when Calum was approached by a courteous stranger.
"I
could not help overhearing your discussions with Kyrie Pasantonopolous," he
said. "Allow me to introduce myself- loannis Georghios, local
representative for ... a number of businesses. I had the impression that your
dealings with the Pasantonopolous family had been less than satisfactory?
Perhaps you would allow me to inspect your cargo. I might be able to make you a
better offer."
"I
doubt it," Calum said sourly. "It's the mineral resources around
Theloi that were unsatisfactory. We had to go all the way out to the fourth
asteroid belt to find anything worth mining, and then all we recovered from the
ferrous regolith was gold and platinum. Hardly worth the cost of the
journey-"
He
stopped abruptly as Rafik stepped on his foot and interrupted him. "But,
of course, the value of anything depends on how much the buyer desires it and
how little the seller cares for it," he continued smoothly. "Perhaps
one of the businesses you represent, Kyrie Georghios, would find some slight
use for our trivial and insignificant cargo. Don't run down our payload in
front of a purchaser," he added to Calum out of the corner of his mouth as
Georghios followed Gill to inspect the samples they had shown the
Pasantonopolous concern. "And
just "what -were you doing?" Calum demanded indignantly.
"Being
polite," Rafik said. "It's a different thing altogether. I think your
bargaining instincts have been dulled by too many safe years under contract to
MME. You'd better let me do the talking from now on."
"He
wants to take samples for his own office to test, and we're invited to dine
with him tonight to discuss an asteroid he wants us to explore," Gill
said, joining them. "He hinted it might be a good source of rhenium. I
suppose you think my bargaining instincts are atrophied, too, Rafik? "
"My
dear Gill," Rafik said amiably, "you never had any talent for
bargaining in the first place. We would do better to hand over the dealing to
Acorna, who, at least, has a flair for numbers."
"Better
if she's not seen too much," Calum said. "She'll have to stay on
board the Uhuru tonight."
The
other two agreed. Acorna had grown so fast that she could now pass for a short
man, and in miners' coveralls and with a bulky cap concealing her silver hair
and nascent horn, she could just get away with passing through the bazaars of
Theloi •without attracting too much attention. But they doubted her ability to
pass for human through a prolonged evening of bargaining and formal dining.
"Better,"
Rafik said, "if all three of you stay on board. Then you can't put your
foot in your mouth again, Calum."
"Calum
stays with Acorna, I go with you," Gill decided after a moment's
consideration. "We don't
know
this Georghios, and I don't think any of us should be going off alone with
strangers at present. We've annoyed too many people recently."
"He
may not be willing to tell a loudmouth like you about the rhenium
asteroid," Rafik warned.
"No,"
said Gill cheerfully, "but he won't bop me over the head in a dark alley,
either."
"You're
paranoid," said Rafik, but in the end it was he who recognized the trap
Georghios had laid for them.
"He
wants all four of us to dine with him," he reported after a telecom
conversation with Georghios. "Says he prefers to know that all partners
are in agreement before committing to a possibly hazardous venture like this
... it seems the rhenium asteroid is closer to Theloi's sun than we usually
work, and we'll need extra radiation shielding as well as protection from solar
flares."
"Partners?
Well, that lets Acorna out, anyway."
"He
specifically requested all of us," Rafik said, frowning. "Hinted that
if we didn't all show up, there'd be no deal. Now who does that remind you
of?"
"Sounds
like Hafiz," Gill said, nodding. "In which case we'd better take
Acorna along to check for poison."
"No,"
Rafik said slowly, "in which case we'd better leave now. I'll accept his
invitation-that will give us the afternoon to unload our payload, get what we
can out of the Pasantonopolous family, and take off for Kezdet."
"We
don't dare go to Kezdet," Calum pointed out.
Rafik
smiled. "All your survival instincts have atrophied. I knew it. Kezdet
makes as good an official flight plan as any, don't you think? We haven't
decided where to go next, and I wouldn't want to accidentally file a plan for
someplace near where we're actually going."
What
they were able to get from the Pasantonopolous concern for their gold and
platinum barely paid their expenses. They had to stop at the first system with
any mineral resources at all. That was Greifen, where the planetary government
was building a series of orbiting space stations for zero-g manufacturing and
could use all the pure iron the Uhuru could refine and send back into low
planetary orbit by drone. The profit per load was not much, since Greifen was
only willing to buy space-mined iron as long as the cost was less than that of
lifting their own planetary iron into orbit. But it was steady work, and while
the mag drive shipped buckets of iron back, they slowly accumulated a payload
of more valuable metals. They were almost ready to look for a buyer on Greifen
when Calum, who had been amusing himself during long refining processes by
breaking the security codes on bureaucratic messages from Greifen, raised the
alarm.
"I
don't think we'd better try to sell this stuff on Greifen," he told Rafik
when the other two miners checked the status of the latest processes. "In
fact, I think we'd better leave-now-and sell it someplace far, far away."
"Why?
Getting bored? Another hundred tons of iron and we should have accumulated
enough rhodium and titanium to make the trip seriously profitable."
"Listen
to this." Calum flicked a switch and the corn unit replayed the results of
his last few hours' eavesdropping on official Greifen business. "Somebody
has landed with a claim against the Uhuru for debts and damages incurred on
Theloi."
"We
didn't do any damage on Theloi," Gill said indignantly. "We didn't
have time!"
"Would
you like to explain that to a court that's been thoroughly bribed by Rafik's
Uncle Hafiz?" Calum asked. "He must be really mad at us. I didn't
think he'd follow us out of Theloi."
"He
didn't," said Rafik, examining the flimsy of the transmissions Calum had
decoded. "At least . . . this does not have the flavor of my uncle's work.
He prefers to avoid the courts. And look at the name of the supposed creditor.
That's not a Theloian name."
"Farkas
Hamisen," Gill read over Rafik's shoulder.
"Farkas,"
Rafik said, "means 'wolf in the Kezdet dialect. ... I think maybe it was
not such a bright idea after all, to file a flight plan for Kezdet. That must
be how they caught on to us."
"They'd
have no reason to go after this ship," Gill protested. "Officially
we're not the Khedive anymore. We're the Uhuru. We've even got the beacon to
prove it."
Rafik
shrugged. "Do you really want to stick around and find out what they've
got against us?"
"No
way," Calum and Gill said in unison.
They agreed to forget about their credits from Greifen for the last
drone loads of iron. As for the payload, as Rafik pointed out, any number of
systems would be happy to get supplies of titanium. Nered, for instance, was a
high-tech and highly militarized planet suffering from a severe shortage of
mineral resoinces. . . .
"The
trouble with selling to Nered," Gill pointed out gloomily after they had
reached that planet and concluded their transaction, "is that there's
nothing in this system for us to mine. We've got an empty ship ..."
"And
a great many Federation credits," Rafik said. "They really wanted
that titanium."
"Yeah,
but these people are military mad. I bet there's nothing to buy here except
paramilitary gear and espionage gadgets."
"We'll
spend it elsewhere," Rafik said. "Most of it. Tonight, let's
celebrate solvency by taking Acorna out to dinner in the best restaurant on Nered."
"Oh,
boy," Calum said, "I can hardly wait to check out Nered haute
cuisine. What's the main course, bandoleers in hot pepper sauce? With gingered
grenades for afters?"
"She
can't go dressed like that," Gill announced, gesturing in her direction.
Over
the course of the past year, Acorna had shot up in height until even Gill's
coveralls were short on her. Inside the ship she preferred to relax without the
binding, too-small clothing. Calum and Rafik turned and stared now at Acorna,
where she rested in a net, happily perusing a vid on carbonyl reduction
techniques for nonferrous metals. Her silvery curls had grown into a long mane
that tumbled fetchingly over her forehead and tapered down her spine. Her lower
parts -were covered in fine white fur. She was taller than Gill and as
flat-chested as a child, with nothing of an incipient mammary development
visible.
"I
wonder how old she is?" Calum speculated in a low voice, so as not to
attract Acorna's attention.
"Chronologically,"
Rafik said, "probably about three. It's been two years since we found her.
Physiologically, I'd guess around sixteen. Evidently her species matures
quickly, but I don't think she's come to her full growth yet; look at the size
of her wrist and ankle bones relative to her height."
"Six
feet six and counting," Calum muttered.
And
that would shortly pose a serious problem. The Khedive had been designed for
three small-toaverage-size miners. Gill's broad shoulders and excess height had
put a strain on the system; sharing the quarters with a fourth passenger had
necessitated some fancy reshuffling of the interior arrangements; fitting a
seven-foot-tall unicorn into the small confines of the mining ship was
virtually impossible.
Acorna
looked up from her vid. "Calum," she said, "could you explain,
please, how this sodium hydroxide reduction process forms liquid TiCl2?"
"Umm,
that's a late stage," Calum said. He bent to draw a quick diagram on the
vid screen next to the explanatory text and pictures. "See, you have to
pump dilute HCl into the electrolysis cell ..."
"They
should have said so explicitly," Acorna complained. Her language use had
asymptotically approached standard Basic in the last year; only a slight
formality in her speech, and a faintly nasal inflection, gave any suggestion
that she -was not a native speaker of the galactic interlingua.
"And
developmentally," Rafik murmured, watching Calum and Acorna threshing out
the details of electrolytic metals separation, "she's four going on
twenty-four."
"Yeah,"
Gill agreed. "She knows almost as much as we do about mining, metallurgy,
and navigation of small spacecraft, but she doesn't know anything about, well,
you know ..."
"No,
I don't know," Rafik said, watching Gill's face turn as red as his beard.
"You
know. Girl stuff."
"You
think it's time for one of us to sit her down and have a little talk about the
human reproductive system? Frankly, I don't see the point," said Rafik,
fighting his own embarrassment at the idea. "For all we know, her race may
reproduce by-by pollinating flowers with their horns."
"That
fur doesn't cover everything," Gill said, "and anyway, I bathed her
as often as you did last year. Anatomically, she's feminine." He looked
doubtfully at Acorna's long, slender body. "A flatchested female, but
female," he amended. "And she can't go on lounging around in nothing
but her long hair and white fur."
"Why not? Maybe her race doesn't have a nudity taboo."
"Well,
mine does," Gill shouted, "and I'm not having a half-naked teenage
girl parading around this ship!"
Acorna
looked up. "Where?"
She
never found out why all three men exploded in laughter.
They
still had the yards of white polysilk that Rafik had bought at the Mali Bazaar
to clothe his "wives" in approved Neo-Hadithian style. Gill hacked
off a length of fabric, Calum came up with some clip fasteners, and together
they wrapped the material around Acorna's waist and threw a fold of it over her
shoulders. A second length of fabric provided a loosely wrapped turban which
disguised her horn , . . well, sort of.
"This
is not comfortable," she complained.
"Honey,
we're not dressmakers. You can't go out to a nice restaurant in my old
coveralls. You'd better buy her some clothes while we're here," Gill said
to Rafik.
"You
buy the clothes, you're the one who cares," Rafik retorted, "and
you'll be lucky to find anything but army fatigues on this planet."
Rafik
had maligned the shopping resources of Nered unfairly. Both men and women at
the Evening Star restaurant were dressed like peacocks: the men elegant in
formal gray-and-silver evening wear, the -women a colorful garden of fashions
and styles from across the galaxy, all interpreted in brilliant jewel-toned
silks and stiff rustling retro-satins. In such a gaudy gathering the miners
hoped that they would escape notice. Their own formal wear was respectable, but
not comparable to the silver-flashed suits currently in vogue on Nered, and
Acorna, with neither jewels nor colorful silks to adorn her, should have looked
quite dowdy next to the fashionable upper class of Nered. Instead her
appearance had quite the opposite effect. Her height and slenderness, the
tumble of silvery curls falling down from her improvised turban, and the
simplicity of her white polysilk sari made her stand out in the crowd like a
lily in a bed of peonies. Heads turned as they were shown to their table, and
Rafik could tell from the swift calculation in the mai'tre d'hotel's eyes that
they were being given a far more prominent table than the one originally
intended for four working miners from off-planet. Bad luck, that, but there was
no sense in making a fuss over it now; that would only draw more attention
their way. They would simply have to make it through dinner as best they could,
and he would watch like a hawk to make sure Acorna's turban didn't fall off. He
also looked around to see if any one else was wearing a turban, or was as
slender as Acorna. You never knew in an interstellar area what sort of oddities
you'd encounter. Returning Acorna to her own people would solve a great many
problems!
He was
so intent on shielding Acorna from notice that the real danger, when it did
come, took him completely by surprise. A tense young man in dark brown military
fatigues thrust his way into the restaurant, knocked down a waiter carrying a
tray of soup bowls, and took advantage of the confusion to level three bursts
of laser fire at Rafik before making his escape.
Gill
knocked over his own chair in his haste to get to Rafik, but Acorna was faster,
kneeling over an ominously still figure. The shock of the attack sent isolated
nightmare images flitting through Gill's brain. Rafik wasn't moving; he should
have been screaming in pain-half his face was burned. Acorna fumbled at her
turban. Shouldn't let her do that. She had to stay covered. Doctor! They needed
a doctor! Some idiot was babbling about catching the assassin. Who cared about
that? Rafik was all that mattered.
Acorna
bent over Rafik, her horn exposed now, her eyes dark pools -with the pupils
narrowed to virtually invisible silver slits. She-nuzzled-at him with her horn.
It was heart-breaking to watch; a child mourning a parent. Gill thought numbly
that he should take her away. Let her grieve in private. Hide her before too
many people noticed the horn. But moving to Rafik's side felt like swimming
through heavy water, as though time itself had slowed around them, and when he
reached Acorna and Rafik, Calum gripped his shoulder and held him back.
"Wait,"
he said. "She can purify -water and air, and detect poison. Maybe she can
heal laser wounds."
Even as
they watched, the charred flesh on Rafik's face was replaced by smooth new skin
wherever Acorna's horn brushed it. She lingered for a moment -with her horn
just over his heart, as though urging his shocked system to continue breathing
and circulating. Then he stirred and opened his eyes and said irritably:
"What
in the name of ten thousand syphilitic she-devils happened?"
Calum
and Gill tried to tell him at once. Then those at the tables nearest them came
over, now that it seemed safe to approach, to add their impression of the
assassination attack. Those further away, of course, were demanding to know
what had happened. When they saw no visible damage but overturned chairs and food
spilled on the floor, they turned back to their own tables to resume their
interrupted meal. Calum managed to put the turban on the back of Acorna's head,
and Rafik pulled it over her horn. Then both he and Gill had to explain to
those nearest that no, Rafik had not been hit. No, the laser hadn't even
touched him.
Eventually
all agreed that an assassin had fired at Rafik and that the young lady had
fortunately reacted quickly enough to save him by knocking him out of his
chair, so that he was not even singed by a near miss. A small vociferous group
wanted to discuss their idea that the would-be assassin had looked remarkably
like Rafik. Gill and Calum let the story of the miraculous near miss stand and
discouraged plans to hunt down Rafik's attacker who had eluded his pursuer; all
they wanted was to get back to the Uhuru at once. They had attracted far too
much attention this evening!
Delszaki
Li and Judit Kendoro were finishing their evening meal when the dining room
corn unit beeped in the rising arpeggio that meant a scrambled message had been
received.
"That
will be Pal," Li said. He depressed a button on the left arm of his
hover-chair and the sequence of jagged, screeching noises that constituted the
scrambled message became audible. After a moment of silence, the corn unit's
decoding module whirred busily and the original message was heard, Pal's voice
somewhat distorted and metallic due to the limitations of the coding process.
"There
are four crew, not three, presently using the Uhuru. None of them is Sauvignon.
They have enemies; one of the crew was the target of an assassination attempt
this evening in a fashionable restaurant. The consensus of opinion is that the
assassin missed his target, but I was sitting close by in an attempt to listen
in on their conversation and I believe what actually happened was quite
different-and very interesting. The miner Rafik was actually struck by three
bolts of laser fire; I saw the burns myself. I also saw them healed with
astonishing speed by the fourth crew member. This person appears to be a very
tall young woman with slightly deformed fingers and a small ..." Pal's
voice paused for a moment and only the faint background noise introduced by
scrambling and decoding was audible. "Sir, you're not going to believe
this, but she seems to have a small horn in the middle of her forehead. And
when she nuzzled the man Rafik with this horn, his burns healed and he was
conscious within seconds. Sir, I saw this with my own eyes; I'm not making it
up or repeating gossip." There was another pause. "These people have
no discernible connection with our friends. But they are very interesting. I
have decided to maintain contact with them until you send further
instructions."
"A
ki-lin!" Delszaki exclaimed as the message ended. He turned exultantly to
Judit, who had been sitting as still as stone ever since Pal had mentioned the
horn. "My dear, we have been granted a portent of inestimable value. This
strange girl may be solution to Kezdets tragedy ... or she may only portend
coming of solution. We must bring her here!"
"Acorna,"
Judit said. "They called her Acorna. ... I thought they had all died;
their ship's beacon was found transmitting from a crash site. I cried for them
then, those three nice men and the little girl. Acorna." There were tears
standing in her eyes now.
"You
knew of a ki-lin and did not tell me?"
"Mr.
Li, I don't even know what a ki-lin is! And I thought she was dead. And it was
my fault, because I helped them get away. . . . They wanted to cut off her
horn, you see ..."
"You
must tell me all this story," Delszaki Li said. "But first, you must
understand the importance of the ki-lin and why I need her here."
"Ki-lin
... is that Chinese for 'unicorn'?"
Li
nodded. "But our beliefs are somewhat different from your Western tales
about the unicorn. Your people have stories of trapping and killing unicorns.
No Chinese -would ever kill a ki-lin, or even hunt one. The ki-lin belongs to
Buddha; she eats no animal flesh and will not even tread upon an insect. We
would not dream of trapping the kilin as a gift to a ruler; rather, the wise
and beneficent ruler hopes that his rule may be blessed by the arrival of a
ki-lin, who, if she comes to his court, is received as one sovereign visiting another.
The appearance of a ki-lin among humans is an omen of a great change for the
better or of the birth of a great ruler."
"And
you yourself believe this?"
Delszaki
Li cackled at the expression on Judit's face. "Let us say I do not
disbelieve it. How could I? I am scientist first, man of business only from
necessity. No ki-lin has ever appeared in recorded history, so there is no
evidence to prove or disprove the legends. But I am also man, not only scientist, and so I hope. I hope that
this ki-iin will presage the change which Kezdet-and Kezdet's children-so
desperately need. And so I shall instruct Pal to make these miners an offer
they cannot refuse. They will, in fact, be quite useful for one of my other
projects. And while we wait for their arrival, you shall tell me what you know
of this Acorna and her friends, and we shall search the Net for more
information about them. Never go into a bargaining session unprepared,
Judit-even if you are bargaining -with a ki-lin!"
It was
Acorna -who suggested they measure her to know how long the legs of pants and
sleeves of shirts should be, though why she needed to cover herself, when her
fur kept her quite comfortable, she couldn't understand.
"Didn't
you like what the women were wearing in the restaurant last night?" Rafik
asked. "I saw you looking around like your eyes would pop."
"Her
eyes don't pop," Gill said loyally, and then added, "but your pupils
were out to the edges of your eyeballs."
A sort
of dreamy expression crossed Acorna's face briefly and she gave a resigned
sigh. "None of those things would last a minute crawling down a conduit or
in an EVA suit."
"That's
another thing we have to get for you," Calum said, for he had -worried
about that lack. She could do with some hands-on mining experience to round out
her education in asteroid extraction techniques.
"You
would need to measure me for that," she said.
From
somewhere they unearthed a flexible tape in an old mechanic's kit. They made
most measurements using the instrumentation on board because most of what they
needed to measure was out in space and their EVA suits were equipped with
gauges. So they dutifully took down what they felt they needed to buy in
appropriate sizes.
Then
they argued over who was to go: Gill would definitely be useless in a dress
shop, or even a straight women's-apparel outfitter. Calum's taste, according to
Rafik, reposed only in his mouth. Rafik would have to go.
"Not
when there's an assassin out there somewhere waiting to snuff you out and this
time we can't take Acorna with us for emergency first aid."
"You
all go," Acorna said reasonably and before the decision-making turned into
one of the interminable arguments the men all seemed to enjoy so much. "I
am safe in here and will not answer any summonses."
That
was debated, too, but it was finally decided that with Gill bulking along
behind Rafik and Calum at his side, he would be less of a target and he would
at least not be able to complain when either of the others came back with what
he felt to be unsuitable raiment.
They
got the EVA suit first, since those could be custom-made and produced within an
hour. They'd collect it on their way back.
Despite
Gill's snide comments about the militaristic bias of Nered, it was still a
wealthy planet with the usual supply of flea markets, bazaars, and good
used-apparel shops. With proper measurements, they could also find the right
sizes of work clothing for their growing charge. Rafik even found attractive
upper-body wraps, made of an elasticized material that was guaranteed "to
fit any female form comfortably."
"She'll
like that," Rafik announced, and got three plain colored ones in blue,
green, and a deep purple that he felt would look -well with her silvery hair,
and two figured ones: one with flowers that might never have bloomed on any
planet in the galaxy, and another with daisies. At least that's what he told
the other two they were.
After
looking in several used-apparel shops, he also found some skirts with
elasticized waistbands, also guaranteed to fit any form comfortably.
"It
doesn't say 'female'," Gill said, about to discard a splendidly patterned
one.
"Mostly
females wear skirts," Rafik said, and took the skirt from his hand. He
found another that was filmy but opaque, in a misty blue that he thought Acorna
would like for the flow of it-a saleslady modeled the item-the texture of the
material, and the color.
It was
the saleslady, having discerned that the three attractive miners -were buying
for a female they all knew, decided to inveigle them to buy accessories, such
as "lingerie."
"You
men are all alike. Concentrate on the outer wear," she said teasingly
because the big, bearded redhead blushed to the color of his hair at the first
mention of underclothes, "and forget there has to be something
underneath."
Rafik
beamed at her. "My niece has just reached puberty, and I don't know what
girls do wear underneath ..." and he wiggled his fingers in helpless
innocence. "Her parents were killed in an accident and I'm her only living
relative, so we've sort of inherited her."
"Very
good to do so, too, if I may say so, Captain," Salitana said with more
than usual fervor, losing her suave salesperson persona. "When you think
of the traffic in orphaned children in this curve of the Milky Way, it's nice
to know some will take on responsibility for blood relations instead of selling
them out of hand to who-knowswhat miserable existence."
"Like
Kezdet?" Gill asked, having glanced around first to be sure they were not
overheard.
"Out-system
visitors call us paranoid," Salitana said, "but if your planet were
this close to Kezdet, you'd have a major defense budget, too."
The two
locked eyes, but Salitana immediately smiled her salesperson smile and turned
to her keyboard, accessing the stock for the sizes the niece needed: she had
the measurements before her. Rather than embarrass the men any further, she
ordered up what she felt would appeal to a young girl-what would have appealed
to her had she had any options in what she could wear in puberty. While those
were on their way to her station, she frowned down at the chest measurement.
Poor child was absolutely flat-chested. Well, maybe a training or an exercise
bra would suffice. She ordered several of those and the merchandise arrived,
already wrapped.
"You'll
find these suitable, I assure you," she
said,
handing them over.
The
redhead looked most grateful as the covered items slipped into the carisak he
held open.
"You
have been shopping. What about shoes, now? I can show you - "
"No,
that's fine. We got footwear in the bazaar," Rafik said, and hastily
proffered the plastic card used on Nered for purchases. He didn't like using a
card because it could lead back to the Uhuru more quickly than credits would,
but credits caused delays, since the shop had to check that these credits were
legal and backed by a respectable credit authority.
"We
should get her some shoes somewhere," Gill said when they were out on the
mall walkway again.
"The
skirts measured long enough to cover her feet, and you know how she hates
constriction," Rafik said. He was tired-probably a remnant of having been
dead yesterday for a few minutesand he was eager to show her what they'd
managed to find for her pleasure and adornment. "Let's get a hovercraft
back to the dock."
"I
thought you looked tired," Gill said solicitously, and waved his long arm
to attract a hire vehicle from the rank at the end of the mall.
One
zoomed in to the head of the rank and blinked its HIRED sign to show it would
take them, but they had to wait until it could get in the traffic pattern above
the busy area. It was just turning at the far end when the saleswoman rushed
out to them.
"Don't
take that one," she cried, and frantically pulled them back into the
store. "You've been followed. Your charges were monitored. Come with
me."
The
urgency with which she spoke and Rafik's so recent problem -with an assassin
impelled them to obey without question. Within the store again, she led them
through the crowd of shoppers in a circuitous route to the rear, down two
flights of steps, which had Rafik panting from exertion, and into a clearly
marked STORE PERSONNEL ONLY room, which she had keyed to open.
"I'm
sorry to act so presumptuously," she said, her face pale and eyes dark
with worry, "but for the Sake of your niece, I had to intervene. Anything
to save her if she has been orphaned in this quadrant of space. I don't know?
who's tracing you, but I do know it isn't Neredian-generated, so it has to be illegal
and you are in danger." She held up both hands defensively. "Don't
tell me anything, but if you'll trust me just a little longer, I contacted a
friend - "
"From
Kezdet?" Gill asked gently.
"How
did you know?" she said in a soundless gasp, one hand to her throat, her
eyes wider than Acorna's last night.
"Let's
just say, we know a bit about what happens on Kezdet from . . . other friends
..." Rafik said, "and we appreciate your help very much. Someone is
after me and I do not know why. Is there another way out of here?" "There will be shortly," she
said, glancing at the chrono on the -wall. "I cannot linger, or my absence
will be noted. The . . . party . . . will tap like this." She demonstrated
-with a long index finger nail on the door. "The . . . party . . . knows
the access code," and she gave a helpless little shrug. "You need it
to get in or out. But the party is absolutely trustworthy."
"A
child labor graduate?" Calum asked.
She
nodded. "I must go. Your niece is so lucky to have you! She has the right
to have you in good health and one piece."
She was
out the door again so fast they hadn't time to see what digits she had pressed.
"So,
who's after us? Or you, in particular?" Calum asked Rafik, leaning back
against a table.
"She
was a nice woman," Gill remarked, regarding the closed door with a bemused
expression on his face. "Not as nice as Judit..."
"Judit?"
Rafik and Calum said in unison, staring at him.
"She
came from Kezdet."
"And
has a brother still stuck there . . . but one begins to "wonder about the
main occupation of those lucky enough to leave it," Rafik said, then shook
his head. "Nah, it's more likely to be Hafiz who's after me . . . but
Uncle's style would be more along the lines of kidnapping me to take the place
of that idiot son who lost his ears.
"So
long as the idiot son didn't lose what's between them," and Calum
inadvertently paraphrased the subject of his sentence, "maybe it's him who
found out and is going to put an end to Uncle's future plans for you."
"Or
it could be our erstwhile friends from Amalgamated. They're still after us for
our ship," Gill said.
"Or
maybe it's that spurious claim of the Theloi?" Rafik said, rubbing his
chin thoughtfully.
"So
who's this Farkas Hamisen who hates your guts and registered the claim?"
Gill asked.
"Possibly
my earless cousin," Rafik said, nodding his head, as that fit the
parameters of such a relative.
"Or
it could be the Greifen, after the ore ..." Calum suggested.
"Well,
the ore's gone." Rafik dismissed that option. "Could it have anything
to do with our new beacon? And here Uncle Hafiz was so certain he was doing us
a real favor. ... I -wonder. ..."
"What?"
Calum and Gill said in chorus.
"Who
died in the wreck?"
Gill's
eyes popped and his mouth dropped.
"You
mean," and Calum recovered more quickly, "we got people we haven't
even annoyed after us, too?"
The tap
startled them in the silence that followed this observation.
The
door opened and a slender youth, with dark eyes that were wiser than his
countenance, gestured imperiously for them to follow him. Though they did,
Rafik hissed a bombardment of questions at the boy's back as they had to jog to
keep up with him.
"Shush,"
he said, holding up one hand, which Gill then noticed pointed at a spy-eye in
the corner of the corridor.
They
shushed and he hunched over the pad of a heavily plated metal door at the end
of the corridor. It opened slowly, because it was ten centimeters thick at
least, Rafik estimated as he slipped through when the space was wide enough.
They had to wait a few seconds longer for Gill to squeeze through. Their guide
had judged it finely enough-he'd already tapped in the close sequence, hauling
Gill's leg out of the way. The door closed a lot faster than it opened. The
youth then gestured to a goods van, thumbed open its back doors, and pushed the
three inside.
They
could feel it rising on its vertical pads and then it moved forward. Very
shortly they were all aware that they were in a traffic pattern of some kind,
for the van was not soundproof. What it had originally carried was moot since
there was nothing in it but three sweating miners. Rafik slid down one wall and
onto his rump and mopped his forehead.
"Dying
takes more out of you than I ever realized," he said. "I'm
bushed."
"Are
we all-bushed, I want to know?" Calum asked, hunkering down on his heels.
Gill sat, too, as his head was brushing the ceiling of the van.
"No,
you would have been," a new tenor voice said softly. "Salitana said
you have taken a niece from Kezdet..."
"No,
that's not correct," Rafik said. "She has been our charge for nearly
four years. She needs new clothes."
"Ah!
But you know of Kezdet?"
"Yes," Gill answered, "we met someone who got out of
there. Still trying to get her brother off that damned planet, too."
"Really?"
Surprise more than a prompting to continue colored that one word. "Now, we
are out of the mall. Where do I take you that you may safely descend?"
"The
docks," Rafik said.
"We
should pick up Acorna's EVA suit first," Gill said, and cowered at the
dirty looks the other two gave him for mentioning her name.
"At
which chandlers?" the youth asked in such a natural tone of voice that
some of their fury at his indiscretion was dispelled.
"The
one on Pier 48B," Rafik answered, still glaring at Gill.
"Can
do." And they all felt the van make a lefthand turn.
That
was right, Rafik thought and sneezed. Gill and Calum did, too. In fact they all
were in such a paroxysm of sneezing that they inhaled a more than sufficient
quantity of the sleep gas that circulated through the rear of the van.
Some
very astringent substance was being held under his nose and Rafik roused to
avoid it. To his utter surprise, a slim hand was held out to him.
"I
am Pal Kendoro and it is my sister Judit who was working at Amalgamated who had
paid for an education that would lift me out of the barrios of Kezdet. Are my
bona fides sufficient to restore me to your good graces?" Rafik glanced over at the still unconscious
forms of his two friends.
"All
of you -would overpower me. One I can handle," Pal Kendoro said, tilting
his head-evidently a family trait; Rafik saw the resemblance to his sister in
that pose. "I apologize for ..." and he waved his hand toward the
front of the cab, ". . . the necessity, but I was seeking another whom I
thought might be you."
Rafik
straightened up. He'd a crick in his neck from lying in an uncomfortable
position, but the back door of the van was open and, while the air it let in
smelt of fish and oil and other unpleasant odors, the last of the gas was
dissipating.
"And
-who might that be?" Rafik asked in a droll tone. "There's a waiting
list."
Pal
grinned. "So I have discovered."
"How
long were -we out?" and Rafik rubbed at his neck. "Oh migod ..."
"She
will not worry," Pal said, reaching out a hand to steady Rafik when he
tried to leap to his feet. "I sent a message to your ship. . . . She
believes you have stopped to eat."
"How
the devil did you access our security codes . . . ? Oh." He groaned.
"I think I know. You're looking for the legal owners of the beacon we
borrowed. Believe me, the ship was split like a nut when we found it wedged in
an asteroid. Nothing could have lived."
"Would
you at least remember where you found the derelict?" Pal asked, his dark
eyes intent.
"Sure
can, but I don't know what good that'll do."
"We
... I ... would be obliged."
"We ... I ... owe you one," and Rafik left off rubbing his
neck.
Pal
Kendoro got off his haunches now and went to wave his restorative under Calum's
nose before he handed the bottle to Rafik to tend to Gill. Rafik chuckled at
Kendoro's innate caution. Gill did indeed come out of his inadvertent nap ready
to do mischief to whoever did that to him. A few brief explanations and harmony
was restored, thanks for their escape offered and dismissed.
"Can
we get back to - "
"Our
ship," Rafik hurriedly interjected.
"Yes,
and with one stop at the chandlers on Pier 48 B," Pal said, exiting the
van and adding as he closed the sides, "this time I let you see where I am
driving you."
He was
as good as his word, for the opaque panel between the goods section and the
driver's turned transparent.
"I
have had fresh words with Salitana," he told them as he eased the van out
of the side road and into a busy traffic pattern, "and there was
considerable interest in you which she was unable, of course, to answer, since
you were strangers buying clothing for female friends and she, naturally,
wanted no part of the offers you made her."
"She
wouldn't have imparted to you a description of the interested parties, -would
she?" Rafik asked -with a -weary smile.
Pal
Kendoro slid three quik-prints through a small slot in the panel.
"She
is efficient." "Hey, that
looks like ..." and Gill closed his mouth on "the assassin."
"No,
but there's a resemblance to the uncle," Calum said, "and if I'm not
mistaken this shot shows quite new ears on him."
Rafik
had also noticed that.
"He
is registered at the port as Farkas Hamisen," Pal Kendoro said over his
shoulder.
"She's
not the only efficient one," Calum murmured.
"Okay,
why have you involved yourself with the cause of utter strangers, and don't
tell me because we have succored a minor female?" Rafik said. He was
getting very tired of being chased and helped and then chased again.
"I
have also had a word with my sister, Judit, who is currently assisting my
employer during my absence on the mission to discover who caused the death of
our friends who owned the ship whose beacon you have appropriated for use in
yours."
Rafik
was not the only listener who blinked at the long and involved and
grammatically correct sentence.
"And
..." Rafik prompted when Pal seemed to take a long time to make up his
next sentence.
"Would
your niece be a young female of unknown origin with a curious protuberance on
her forehead?"
Rafik
exchanged glances with his mates. Gill nodded solemn approval, but Calum looked
wary.
"I
think this lad is in an ... efficient . . . position to help us on a number of
vexing matters," Rafik murmured. "Yes, that is our niece, and Judit
has already helped us save her. She isn't still with Amalgamated, is she?"
"No,
and one of the reasons is your ward."
Rafik
raised his eyebrow over that term, but it was more accurate than
"niece" had ever been, technically speaking.
"Here's
the EVA shop," Gill said, pointing to the right.
"So
it is," Rafik said and started to move.
"Oh,
no you don't," Calum said, pushing him back down. "I'll get it. No
one's been killing me."
"You
are both wrong," Pal said, twisting around. "You will undoubtedly
have a chit that indicates the merchandise has been paid for." He paused
to don a cap that said clearly NERED MESSENGERS GMBH, INC & LTD on the
peak. He held his hand at the slot and Rafik slid the receipt through.
Pal got
out whistling and entered the shop while the three miners watched . . . and
watched all corners for anyone watching Pal's activities. But by then he was
out of the shop, still whistling, the EVA suit in its protective covering
thrown over his shoulder in a careless fashion. He threw it through a barely
adequate opening at the back of the van, winking as he did so, and slammed the
door shut before resuming his position as driver. His forward motion could
scarcely be called either furtive or fast. Clearly he was a messenger
determined to increase the time of his errand for a larger fee.
Clearly
he -was also very adept at inconspicuous trips because, although the three
miners observed the twists and turns he
made, they almost did not recognize the Uhuru -when the van stopped at its
closed hatch.
Then a
lot of things happened all at once: Pal Kendoro grabbed the EVA suit, jerked
them out of the van -when they didn't appear to move quickly enough to suit
him, and said that -whoever had the command to open the Uhuru's, hatch had
better activate it right now because "they" -were here and waiting
for them.
Rafik
activated it and the hatch opened just enough for them all to get inside, even
Pal, though he had to be pulled through with the suit encumbering him.
Acorna
was at the pilot's controls. "We have cleared for take-off, just as you
asked. Uncle Rafik," she said as he slid into the second seat.
"I
did?"
"You
did!" At the sound of his own voice so cleverly imitated, Rafik turned
around to see Pal behind him. "And I advise the most speedy departure this
ship can make and an even quicker jump to these coordinates." He laid a
flimsy beside Acorna.
"Well,
go ahead, Acorna," Rafik said, waving his hand in submission.
"Where?"
"To
a place of absolute safety," Pal said, trying very hard not to stare at
the slender figure with the mane of silver hair who was in control of the ship.
"I
trust him," Rafik said, uttering what would soon be added to the list
Calum kept of his Famous Last Words. "He's Judit Kendoro's brother."
Acorna
had no more than finished keying in the course than Rafik began to sneeze
again. So did Calum, Gill-who tried to reach out to Pal, who held a mask over
his face-and Acorna.
Seven
In the
end, it was Judit who conveyed Delszaki Li's invitation to the Uhuru -when the
ship reached Kezdet "Pal can negotiate with the miners," she'd
pointed out, "but if you want Acorna to come and stay with you - "
"She
must," Li insisted. "I may not know? how or why yet, but this I do
believe: the ki-lin is vital to our goals!"
"I
have met these men," Judit said. "They have been betrayed before;
they will not entrust Acorna to strangers again. To me, perhaps, but
not-forgive me-to an unknown businessman on a planet that has not treated them
well."
"Name
of Li is scarcely unknown in "world of business and finance," her
employer remarked dryly.
"They
would probably trust your financial expertise," Judit agreed, "but
will they trust you to care for ayoung girl?"
She was
not entirely sure, herself, that she trusted Delszaki Li to recognize that
Acorna was a little girl as well as a kl-lin. Pal had described her as a young
woman . . . but that was ridiculous; after all, Judit had seen the child
herself, only a year ago.
And,
with the image of that drugged child in her mind, she was taken aback at first
by the tall, slender young woman in a sophisticated deep purple body wrap and
misty blue flowing skirt who greeted her when at last she received permission
to board the Uhuru. For a moment she wondered wildly if there could be two
Acornas, if this could be the mother or older sister of the child she
remembered.
On her
part, Acorna stared at Judit as soon as she spoke, and her silvery pupils
narrowed to vertical slits.
"I
think ... I know you," she said in confusion. "But how?"
"She
saved you from surgery at Amalgamated's space base," Gill said. His big
hand briefly enveloped Judit's; she felt a wave of warmth and security
emanating from his touch. "But you were unconscious at the time, drugged
for the operation. You can't remember."
"I
remember the voice," Acorna said. She looked thoughtfully at Judit.
"You were very much afraid . . . and very sad. You are not so sad now, I
think."
"Then
it is you!" Judit exclaimed. "But you were so tiny..."
"It
seems my people mature more rapidly than do yours," Acorna said.
"Not, of course, that we know anything about my people. . . ." Her
pupils narrowed to slits again, then widened as she turned her silvery gaze on
Judit and dismissed that subject. "So you are Judit. Gill and Rafik and
Calum have told me often of your heroism."
"Then
they have exaggerated wildly," Judit said. "I didn't do anything,
really."
"You
will allow us to differ about that," Gill put in, still holding Judit's
hand clasped inside his.
"And
you were not harmed afterwards?"
Judit
smiled. "Oh, no. They bought the hostage story ... I think Dr. Forelle had
some doubts, but nobody else could quite believe that a barrio girl, even one
who'd made it through university, would have the brains or independence to go
against so many rules. And to keep them from thinking it, I made sure to act
very stupid for some time thereafter. I think they were glad to get rid of me
when Mr. Li offered me a position as his assistant."
"Ah,
yes," Rafik said. "Your famous Mr. Li. Pal has been telling us all
about him, and his fortune, and his great plans - "
Judit
felt the blood draining from her face.
"Pal,
how could you?"
How
could Pal have trusted these men with such dangerous secrets! Oh, Gill, she
would trust, but these other two ... no doubt they were good men, but Pal
didn't have the right to risk the lives of children on his intuitive judgment
of them.
"-plans
to establish lunar mining bases on Kezdet's moons," Rafik went on, and
Judit breathed again. "He seems
very eager to give us a contract to oversee the establishment and development
of the work ... a remarkably lucrative contract to offer three independent
asteroid miners."
"As
I've explained to you," Pal cut in, "Kezdet is a technologically
underdeveloped planet. We have planetside mines, of course, but they are of the
crudest sort, dependent on manual labor for nearly everything. And there is no
local expertise in low-g mining. Kezdet's moons are far richer in valuable
metals than the planet itself, but up to now we have lacked the capital and the
technology to exploit the mines. Mr. Li proposes to provide the capital, but he
needs men like you to consult on all the problems of mining in space-protection
from solar flares, high-friction coefficients, lack of the usual reagents for
extraction, and so forth."
"You
seem tolerably well informed on the problems, anyway," Calum remarked.
Pal
flushed. "I've studied a few vid-cubes. That doesn't make me a space
mining expert. That's where you come in."
"I
should perhaps point out," Rafik said softly, "that hijacking our
ship and taking us, unconscious, to a planet we have every reason to avoid is
not the most persuasive of bargaining maneuvers."
"Pal,"
Judit said sorrowfully, "you could have tried explaining to them!"
Pals
flush deepened and he rounded on his sister, palms out. "A minute ago you
thought I had explained to them, and I was in deep kimchee for that, too. Can't
I do anything right? "
"Not
with a big sister, kid." Gill chuckled.
"Rafik,
Pal, both of you calm down. Whatever the rights and wrongs of it, we're here
now, and it won't hurt us to listen to Mr. Li's offer . . . and personally, I'm
dying to hear the explanations."
"I
think Mr. Li would prefer to present his case to you personally," Pal
said, "and he very seldom leaves his mansion. Will you trust me so far as
to accompany me there, where we can discuss the matter in greater
comfort?"
Gill
glanced at the others, smiled wryly and shrugged. "What the heck . . .
we're already on Kezdet, how much worse can it get? Just lay off the sleep gas
this time."
"Kezdet,"
Pal said somberly, "can get much, much worse than any of you can
imagine."
Just
before dawn there was a subtle change in the quality of the darkness of the
sleep shed. Unrelieved blackness faded slightly, revealing the slumped outlines
of what looked like piles of rags on the earthen floor. After three years
working Below, Jana could sleep through the twentyfour-hour rumble and thump of
the slagger, but the faint light in the shed woke her, most mornings, before
the call. That was the good thing about being on day shift. Night shift, you
didn't have that bit of warning. It worked today; she was on her feet, rubbing
the sleep out of her eyes, when Siri Teku came through the shed with his bucket
of icy water, splashing it on the heaps of rags until the children underneath
stirred. He grinned at Jana and aimed the last of the bucketful at her, but she
dodged so that he only got her bare feet.
"Thanks,"
she said, "I was meanin' to wash my feet today anyway."
She
dived into the corner and caught little Chiura by the arm, hauling her upright
and clapping one hand across her mouth before the kid could wail and earn a
slash from the long, flexible rod Siri Teku held in his other hand. The other
kids knew better than to cry about a little thing like cold water, or to take
too long scrambling to their feet, but Chiura was new, the only new one their
gang had got from last week's intake. The others had grumbled when Siri Teku
shoved her into their shed.
"How
we gone keep up our allotment with babies on the soojin' gang?" Khetala
demanded.
Khetala,
two years older than Jana, broadshouldered and black-browed, was the unofficial
leader of their gang. She kept the rest of the kids in line with pinches,
slaps, and threats to tell Siri Teku on them. But she also kept their ore carts
full and the draggers moving so that they weighed in with a full allotment most
shifts. That meant supper. Gangs that didn't earn supper didn't last long;
the
kids got tired too easily, then they couldn't keep up their allotment, they
started getting sick, pretty soon the sick ones disappeared and the ones that
were just puny got sold off to other gangs. Or worse, Kheti said darkly, but
Jana wasn't sure what could be worse than being a dragger on a gang.
"She's
too little to go Below," Jana said.
Chiura's
bare legs -were dimpled with baby fat; her round, full face was tilted upward
to Jana and Khetala as if she expected them to pick her up or something. She'd
learn soon enough that there wasn't any time at Anyag for playing with babies.
"No
backtalk!" Siri Teku's rod whistled against the backs of Jana's legs. She
didn't jump, so he lashed her a couple more times until tears stood in her
eyes. "She's not going Below. Not yet, anyway. She can help Ganga and
Laxmi sort."
Jana
and Khetala looked at each other. They needed another sorter. Siri Teku had
taken Najeem away right after wake-up a couple of days ago, when he noticed
Najeem's morning cough. But how were they going to teach a baby who couldn't be
more than four, maybe only three, to sort ore?
"She
wants to eat, she'll learn," Siri Teku said. "You'll teach her."
He left the shed to fetch their scanty morning meal.
Now
Jana knelt beside Chiura, dipped a corner of her own kameez in the water bucket
and wiped the kid's face clean. She'd been crying again in the night, there
-were dried tears and snot caked around her upper lip. A bruise was starting to
show on her cheek.
"Who
hit you, Chiura? "
Chiura
didn't answer, but she glanced toward Laxmi and back, a quick, darting, furtive
glance that she'd learned in this first week at Anyag. Jana glowered at Laxmi.
"The
brat kept me awake with her snuffling," Laxmi said.
"We
all cried at first," Jana said. "You hit her again, Laxmi, and I'll
break your arm. See how long Siri Teku keeps you on the gang when you can't
work!" She wiped Chiura's face as gently as she could and ran her fingers
through the curly dark hair, trying to work a few tangles out of the matted
ringlets.
"You're
wasting your time," Laxmi said. "She'll hafta get clipped like the
rest of us, or she'll get lice. I donno why Siri Teku hasn't done it yet."
"You
mean there's something you don't know?" Jana jeered. "An' here I
thought you -was the Divine Fountain of Wisdom come down to Anyag to instruct
and save us all."
Sin
Teku kicked the door open and set down a round platter of bean paste just
inside the shed. Beside it he dropped a stack of patts, letting them fall on
the dirt so the bottom ones would be all gritty. He said it trained the kids to
grab their food fast and not waste time, but Jana figured it was just meanness.
She'd never seen anybody who wasn't hungry enough to bolt their patts and bean
paste so fast they hardly chewed.
The
first day, Chiura had wrinkled up her face and spat out the gritty patt and bean
paste Jana rolled for her. She was hungrier now; she would've dived right under
the trampling feet of the older kids if Jana hadn't held her back.
"It's
okay," she told Chiura. "Kheti sees to it, there's fair shares for
everyone."
"More,"
Chiura wailed when the rush had slowed and they got their patts and beans, one
apiece. "Fair shares," Jana
said firmly, but she tore her rolled patt in half and slipped it to Chiura when
nobody -was looking. And while the rest of the gang shuffled off to the shaft,
she lingered to ask Laxmi how the baby was doing.
"Plays
too much, less'n I clout her," Laxmi said. "Doesn't know good rock
from bad. She's bringin* down our count."
"Don't
hit her," Jana said. "She won't learn if she's scared. Let her watch
what you're doing. She'll learn." She knelt by Chiura and hugged her.
"You'll watch Laxmi, won't you, sweetcake? Watch and learn how to tell
good ore from rocks. Watch for Mama Jana."
"Sweetcake?"
Chiura repeated. "Mama?"
"Aah,
she's too dumb to know what you're saying," Laxmi whined. "Only way
to teach her . . ." She doubled over in a silent cough. Her thin face
turned dark with the effort to hush the convulsions that shook her body.
"You
don't hit her," Jana said, "and I don't tell Siri Teku you got Najeem's
cough. Deal?"
Laxmi
nodded in between convulsions, and Siri Teku's rod came down across the backs
of Jana's legs. This time Jana yelled good and loud, to give Laxmi a chance to
let some of the coughing out. And Siri Teku was so busy telling her off for
lingering behind the rest of the gang, he didn't even notice the way Laxmi
wheezed for breath. She hoped.
Going
Below was the part Jana hated worst, the sickening drop in the cage full of
scared kids. It was usually all right, if the minder was awake and paying
attention to his engine. If he let it run a few seconds too long, the cage
would slam into the pit floor like a dropped basket of eggs. Coming back up was
just as dangerous; an inattentive minder could drag the cage and all into the
engine to be chewed up like a lump of ore in the slagger, but you didn't think
about that so much-by the end of shift, all you could think of was getting
Above again. Above belonged to light and flowers and Sita Ram, whom Jana
imagined like a mother who smiled and hugged you close and wanted to keep you
forever. Below belonged to Old Black and the Piper, and if you prayed to Sita
Ram or even thought about Her, they'd maybe get angry and send one of Their
messengers for you: a rock falling from the tunnel roof, a flood of water when
the hewers broke through into old workings, or the stinking air that made your
chest forget how to breathe.
The
cage rattled to a stop, thudding on the pit floor but not falling, and the gang
moved off to their places under Siri Teku's direction.
"Buddhe,
Faiz, you boys are dragging for Face Three today. Watch how Gulab Rao handles
the compressor, Buddhe. You're getting too big for a dragger and I just might
put you to work on the face pretty soon if you show me you can get a load of
ore without spraying the gallery with rock splinters. Israr, you trap for Face
Three. You girls go to Five. Khetala and Jana drag, Lata trap."
Buddhe
and Faiz set off at a run down the opening that slanted down to the tunnel to
Three, but Kheti called them back and made them strap on their knee and arm
pads. "Girl stuff," Buddhe
said scornfully, flexing his skinny ten-year-old arm while Kheti tried to tie
on the pads she'd made out of old rags. "When I'm a hewer, I -won't fool
with stupid girl stuff like padding myself."
"Wear
the pads, maybe you don't get so many cuts, maybe you live long enough to make
hewer," Khetala snapped.
Jana
didn't argue about putting her own pads on. They were another of Kheti's good
ideas. Other gangs, when they got new kameezes, sold the ragged bits of their
old ones to a picker for a cornet of curried peas or some other luxury. Kheti
made them save the old cloths to make these pads that protected their knees and
elbows from the sharp rock floors of the tunnels. While the pads lasted, their
gang didn't come down with half as many scrapes and cuts and infections as the
other gangs. The only trouble was, they never could get enough cloth. Kheti
said she was going to talk to Siri Teku some day when he wasn't drunk or angry
and point out how much the pads saved them, try and talk him into giving them
some extra cloth. But it could be a long time waiting until Siri Teku was in a
mood to be approached.
The
hewers had been working at Five since well before first light; they went on
shift and off shift earlier than the draggers, so that the kids could find full
corves of ore -waiting -when they started work and could finish off the hewers'
last production of the day before they went off shift. This morning there were
three full corves -waiting for them. You couldn't hear anything over the
whine
of the compressors, but one of the hewers Ram Dal, it was--wasn't -wearing his
face mask, and Jana could guess from his scowl what he -was saying to them. If
the draggers got behind, then he wouldn't have an empty corf to pile his ore
into, his production -would go down and the gang wouldn't meet their allotment.
It -wasn't her and Khetala's fault that Face Five had turned into an easy vein
that the hewers could strip faster than Siri Teku had expected, but they'd be
the ones to get the stick if Ram Dal told Siri Teku that they were holding up
the line. Jana buckled the belt about her -waist, straddled the chain attached
to the first corf, and set off back up the long slope of the tunnel without a
-word or a nod to Khetala. Halfway up the tunnel, Lata pulled the ventilation
fan back so that they could drag the corves through.
"Come
back soon," she begged. "It's dark here. I'm scared the Piper -will
get me."
"Don't
worry about the Piper," Jana said as she passed. "I left an offering
for Him at the face. And -we'll be back in a minute."
It -was
always dark in the tunnel, and they always came back as fast as they could.
Lata really
was
simple; you could see it in her face, the funny tilted eyes and the moon-round
cheeks. She could never remember anything from one trip to the next. But being
so simple, she didn't get bored and fall asleep, either. Jana liked having Lata
as trapper and didn't mind saying, every trip, that she would come back in a
minute.
"Liar,"
Kheti -whispered -when they were past
Lata and the hum of the fan blocked out their words. "You never.
Piper's gonna get you."
"Huh.
Piper won't -want me, I'm too skinny. Piper's gonna take you, Kheti-your chest
getting big now."
The
first trip wasn't so bad, except for being in a hurry because the hewers were
getting ahead this morning. Jana figured about the third trip was the -worst;
by that time everything was bugging you. Your thighs ached from the pull of the
loaded corf, you had scrapes on the places your pads didn't protect, the chain
between your legs chafed and sweat dropped down into the chafed places and made
them sting worse than ever. In some ways Jana reckoned it was better later on
in the shift, when you were too tared to care, almost too tired to remember
that there'd ever been anything but pulling loaded corves, tipping them into
the cage basket, and drawing the empty boxes back. Finally the hewers quit for
the day, and then they knew end of shift was almost there and all they had to
do was clear the last loaded corves.
Then
there was the creaking cage again, this time taking up draggers and trappers
instead of baskets of ore, and cool clean air and the first stars of evening,
and shivering because your kameez was soaked with sweat and you weren't used to
the coolness. Jana helped Khetala to herd the other kids of their gang over to
the pump that spewed out water from the lowest mine workings, nagged them all
to pull off their kameezes and wash. The littlest ones, Lata and Israr, were so
tired they were about to fall asleep, even though they had been sitting still
all day instead of hauling corves. They gasped and crowed indignantly at the
shock of the tepid water. That helped; Buddhe and Faiz wanted to show they were
tougher than the little kids, so they splashed rowdily under the pipe. Jana and
Khetala took the last wash. Faiz tried to pinch Khetala's chest and she
splashed water into his eyes and everybody had a good laugh.
"I
wish we had spare kameezes, and spare pads, too," Kheti said as they
trudged back to the shed. "Then we could wash our clothes and pads and
leave them to dry next day."
"Yeah?
Long as you're wishing, why don't you wish for the moon to hang in our shed and
a cloud to fly through the tunnels on?"
"The
better we keep clean," Kheti said firmly, "the less we fall
sick."
Jana
didn't see the connection herself. Everybody knew that sickness was caused by
annoying Old Black and the Piper so that they laid a cough in your chest. She'd
been at the mines five years now, since she was only a little bigger than
Chiura. Kheti was all the time setting herself up as some kind of know-it-all
because she'd only come to the mines two years ago, when she was eleven
already, and she claimed to know all sorts of things about the -world away from
the mines. But she did know a lot of good stories to tell at night, and it was
true that since she'd joined them they had only lost two kids from the gang to
illness. Besides, if you argued, she hit and slapped, and Jana had taken enough
blows that day from Siri Teku and Ram Dal-she didn't need a fight with Kheti to
finish the day off.
The
sorters had come in when it got dark. They -were supposed to light a fire and
heat
-water
to cook the evening beans and meal porridge, but half the time the sleep shed
was dark and cold when the rest of the gang got there. This evening -was one of
those times. Laxmi and Ganga were bickering about -whose turn it was to fetch
sticks for kindling. Khetala waded in and sorted the argument with a couple of
brisk slaps, sending Laxmi for kindling and Ganga to fill the bucket.
"What
about her" Laxmi jerked her head at the pallet where Chiura lay, chubby
arms and legs flung out in exhausted sleep. "She don't sort her share, she
don't help fix the fire ..."
"She's
little," Jana said. "She'll learn. Give her a chance."
"I
say, if she doesn't work, she doesn't eat!"
"That's
dumb," Jana said. "If she doesn't eat, she'll just get sick. I'll
help you get the dinner ready if you'll give her a share."
Her
legs ached all over from hauling corves of ore all day, but walking and
carrying kindling was a different kind of work anyway. It probably did her some
good to stand upright for a while. Some of the older hewers hobbled around half
bent, unable to straighten up after years of lying on their sides in wet
tunnels to hack out the last ore in a narrow vein.
When
they got the fire going and the water began to bubble, Khetala made Laxmi stir,
even
though
Buddhe and Faiz complained that she would cough all over their food.
"Never
mind them," Kheti told Laxmi. "Steam's good for the breath-sickness.
You stir every night for a while, and lean over the bucket while you stir,
hear? Breathe in that steam."
"Why?
" Laxmi whined.
"Easy,"
Jana said before Khetala could lose her temper and slap Laxmi, which was how
she usually settled disagreements. "Steam goes up, right? Sita Ram is
Above, Old Black and the Piper are Below. Chest cough comes from Old Black and
the Piper. Steam carries it up to Sita Ram."
Khetala
rolled her eyes but didn't argue. "Just do it, Laxmi. Breathe the steam,
and hope Siri Teku keeps you on sorting for a while and doesn't make you drag a
corf."
"Right,"
Jana agreed. "She goes Below, it'll just give Old Black and the Piper
another chance to lay a curse on her."
Jana
took Chiura to sleep beside her that night. She wouldn't mind if Chiura cried,
and she wouldn't hit the kid the way Laxmi did. Anyway Chiura didn't cry much;
she snuggled in between Jana's arm and body and burrowed her head into Jana's
armpit like a kitten butting its mother for milk. There'd been a litter of
kittens once, all soft and fuzzy . . . but that was before the mines. . . .
Jana blinked away tears. It didn't do no good to think about before. That was
the first lesson anybody learned. You were bonded to your gangmaster, Siri Teku
or whoever, and he took the cost of food and clothes out of your wages and kept
the rest to pay off the advance your family had gotten for bonding you, and
"when you were paid off, you could go home or you could stay at "work
and send the money back to your family. It took a long time to get paid off,
though. But it must happen for some kids. Sometimes kids just disappeared, and
they weren't sickly or anything, and you never saw them around the mine again,
not working the other shift or working in another gang or whatever. Like Surya.
She'd been a year older than Khetala, but she wasn't on the gang anymore. So
she must have earned out her bond and been sent home. Jana wasn't sure what she
would do when she earned out. She didn't know how to find her family. She'd
been too little when they bonded her-she only knew it was a long way off. They
maybe wouldn't want her back anyway; there were too many kids and not enough to
eat. Maybe she'd go to the city and find some easier work. Anything had to be
easier than dragging corves. . . . She fell into an uneasy dream of dragging
bigger and bigger corves up a worse slope than any in the mine, with the Piper
behind her dark and faceless and threatening, and her legs jerked and twitched
all night as the overstrained muscles tried to remember how to rest. But
whenever she woke up there was Chiura's little body warm against her, and that
was some comfort; almost as good as having a kitten of her very own.
The
miners were tense as they followed Pal into the Li mansion, unsure what to
expect. The house was darkened against the heat of the Kezdet sun, with cool,
scented currents of air fanning though high-ceilinged rooms. They were still
blinking with the sudden change from brilliance to shadows when the soft whir
of a hover-chair heralded Delszaki Li's arrival.
While
Pal and Judit made introductions, Calum hung back, studying the man whose power
and influence had brought them here. A wasted body was largely concealed under
stiff, brocaded robes; all that he could see was the man's wrinkled face, with
sharp, intelligent eyes. Those eyes lit up when Acorna was introduced, and
Calum tensed.
She's
what he wants, he thought. The ruse is just an excuse.
But his
suspicions were lulled by the long, intense discussion that followed the
introductions and ritual offering of food and drink. Li had evidently studied
and anticipated all their tastes; there was Kilumbemba beer for Gill, chilled
fruit juice for Acorna, and a variety of cold and refreshing drinks for Calum
and Rafik. But the man was obviously eager to be done with social niceties and
get on with his business;
the
clawlike fingers of one hand trembled over the hover-chair buttons while they
made polite conversation. He seemed relieved when Gill downed his beer and said
bluntly, "Now, Mr. Li, we have been promised some explanations. Exactly
what made you so eager to bring us here, and -why are you so sure we will
accept your offer?"
"Require
your assistance," Li said, "to destroy illegal but well defended
system of child slavery on this planet."
"There
are unpleasant rumors about the fate of unprotected children on Kezdet,"
Rafik agreed.
"The
reality," Judit said, "is worse than the rumors."
Gill
put one arm around her shoulders.
"And
exactly how will the establishment of lunar mining bases help to eradicate the
current system?" Calum demanded. "And why US?"
"Second
question is more easily answered than first," Li replied. "I have
chosen you because of personal reports from Judit Kendoro, also substantiated
by reading of classified files of Amalgamated. Men who will break contract and
incur wrath of intergalactic company to defend one child might be willing to
take some further risks to save many children."
Calum
had the feeling that Li was not revealing all his thoughts, but then, the head
of a multibillion-credit financial and industrial empire seldom did reveal
everything he was thinking.
"For
answer to first question," Li went on, "small introduction to current
system is necessary." He paused for a moment, his bright black eyes
darting around the table until he was sure that he had everyone's attention.
"Kezdet, like Saturn, eats its children. Small population of highly paid
technical workers, bureaucrats, and merchants rests at top of a pyramid of
underpaid and exploited human labor. And at bottom of pyramid are
children-those of Kezdet, and the unwanted children of many other planets.
Kezdet labor contractors visit an overpopulated, impoverished world where
planetary government is already struggling to provide basic social services.
They make promises of employment and education for homeless children, training
in basic job skills, and the chance for a better life. Reality is sadly
different. Training? Yes-employers claim child is 'in training' for long years
during which no wages at all are paid. Employment? Yes-as much as twenty hours
a day in some cases. And education?" Li smiled sadly. "All most of
these children learn is that if they do not work, they will not eat. And they
learn that lesson very well. Illiterate, half-starved, separated from their
families if they ever had any, they are utterly dependent on their employer's
good will. Enslaved children are backbone of Kezdet economy."
"Child
labor and slavery are both violations of Federation law," Rafik said.
"Surely the law applies on Kezdet as elsewhere?"
Li's
smile was infinitely sad. "Inspections are always announced in advance, to
give factory owners time to hide children or pretend they are only working in
allowed roles such as carrying water and snacks to adult workers. Kezdet
Guardians of the Peace are paid, what you say, under the console?"
"Under
the table," Rafik supplied.
"Sometimes
Child Labor League makes public some company's violation of law. But judges are
also paid off. Small fine, company continues business as usual."
"It
doesn't make sense," Calum protested.
"Adult workers are stronger and do more. I'm sure conditions are
terrible for the few children who have to work, but you make it sound as though
they are the entire workforce."
"Kezdet
has specialized in industries where children are especially useful," said
Li. "In primitive mines, their small size is convenient. In glass
factories, they can run faster than adults and calculate a path more
intelligently than 'bots, bringing molten glass to blowers. Small nimble
fingers are useful in match factories, where sulfur poisons them, and in carpet
factories where children are crippled from hours of sitting in a cramped
position and half-blinded from working in the dark. Adults," Li said
dryly, "might protest such conditions. Children provide cheap,
uncomplaining labor. And Kezdet industrialists too tight-fisted and
short-sighted for kind of capital investment it would take to modernize
industries and improve appalling conditions. Children do here what machines do
in more civilized places-and is always cheaper to buy another batch of children
from a labor contractor than would be to automate a factory. System perpetuates
itself. And children themselves are kept in perpetual slavery by system of
financial juggling. Most bonded child laborers incapable of calculating 'debt'
they owe for transportation to Kezdet and fee of contractor who brought them
here. As legal fiction," he explained, "debt is owed by adult head of
child's family, if such exists. Everyone knows debt is to be paid only by
child-but cannot prosecute on basis of what 'everyone knows,' especially on
Kezdet, where entire legal and
peace-keeping system is corruptly in pay of factory owners. Meanwhile,
employers cheat children in every possible way, charging food and clothing at
ridiculous sums against their wages, docking for breakages, keeping high rate
of interest on original debt. All bond laborers hope someday will work off
bond. Very few ever achieve that."
"I
was lucky," said Pal. "I had a sister who won her freedom with a
scholarship, then spent years working hardship posts on space stations and
sending back every penny of her salary until Mercy and I were bought free as
well."
"Success
of Judit required brilliance, tenacity, and luck," Delszaki Li said.
"First element of luck was that she was not sent to Kezdet until she was
fourteen, when she and Pal and Mercy were orphaned by a war that left their
home planet burdened with thousands of displaced children. She fell into
barrios of Kezdet later than most, with good health, a basic scientific
education, and-most important of all-knowledge that a better way of life was
possible. But none of that would have saved her if she had not been an
exceptionally brave and intelligent young woman."
"You
don't need to tell me that," Gill rumbled. "Remind me to tell you
sometime about the first time I met this girl."
"But
for every Judit who escapes the Kezdet system are hundreds of children who do
not escape. Too poor, too weak, too ignorant to fight..."
"But
what happens when they grow up?" Rafik demanded. "Mostly," Pal said, "we don't. Grow up. What do
you expect, with poor food, hellish conditions, no medical care? The healthiest
and best-looking children are regularly bought from the labor contractors for
city brothels, and even they don't last long there. The rest work until they
get sick, and then they die. And the few who survive to adulthood are too weak
to do much besides breed more children whom they can sell to the labor
contractors for a pittance."
Calum
looked about him at the luxurious furnishings of the room where they sat:
windows of high-tech Kyllian solar glass, walls draped in sound-absorbing
Theloi silk, an entire -wall covered with shelves of expensive antique
flatbooks. Delszaki Li intercepted and interpreted his glance.
"No,
this is not paid for by labor of children," he said, "although you
would be hard put to find another such house in all of Kezdet." He sighed.
"This humble person was young and idealistic when inherited family
holdings on Kezdet. Swore never to employ child labor or any bonded laborers.
Have devoted a lifetime to demonstrating that is possible for businesses to
flourish-even on Kezdet--without exploiting children. Experiment has gained me
many enemies, but has had no other effect. In recent years have turned to more
direct action. Child Labor League achieved some successes at first, but now has
been made illegal by order of Kezdet government, which has accused members of
terrorist action." Li smiled. "This means, among other things, that
contributions to the league not tax deductible." "It also means that his house is watched, his assistants
questioned, and his projects ruined wherever the corrupt Guardians of the Peace
can find out what he is doing," Pal put in.
"If
this room is bugged," Rafik pointed out, "this entire conversation is
extremely indiscreet."
"Is
indiscreet anyway," Li said calmly, "but I have made decision to
trust you. As for other listeners, I believe my off-planet technology is still
better than their off-planet technology. Guardians of the Peace are just as
cheap as any other group on Kezdet; they buy second-rate espionage equipment
and have it copied in barrio factories where workers do not know what they are
supposed to be doing and hence make many mistakes. . . . Actually, it is
remarkable how many mistakes they make on contracts for Guardians of the Peace;
suspicious
man might think someone were alerting them and suggesting subtle ways to
sabotage equipment."
"I
like the way this man thinks," Rafik announced.
"You
would," Calum said, "he's almost as twisty as your Uncle Hafiz."
He glanced at Li. "No offense intended, sir."
"If
you are referring to Hafiz Harakamian," Li said, "no offense taken.
He is brilliant man with admirably subtle mind. Your people sometimes find
subtlety morally suspicious; mine do not."
"About
the mines?" Gill prompted.
"Peaceful
demonstration has failed," Li said. "Education efforts on Kezdet have
been hampered by Guardians of the Peace, who destroy com systems belonging to
Child Labor League and break up schools established to teach bonded children
how to read and calculate, so that they may know how much their employers are
cheating them. Now I try third approach: direct action. Remove children from
Kezdet. Only two problems: how to find children who have been well trained to
hide from strangers, and what to do with them when found."
"Just
two little problems, huh?" Rafik drawled. "You will solve second
problem. Li consortium owns mineral rights to all three of Kezdet's moons, sold
to me personally by stupid government officials who thought moons too expensive
to mine. Not willing to make capital investment, train modern workers. Li
consortium has plenty of capital. You three men have expertise. You will
establish first lunar base city on primary satellite, Maganos. You three will
train freed children to operate equipment. Judit will be head of school system
and medical services. Children will work, but will also learn."
Gill
blinked at the scale of the project presented in these few clipped words.
"Mr. Li, I think you don't realize how many trained personnel it takes to
run an efficient lunar mining base. We're contract miners, independents. We
know how to strip an asteroid and ship the separated metals where we'll get the
most money for them. What you're proposing is a much bigger operation."
"I
know that," Li replied. "You do not realize how many children are
enslaved on Kezdet. I will supply personnel. You will train them."
"It's
going to be extremely expensive," Calum warned. "Setting up shielded
living quarters, importing equipment from other systems ... it could be years
before you see any return on your investment."
Li
waved his one working hand disdainfully. "Li consortium has capital.
Initial return on investment will be lives saved. In fifty, maybe hundred
years, will be fully working concern. Li descendants will be rich and happy. I
will be dead, but will be one happy ancestor."
Rafik
asked Li for the chance to sleep on the proposition and Li smiled, murmuring
something erudite about prudent men. Pal was designated as guide for the men
while Judit took charge of Acorna.
As the
three miners watched their ward make her graceful way up the anachronistic
flight of stairs to the second level of this amazing house, they each
experienced a sense of moment.
"She's
grown up ... all of a sudden," Calum said plaintively.
"She
belongs in a place like this," Rafik remarked, beaming with pride at the
look of her, courteously inclining her body to the shorter Judit and smiling at
something said.
"She's
grown out of us, that's for sure," Gill said with a sad sigh, and then
focused his attention on Judit.
She so
cried when she thought we were all oeao and gone. Who've thought it? They'd met
so very briefly.
He
hoped Rafik and Calum would be willing to go along with Li's scheme. He'd have
a lot more chance to be with Judit and he found he wanted that, suddenly, at
his time of life. Well, he wasn't that old, after all was said and done. Time
he gave a thought to settling down. Mining was a grand life when you were
young, but it was isolating and he'd had enough of the females available for
shortterm liaisons. Would Judit mind that he'd played around a lot? He'd been
careful: always insisted on seeing an up-to-date cert before he did anything.
"You're
right on that count," Rafik said with a wistful expression on his face.
Ah, well, they were due for a change.
Calum
had entirely different thoughts, though they were centered on Acorna. They had
managed to bring her to her species' maturity, or close to it. But they hadn't
done -what they ought to have done a long time ago: found out who and where her
people were. Caring for her was one thing. He couldn't fault any of them on
that, but they really should now, especially with the resources available to them
if they picked up on what Li was suggesting, be able to employ the experts they
needed-discreetly, of course-to find her home system. They owed her family
that. They owed her that. She was female and shouldn't be deprived of a mate
because a proper member of her own species wasn't immediately available.
Pal
showed them into a suite of rooms, three bedchambers off a spacious,
beautifully furnished lounge, and each bedroom had its own bath facility.
"Boy!
Have we come up in the world!" Calum said, pivoting on one heel with his
arms wide open, taking in the luxurious appointments.
Pal
smiled at such an ingenuous remark. "You are very welcome guests. I do
hope that you can find it in your hearts and minds to forgive my actions, but
perhaps you see why such cautions had to be taken."
"If
Li's up against an entire planet, I suppose he's got to be doubly, triply
careful," Rafik said as he settled himself into a wide chair that
immediately conformed itself to him. "Hey, I can get to like this!"
Pal stepped
to the nearest wall, pressed an ornate button, and a panel slid back to reveal
not only a well-stocked bar but other supplies.
"In
case you require sustenance or refreshment before the morning. In the meantime,
I will wish you a comfortable night's rest. And if you have any requirements,
speak into this grill and the house of Li will supply whatever you lack."
"I
believe it could," Rafik said with a grin.
Pal
left and closed the door quietly behind him.
"I
think -we ought to ..."
"This
is the chance of a lifetime ..."
"Be
our own bosses ..."
They
had spoken all at once and broke off, laughing. Gill and Calum found chairs,
which they pulled closer to Rafik's semithrone so they could have a good natter
about their amazing newprospects.
"First,"
Rafik said, taking charge and ticking off the points he wanted to make, "I
think we'd be stupid not to take Li up on the offer because we're not getting
any younger and mining asteroids for huge corporations like Amalgamated is no
longer the -wide-open, friendly game it used to be." The others nodded.
"Exploiting the riches of a moon . . . and nonexploiting our employees at
the same time . . . much less not having to -worry about what'11 happen at our
next port of call ... I wonder ..." Rafik paused, "... if Li can find
out who else is after us and why."
"Whaddaya
wanna bet that's already being handled?" Calum said. "But, look,
fellas-"
"Look,
there must be hundreds of techies and experienced men who're as cheesed off
with Amalgamated as we are. We take our pick of good men to start this project
up: builders, engineers, environmentalists, medics ..." Gill's eyes
gleamed with such rosy prospects. "We could hold out for the best there
is."
"Not
to mention the fair Judit." Rafik shot a sideways look at Gill, -who
blushed to the beard and beneath.
"Now..."
"Ease
off. Gill," Calum said, holding up his hands between them. "Before we
get our heads all warped with plans, there's one other thing we have to
do."
"What?"
They both turned on him in surprise.
"Find
out where Acorna comes from. We ought to have done something about that a long
time ago."
"Yeah,
when we've had so much free time," Rafik began, and then stopped.
"That kind of search could take a lifetime."
"Not
if Li will let us hire a metallurgic specialist and get us the spectroanalyses
of primaries."
"All
of them?" Even Rafik goggled at that.
"Naw,
we can narrow it down," Calum said. "She hadn't been in that pod very
long-the oxygen supply wasn't down by as much as half- "
"But
she could have kept it clean," Gill put in.
"It
took a few weeks to do ours, remember," Calum said. "Any way, we go
back to the old 'Azelnut group and use the evaluation of primaries in that
area, -widening the search. She can't have been from that far away. Besides
-which, I'll bet anything that some of her people visited Earth, or that sort
of a legend wouldn't have grown."
Gill
frowned at him and -waved his hand in dismissal of the idea.
"Now,
-wait a minute, Gill," Rafik said, holding up one finger. "A lot of
those old legends did have bases in fact -when modern science took a look at
them. There's no reason Acorna's people didn't start that one. Just remember
how beautifully that escape pod ... a mere escape pod . . . was designed.
They've been in space a lot longer than we have."
Gill
stroked his beard. "Yeah, I guess it's possible."
"That
would be a real coup," Rafik said. "Furthermore," and he settled
back into his chair, locking his hands behind his head as he stretched out,
"I think Li -would really go for the research."
"At
least he's respectful of Acorna," Gill said. "Not like others I could
name," and he shot a glance at Rafik.
"Or that awful surgeon -who was going to remove the
'disfigurement,'" said Calum, who had never forgotten his outrage over
that and by what a slim margin they had saved her. If they'd been just a
fraction of a moment later ... he shook himself.
"So
we broach that tomorrow, too?" Rafik asked.
"Look,
let's get an idea of what we're going to need," Gill said, "draw up a
plan of attack-"
"A
visit to the moon?" Rafik put in, grinning.
"Among
other things." Gill was opening cupboards to find out where the computer
terminal was hidden.
Rafik
removed one hand from behind his head and laid it on the edge of the table
beside him. It lifted and exposed a state-of-the-art system that made him sit
up and whistle. He rolled the chair around the corner of the table, toggled it
on, and raised his hands over the keypads.
"Okay,
what's first?"
When
they had revised their order of the priorities half a dozen times and finally
reached one they could all agree (mostly) on, which did include a visit to the
moons, which headhunter to contact for the most essential personnel, and what
Calum would require for his search, they did "sleep" on it.
Wake
up, Jana!" Somebody was shaking her, dragging Jana out of the lovely
second sleep she'd fallen into after she woke at dawn and Siri Teku didn't
come. The sleep shed door was locked and nobody brought them food, so Jana went
back to sleep so she wouldn't think about how hungry she was.
Kheti's
face was gray with fear. Jana'd never seen her like that, not even that real
bad time when Siri Teku got so drunk he was seeing demons here Above and started
whipping all the kids, screaming that he would drive Old Black and the Piper
out of them. Kheti'd kept her head then, helping the little kids to scramble
into hiding places, making Buddhe and Faiz throw rocks to distract Siri Teku
until they all got out of reach, keeping them safe until the gangmaster threw
up and fell down on the ground to sleep it off. She'd taken a lash across the
face that would mark her for life, but she hadn't been frozen by fear the -way
she was now.
"I
got to get out of sight," she whispered. "I'm too big now, she'll
take me for sure." She tugged her ragged kameez up, trying to bunch it up
over her chest where she was bumpy now, but there wasn't enough fabric to cover
her top and bottom, too. Buddhe snickered and pinched her on the butt, and Faiz
yelled that he could see some hair that wasn't on her head.
"Who'll
take you?" Jana demanded.
"Didn't
you hear the whispers? Didi Badini's coming."
Didi
meant big sister. "Your family?" But why wouldn't Khetala want to go
with her sister? Nobody's family ever came for a kid. Only the real little
ones, like Chiura, even thought it would happen.
Khetala
tried to laugh. It came out like a grinding fall of rocks.
"Oh,
Didi Badini's everybody's big sister, didn't you know? Piper sends her at night
to take the pretty little kids, boys and girls both, and the girls that're
getting too big to be draggers, like Surya . . . didn't you ever wonder what
happened to Surya?"
"She
worked out her bond," Jana said slowly. "She went home. Didn't
she?"
Khetala
laughed again. "Don't you know anything? Nobody ever works out their bond.
Does Siri Teku ever show you how much you owe, how much you're earning, how
much he takes out for your keep?"
Jana hung her head. "I don't know my numbers so good."
"Well,
I do," Khetala said, "and the first time I asked to see my records,
he knocked me across the shed." The color was coming back to her face now,
her eyes were sparkling; she loved to instruct people. "The second time,
he said I'd have to come to his room, he kept the datacubes there. Huh! He
didn't even have a reader. Had somethm' else he wanted to show me, though. So I
know all about what Didi Badini's coming for."
"You
said she comes at night. It's not night."
"I
can't help that. Dunno why she's coming in the daytime this time, but I heard
the whispers. Besides, why else would Siri Teku keep us locked in here? Missing
a half day's shift "work, we are."
Khetala's
fear was infecting Jana, but she didn't want to show it. She yawned and turned
over on her side.
"So
what? Me, I get a chance to sleep, I'll take it. ... Besides, whatever Didi
Badini wants kids for, can't be worse than this place."
"Can't
it? She works for the Piper, dummy."
"Piper's
a story to scare kids down Below." Or maybe not. But they were Above now,
even if they had been locked in the sleep shed since before dawn. They were in
Sita Ram's realm of sky and sun. Piper couldn't have power here.
"Piper's
real, and he takes kids to the bonkshops in the city. You catch worse things
than chest-cough that way, too. You get the burnies, and the scale, and if they
don't kill you by doing it to you too much, then your nose falls off and your
crotch rots and they throw you out on the street to beg."
"How
do you know all that? "
"I
know what Siri Teku did to me in his room," Khetala said, "and I got
away from Ram Dal a couple of times when he wanted to do the same. And I been
in the city, too, before my mum died and her boyfriend sold me here. You can
see the beggars all over the place . . . and pictures of kids outside the
bonk-shops. Why do you think she takes the prettiest kids? And Siri Teku and
the other gangmasters, when a girl gets too tall to drag, they practic'ly give
her to Didi Badini . . . and I'm going to be tall. You'll be okay for a while,
Jana, you've been living on parts and bean paste since you were a baby, you'll
always be a little shrimp. Me, I had eleven years of good food and standing up
straight before I came here. I've got big bones. I won't be able to drag much
longer. You know that."
Jana
nodded slowly. Sometimes Kheti got stuck in the narrowest tunnels, the ones
leading to Face Three. That was one reason she usually worked Five now. And if
she grew much more, she -wouldn't be able to get through the low pitch on the
tunnel from Five.
"You're
not pretty, though," she said slowly. "Not since ..."
Kheti
rubbed the pink weal that crossed her right cheek.
"I
know. But I'm big. That's bad enough. If I thought gettin' my face messed up
would keep Didi Badini from takin' me, I'd go stand by the compressor and let
the flying chips cut me to pieces. But that won't make me small again."
A new
fear struck Jana. "Chiura!" Her face was burning up, but her hands
felt icy cold. "She wouldn't take ..."
"I
reckon that's why Siri Teku didn't clip her curls," Khetala said. "He
never figured to train her for a sorter. She's a little sweetcake of a kid,
specially the way you been keeping her washed and her hair combed so good. He
figured it was worth feeding her for a few weeks, then sell her to Didi Badini.
He'll make lots of creds off that one. He won't get much for me though. Maybe
if I can keep out of sight..."
Jana
didn't hear the rest. She darted to where Chiura was playing with a pile of
cast-off rocks and snatched her up, ignoring the baby's wails of protest.
"Come
on, sweetcake. We got to get you fixed up good for the visitors. Faiz, give me
your knife."
Faiz
rolled his eyes. "Who me? Got no knife, got nothing."
"I
seen you stroppin' that bit of steel," Jana said. "Give it here. You
can have it back when I'm through."
"You
going crazy," Faiz said. "Old Black eating your brain."
But he
fumbled in his pallet and came up with a thin band of metal, gleaming sharp
along one edge and rusty dull on the other.
Chiura
cried when Jana pulled her hair to hack off the curls, and she'd only got one
side of the kid's head when they heard steps outside.
"Sita
Ram, help me!"
Jana
rubbed her hands in the dirt and smeared it over Chiura's face. The tears and
snot mixed with the dirt until Chiura's round little face looked truly
revolting. Jana rubbed some more dirt into the long ringlets she hadn't had
time to cut, spat on the dusty hair and patted it into muddy strings that hung
down over the side of Chiura's face. That was good-she looked almost ugly now,
probably worse than if Jana'd had time to finish cutting her hair. She tossed
the knife back toward Faiz and pushed Chiura into a corner.
"You
sit there and don 't make a noisel" she hissed at Chiura.
The
little girl pulled her knees up and sat rocking back and forth, eyes wide- She
was probably scared to death that "Mama Jana" had been so rough with
her. All the better, if it would keep her quiet.
"I'll
give you a honey sweet when they're gone," Jana whispered, though she had
no idea where she'd get one. "Just keep quiet now, Chiura, sweetcake, you
don't want them to notice you." She squatted in front of Chiura, shielding
her with her body.
There
was a clanking noise -that would be Siri Teku unlocking the door. Then light
flooded in. It was full day. Jana felt a cold sweat of fear over her body. She
didn't want to believe in Kheti's panic, but Siri Teku had to have some good
reason for wasting all this work time. Time was credits, he always said, and
here he'd lost a lot of time keeping them in the shed-how much she hadn't
realized until the door opened and she saw all that light. The golden rectangle
of the open doorway hurt her eyes; she had been working day shift so long she
couldn't remember when she'd last seen so much sunlight. It had to be something
big to make it worth his losing all those hours at work. Just for a moment she
believed all Kheti's horror tales about Didi Badini, and more, too.
The man
and woman who followed Siri Teku into the shed didn't look evil, though. The
man was a pinch-faced little gray fellow, no fangs or nothing, so Jana reckoned
he couldn't be the Piper. And she didn't have much attention to spare for him
after she caught sight of the woman. She was the most beautiful thing Jana had
seen since she'd been brought to Anyag as a bondchild. To begin with she was
clean, with no dust dulling the sheen of her smooth brown skin. And instead of
being skinny and bony, she was plump and solid. And her clothes! The kameez was
all pink and gold, and it was made of something so light and gauzy that it
seemed to float over her body and caress her full curves like a cloud of
butterflies;
below
the gold-embroidered hem of the kameez Jana could see the cuffs of deep pink
shalwar, half hidden under gold anklets. Without meaning to, Jana made a small
sound of longing and reached out, then snatched her hand back. She wanted to
feel the fine stuff of the kameez, but she'd get it dirty. She was just a dirty
little girl of the mines and Siri Teku would beat her if she messed up this
fine lady. Maybe d he'll take me, Jana thought, and I'll wear silk. shalwar
unSer my kameez and eat every day and...
Didi
Badinl's eyes met Jana's for a moment. The eyes were not beautiful like the
rest of her; they -were cold and dark and hard, as if Old Black had sneaked up
Above to look through the beautiful lady's face. And when she saw the eyes,
Jana remembered seeing Didi Badini before. Only she'd thought it -was a dream.
She'd come at night last time, inspecting the children by lamplight. Jana had
rolled over and buried her head in her pallet, too tired to care about the
dream-people talking and moving the lamp; in the morning Surya had been gone.
"Too
skinny, too plain," Didi Badini said now to Siri Teku. "If that's
your best, you're wasting my time."
"I've
a big girl here, getting too big to drag the tunnels. Where's Khetala?"
Siri Teku demanded of the children.
Jana
hadn't noticed where Khetala had gone, she'd been too busy with Chiura. But
Israr's eyes flicked toward the corner farthest from the door, where several
pallets of rags seemed to have been heaped up together, and simple Lata said,
"She's playing hidey, but I saw her."
Siri
Teku kicked the pallets with all his force. Something gasped. He reached into
the heap of rags, fumbled for a moment, and pulled out Khetala by one arm.
"She
won't want me," Khetala sobbed. "I'm too ugly. Look!" She stood
in the sun and turned her face up so that the pink weal crossing one cheek
showed.
"Mmm,"
said Didi Badini. "Stand still, girl." She ran one hand over Khetala's chest, felt her buttocks, and
reached in between her legs. "Marked and used," she said "And no
more use here, as you said yourself. I'll take her as a favor."
"She
still owes on her bond," Siri Teku said.
Didi
Badini looked amused. "Don't they all?"
She and
Siri Teku haggled for a moment and agreed on a sum in credits that left Jana
gasping.
"No!
I won't go!"
Siri
Teku had let go of Khetala to wave both his hands during the bargaining; now
she ducked between the adults and made for the door. Didi Badini's fat brown
arm flashed out, quick as a snake, and caught the fat braid of dark hair that
hung down Kheti's back. Kheti hit the floor on her knees, only the hand on her
braid holding her upright.
"Please,"
she sobbed. "I'm ugly, see, you don't want me."
Didi
Badini's smile was full of Old Black. "Some of my clients like them that
way," she told Kheti. "You'll have more marks soon enough." She
nodded at Siri Teku. "Put the fight out of her. I'm not wrestling a
screaming cat all the way back to Celtalan."
Siri
Teku casually punched Kheti on the side of the head. Her head bobbed limply
from the braid that Didi Badini still held. He hit her again and her whole body
hung limp. Didi Badini let go the braid and Kheti fell onto the mud floor. Siri
Teku slung her over his shoulder and carried her out the door.
"That
is not what I came here to see," the gray man said in a voice like dry leaves
blowing in the winter -wind.
"Your
mister told me there was something worth coming here for," Didi Badini
said to the rest of the children. "Where is it? A pretty child, he said,
something really special, and too young to be worth training for -work."
Jana
looked at the floor. Maybe if she didn't look up, if she didn't see Old Black
peeping out of Didi Badini's eyes, maybe the woman wouldn't see her and
-wouldn't question the way she was crouched awkwardly in front of the corner
where Chiura sat.
"Was
it you he meant?" Didi Badini tipped up Faiz's head with one finger under
his chin. "Sweet brown eyes, but the teeth are hopeless and you look old
enough to be a good worker. Not you." She moved on to Lata, who looked up
with a vacant smile and tried to focus her one good eye on Didi Badini.
"If he meant this one, he's wasting my time." Her chubby brown feet
moved on with a tinkling of the little gold bells that were attached to her
golden sandal straps, until she stood in front of Jana. "Look at me,
child!"
The
sweet cloud of perfume that wafted from the folds of Didi Badini's kameez
almost choked Jana, it was too much, too sweet.
"Nice,"
said a little voice behind her. "Pretty."
"Ahhh,"
Didi Badini breathed on a long satisfied sigh. She bent and took Jana by the
nape of the neck. Her fingers were surprisingly hard and strong; she threw Jana
onto her side without even breathing hard. "So this is the prize."
"Pretty
lady," Chiura said, looking up. She grasped Didi Badini's kameez with muddy
fingers.
"A
lovely child, indeed, if she were clean."
"No,"
Jana gasped, coming up to her knees and pushing Chiura back. "No, lady,
you don't want her, she's simple, and sick already, she's got a bad sickness,
she'll make you sick, too." If only Kheti were there, Kheti who knew so
many words and knew all about the city! She'd be able to think of a good story.
But Kheti was gone, head lolling against Siri Teku's back, sold to the pretty
lady with Old Black in her eyes and her smile.
"Don't
talk nonsense, girl." Didi Badini slapped Jana aside with a backhanded
blow. Her hands were covered with rings; the ornate settings cut Jana's cheek.
"I suppose you're the one who tried to make her ugly? A right mess you've
made of her, too, half cutting her hair and all that mud. But I can still tell
she'll clean up fine. You come with Didi Badini, little one," she crooned
to Chiura. "Come and live in the city, sleep on silk and have sorbet to
drink every day."
Chiura
lifted her muddy arms to Didi Badini, then looked over her shoulder. "Mama
Jana? "
"Your
mister will take care of Mama Jana," Didi Badini said. "She's not
coming with us. Not this time." The cold black eyes flicked a scornful
glance over Jana, sitting on the mud with blood running down her grimy face.
"Maybe the mister will give her away when she gets too big for a
dragger."
"No.
Don't take her. Please," Jana begged. Siri Teku had come back in; she
clasped his knees.
"I'm
teaching her to sort, she'll be a good worker, I'll take care of her, she won't
be any trouble."
Siri
Teku kicked Jana away. His boot landed in her stomach and knocked the air out
of her. She lay on the floor and listened to her own breath whistling like
something far away and unimportant, while Chiura babbled in Didi Badinis arms
and somebody counted out credits. Then Didi Badini and the silent gray man were
gone with Chiura. And Siri Teku had raised his cane.
"I'll
teach you to try and hide my stock," he said before the first blow landed,
burning across Jana's chest.
There
was something about waking up on a planet that always excited Acorna. Maybe it
was the flavor of the air: not dead-pure as on the ship, but mixed with an
infinite variety of scents and the tantalizing hint of exotic goodies to
eat-tender new leaves, sweet crunchy roots, hectares of grass blowing in the
wind instead of the carefully tended blades grown for her in the ship's 'ponics
system. This morning she woke with her head filled with vague dream-images of a
sunny garden full of flowering shrubs and the music of trickling streams . . .
and another music, too, from little animals that danced in the treetops and
sang in sweet harmony. Was that a real place, or something she had concocted in
her dream? The images were so strong, she could almost imagine they were a true
memory of something she had seen when she -was a child. A long, long time ago,
because she'd been quite small in the dream-memory . . . before Nered, before
Greifen, before Theloi, even before Laboue . . . hadn't there been a garden
where the grass was soft and blue-green, and a pair of arms that held her up to
see the singing-fuzzies? But when she tried to chase down the elusive memory,
it vanished like a bubble on the water, leaving her with only the feeling that
nice things happened on planets if you went for a walk in the early morning.
There
was some vague discomfort and guilt associated with the clearer memory of the
gardens on Laboue with their singing stones, though. Hadn't Rafik and Calum and
Gill been angry with her for going out? Oh, yes-she had forgotten to wear those
robes that were supposed to cover up her horn. Well, she'd been a silly baby
then. She was grown up now. They'd said so last night. And she certainly knew
better than to make that mistake again!
Feeling
quite proud of her forethought, Acorna donned not only the clinging body wrap
and long skirt Gill now insisted she wear, but also a scarf of filmy green to
match the skirt which could be draped casually across her head so that instead
of a horn, she seemed only to have a bouffant hair style from which a few
silver curls escaped. Thus fully prepared, she slipped out of the mansion where
they'd been brought by skimmer and prepared to explore Kezdet's capital city of
Celtalan in her own way, by walking.
The
restricted life of a mining ship left Acorna with few chances to stretch her
long legs. She worked out daily in the ship's exercise roomexercise closet was
more like it, she thought, admiring the broad open spaces before her-but it
wasn't the same as having a good run on nice hard-packed dirt.
Not
that the immediate prospect from Delszaki Li's house offered any good
opportunities for a run. Already, early though it -was, the open space between
rows of town houses was filled with people in skimmers darting back and forth
on urgent errands. They flew low, obviously not expecting to have to dodge
pedestrians, and Acorna prudently kept to the narrow stone-covered strip just
alongside the houses. She congratulated herself on her intelligence and
forethought in keeping away from the skimmers. Gill and the others were all
wrong when they said she didn't know how to take care of herself dirtside.
True, she'd never been alone on a planet before. She'd gone out only on those
carefully chaperoned shopping trips where they stopped to sell their payloads.
But how dangerous could it be? This wasn't like EVA from the Uhuru, where a
slight mistake could leave you without air to breathe or send you spinning
dizzily away from the ship into space. Planets were asy; they had gravity and
atmosphere. What more did she need?
But
this part of this planet was boring-row after row of faceless walled houses
with metallic grills across their windows, and the only people awake -were
locked away in their skimmers and darted past her with no chance for
interesting conversations. Acorna raised her head, looking to the horizon for
something more amusing, and her
sensitive
nostrils caught a -whiff of something green and growing not too far away. She
followed the scent along stone pedestrian strips, her feet clacking on the
smooth-worked stone, until she reached its source.
Though
Acorna did not know it, the Riverwalk was Celtalan's glory of city planningat
its western end-and its shame at the eastern end, where the river that gave the
park its name had long been allowed to degenerate into a polluted, half-choked
stream. She entered by the arches cut through hedgerows on the -western side of
Celtalan, where everything -was neatly manicured and controlled to a
fare-thee-well. The view through the first arch gave the illusion of spacious
countryside with rolling hills; it was only after Acorna had walked through the
entrance-way that she realized how clever landscaping and tricks of perspective
had made this park surrounded by city buildings seem so much larger than it
really was. Little streams (carefully purified before they -were guided into
their preformed channels) trickled over miniature waterfalls of moss-covered
boulders; half-size gazebos and follies, perched atop grassy mounds, gave the
illusion that one was looking down vistas of limitless space laid out by a
landscape architect of infinite means. Acorna beguiled half an hour in a
flowering maze before the sweet smell of the fresh green buds next to the
flowers became unbearably tempting. Rafik and Gill had impressed upon her
strongly that it -was considered a social faux pas to eat other people's
gardens. If she went back to the big house, that nice Mr. Li would probably
find her something she could eat. But she wasn't tired yet, and at the far side
of the maze she could see that the careful landscaping of the Riverwalk began
to degenerate into something wilder and less carefully manicured. Instead of
the gravel path that hurt her feet, there was a path of hard-packed earth, a perfect
surface for running on. . . . Acorna glanced around, saw no other early risers
who might be surprised or offended by her actions, and carefully kilted up her
long flowing skirts to above her knees. After all, she assuaged her conscience,
she had only promised Gill that she would wear the skirt; she was still doing
that, wasn't she?
Two
Kezdet Guardians of the Peace, observing the park from overhead scanners, saw
the tall girl take off at a galloping run down the dirt path that led to the
river on the eastern edge of the Riverwalk Park. They shrugged and continued
sipping their morning kava. Most members of the wealthy technoclass -who
inhabited the west-side mansions knew better than to go anywhere east of the
river without an armored skimmer and armed bodyguards. Doubtless this girl
would turn back before she reached the river bridge. And if she didn't-well,
there might be a reward in it for them if they got her out of trouble and saw
her safely home. Before she got into trouble, there was no reason to bestir
themselves.
Pounding
down the dirt path, her horncovered feet landing solidly on the earth, Acorna
felt more alive than she could ever remember. Some atavistic instinct deep
inside her told her that thm was what she was born for-not the sterile confines
of a ship, but long glorious runs up grassy slopes and down the other side,
effortless leaps over the ragged brambles that impeded her way after she left
the path, the morning breeze blowing through her tangled curls. The blood
throbbed in her veins and she increased her speed until she felt as though she
were flying over the grass and bushes, flying down a long weedinfested downhill
slope. . . .
The
same instincts that had urged her into a run saved her from a fall into the
stinking river at the bottom of the slope. Without consciously thinking about
the obstacle, she shortened stride, collected her balance, and launched herself
from the bank in a long, glorious arc that carried her safely over the ten-foot
expanse of stinking, graygreen water.
On the
far bank the park ended abruptly and the expanses of pavement resumed, but with
a difference. Instead of long regular rows of tall, faceless houses there were
clusters of humbler dwellings, with dirt paths winding off between the
buildings. Instead of businessmen in skimmers, the main road was full of
people: stalls and carts selling bangles and snacks and fruit and vegetables, a
knife grinder squatting in the corner made by two mud walls, a huddle of street
urchins playing some game that involved mad rushes in pursuit of something
Acorna couldn't quite see. She grinned happily. This was interesting. She would
explore a little, get an apple or some
other snack from one of these stalls, and be back at the house before anybody
else woke up.
Overhead,
in the scanner tower, one of the Guardians of the Peace nudged the other one.
"D'you see that?"
"See
what?"
"That
girl. She jumped the river!"
"You've
been burning too many happy-sticks," grunted his partner. "River may
be down to a miserable trickle, but it's still too wide to jump. Besides, why
would anybody take the risk of falling in there when there's a perfectly good
bridge upstream?"
"Maybe
she didn't want to detour. Maybe she didn't want to explain her business to the
bridge guards. This could be interesting. Let's take out a skimmer and follow
her."
The
fried meat pies being hawked from the first rolling stall didn't appeal to
Acorna, but the second wagon held a tempting display of fruits and vegetables .
. . rather more tempting from a distance, she realized with regret, than on
closer inspection. The apples were soft and wrinkled, the madi-fruits covered
with brownish spots.
"Do
you not have anything fresh?" she demanded of the owner.
"All
fresh, gracious lady, picked just this morning from my cousin's farm."
"Huh!"
the meat pie seller grunted, just audibly, "just fell off the back of your
cousin's skimmer, more likely."
Acorna
did not wish to get embroiled in the men's bickering. She pointed at random to
a cluster of ruta roots. They looked slightly limp, but ruta aged well, and
they'd be something to nibble on while she walked back through the park. She
tasted one -while the stall-keeper wrapped the others in a scrap of plastifilm
for her; the insides, at least, were still sweet and crunchy.
"That'll
be five credits," the stall-keeper said, holding out the package.
From
the way his neighbor's eyebrows shot up, Acorna guessed that she -was being
charged at least double the going rate for a bundle of slightly overage rutas.
But that wasn't important. What WAS important was that this blasted skirt had
no pockets, and she hadn't been thinking of money when she left the house that
morning.
"Charge
it to the account of my guardian, Delszaki Li," she said.
The stall-keeper's
face turned ugly. "Look, techie, we don't run charge accounts this side of
the river. Credits in hand is my rule."
"Then
keep the rutas," Acorna said, "they weren't that fresh anyway."
"You'll
pay me for the one you've eaten! I been robbed already once this morning by one
of them thieving street brats, I'm not having some techie come along and make a
free meal off my stall on pretense of sampling the goods!" "Hey, Punja, we got the little thief
for you!" called one of the street urchins whose game Acorna had noticed
just before she inspected the stall.
Now,
with a sinking heart, she realized that the quarry in their "game"
was not a youngling from their group, but a much smaller child, bruised and
bleeding from a cut lip, who struggled madly as the larger boys hauled her
bodily toward the stall.
"And
a lot of help that is," Punja snarled, "you can tell by looking that
she hasn't a clipped credit to pay me back."
"What
did the child take?" Acorna interrupted.
"Three
of me best madi-fruits. Gobbled them down on the run, she did. I suppose you'll
be wanting that placed to the account of your guardian, too, will you?"
the man asked Acorna with heavy sarcasm.
"You
could give us a reward for catchin' her," one of the boys holding the
child grumbled.
"What
good's it to me that you caught the brat? You can give her a good beatin' if
you like, teach her not to steal from respectable merchants," Punja
suggested. "That should be enough reward for you. Have a little fun before
you turn her loose."
The
boy's heavy-browed face lit up with an expression of sickening glee, and he
slammed a fist into the child's stomach before Punja had finished speaking.
"That's
just for starters," he told the gasping, white-faced child. "Now you
can come along wif me and me mates and see if you haven't got something to pay
us back for our effort."
"Scrawnier'n
a bondworker," one of his pals demurred.
"But
free," the first boy pointed out, "or did you suddenly get rich
enough to patronize a bonkshop, huh? Now me, I'm ..."
He
never got a chance to finish articulating his philosophy of life. All that had
delayed Acorna's intervention was the need to tuck her flowing skirt farther
out of the way. Now she executed another leap from her perfectly balanced
standing position, came down with one foot on the first boy's stomach and swung
the other to crunch into his mate's nose. Rather pleased with the results of
her self-defense classes with Calum, she recovered her balance and pulled the
starving child up by one wrist while the rest of the gang of boys, seeing what
had happened to their biggest and strongest members, melted away into the
network of dirt paths behind the main thoroughfare.
"You,"
she told the child, "had much better come with me. No one shall beat you
again."
The
child struggled feebly and tried to pull away from Acorna's hand.
A
skimmer settled in the dusty roadway, and two uniformed Guardians emerged.
"What's
all this?" the first one out demanded.
A
chorus of voices informed him, variously, that the girl was a techie out to
make trouble on the wrong side of the river; that the child was a thief and
ought to be bonded to honest labor; that the girl -was a foreigner who had
viciously attacked two innocent boys who just happened to be standing by the
stall.
"And
who's to pay for the damage to my stock?" wailed the stall-keeper,
virtuously holding up a handful of bruised fruit which he reckoned he could
blame on Acorna's part in the brief fracas.
"My
guardian, Delszaki Li, will cover all charges," Acorna said.
"Aye,
she keeps naming Li, as if she thought the sound of his name would carry all
before!" said the stall-keeper virtuously. "Y'ask me, she ought to be
confronted -with Li himself. If, as is no more than I suspect, she's lying,
he'll know how to deal with impostors. Why don't you make her go there
now?"
"I
should like nothing better," declared Acorna, "but this little girl
comes with me!"
"You'd
best be telling the truth," one of the Guardians warned her, "Kezdet
doesn't treat impostors and thieves lightly. Maybe you'd rather step off with
me and we'll . . . ahh . . . see if we can't work something out, hmm?" He
eyed the long shapely legs, which were by now almost fully exposed by the way
Acorna had tucked up her skirts for battle. Strange kind of furry stockings the
girl wore under her skirts . . . some new techie fashion, no doubt. Never mind,
he'd soon have those off her.
"Not
without me, you don't go nowhere!" the stall-keeper interrupted. "I
got a right to me damages."
Acorna's
prompt willingness to call on Delszaki Li had given him second thoughts. If the
girl was telling the truth, he should be able to get more "damages"
out of Li than his entire stall -was worth; Li was far beyond the need to count
credits when appeasing a poor man.
No one
had yet missed Acorna when the two Guardians of the Peace brought her back to the Li mansion, one holding
Acorna's left elbow firmly in his right hand, while she supported the waif
against her "with her right arm, Punja dancing behind this quartet. None
of the street children had been able to keep up with the skimmer as it set
about on its lawful errand, but they followed as far as they could: right up to
the rancid water.
"Jeesh,
how'd she get across this?" the leader of the group wanted to know.
"She dint come by the bridge, like."
One of
Delszaki's many discreet servants peered through the spy hole before exclaiming
and calling for the nearest girl to summon the master. Trouble was on the
doorstep. Then he flung the door open, kowtowing before Acorna until his nose
nearly touched his knees.
"Missy,
missy, why are you here? You have not arisen from your bed as yet," he
said, bobbing in his consternation.
"Will
you please inform Mr. Li that I am here and not in my bed and need him. If he
is in his bed, I am truly sorry to disturb him ..."
Pal and
Judit came down the massive stairway as if it had turned into a slide.
"Acorna!"
cried Judit, and then exclaimed more loudly when she saw the bedraggled girl
Acorna was protecting.
"Mr.
Li is on his way this very moment, Guardians," Pal said, gesturing for
them to enter. "If you "will be so good as to step inside. ..."
and, with a very deft push of his rear against the front door. Pal closed it right
in the stall-keeper's face.
Oblivious
to the howls outside and imprecations which could be heard, if muted, through
the thick panels of the door. Pal courteously guided the Guardians of the
Peace, who were exchanging bemused and gratified glances, while Acorna was
trying to get the child's arms from around her neck so that Judit could take
charge. The child was moaning and weeping in the desperate way of her age: all
the more effective since such "lost" noises demonstrated that she had
been bereft of comfort for long enough not to expect any to come her way.
"You
know this . . . this . . . person," the first Guardian said, for by now
the kerchief on Acorna's head had been pulled off and the distinctive horn was
visible.
"Of
course we know her," Pal said so stoutly that both raised hands in defense
of their query. "She is the Lady
Acorna, beloved ward of Mr. Delszaki Li, who is surely known to the Bureau of
Guardians ..."
"Indeed
he is, and very generous he is to our retirement and the vacation funds,"
the second man said, bobbing not unlike the doorman but not as deeply, as much
because he couldn't have folded his paunch as because Guardians are not
supposed to show respect to any but their superiors.
"Are
you all right, Acorna?" Pal asked, taking her by the arm and leading her
to the nearest chair. She looked very shaky indeed to him. "Where did you
go? Why have they brought you back?" he whispered.
"I
wanted to run on the grass," she said in a very tiny voice.
Just
then Rafik, Calum, and Gill entered the room, having obviously thrown on the
nearest clothes to hand.
"Now,
Guardians, just what is the problem?" "Well, the . . . the . . .
female there . . . said she was Mr. Li's ward and she got into a bit of a spot,
so -we thought we'd better check it out."
"You
mean, you did not believe the word of a gently bred girl who is obviously well
dressed and clearly not the sort of person who gets into spots?" Rafik
said, but the look he shot Acorna indicated to her, at least, that he was going
to have a few choice words with her.
She got
very interested in brushing the dirt off her hands and then her arms. She could
do little about the stains on her lovely skirt right now, butshe did straighten
her head covering. Not that it mattered.
Delszaki
Li appeared in his hover-chair, and so the reception room became quite cramped.
"Now,
Acorna, my dear, why did you go out without someone to escort you wherever you
wished to go?" He turned to the Guardians. "Cordonmaster Flik and
Constable Grez, what seems to be the trouble?"
In the
background, someone "was kicking the door steadily. To the rhythm of the
blows, Cordonmaster Flik, who was extremely gratified to realize that Mr. Li
knew both his name and that of his partner, explained the circumstances. Since
the cameras on the exterior of the house had taken pies of the two Guardians
and their identities had been verified by Central Guard Headquarters, the
knowledge surprised only the two Guardians.
The
matter was shortly resolved and Punja paid exactly what his merchandise was
worth and the look given him by Pal as he handed over the half credits made
Punja very certain that this was not the person to haggle with-and sent his
way. A junior servant very quickly appeared to remove the scuff marks of
Punja's plastic shoes on the fine wood of the door so that when the Guardians,
invited to have some refreshment, left, there was no mark remaining of the
morning's fuss. They also left with sufficient credits, yet not too many, to
ensure that the incident would be "suitably" reported in their log as
a "lost child returned to her home." "Whatever possessed you, Acorna?" Rafik demanded when
the Guardians had been sent on their way, well, but not overly, paid for their
rescue work.
"I
-wanted to run on the beautiful grass," she said, gulping back a sob.
"Now,
now." Judit was back and slid into the seat beside her. "It's all
right, dear. No one is mad at you. Just terribly upset that you had such a
fright."
"I
-wasn't exactly frightened," Acorna said, raising her delicate chin, her
eyes slits of remorse, "I was furious to see a little child beaten like
that for taking damaged fruit." She had clenched her fists and brought
them down so hard on her knees that Calum winced. "Where is she? She was
so terribly frightened and hurt and hungry."
"She's
fine, dear," Judit said. "She's being fed, carefully, because she
hasn't had any food in quite a few days and to eat too much would be unwise.
Then we shall bathe her and make sure she sleeps. Although," and Judit's
delightful laugh eased the tension in the room, "I have a suspicion that
once her tummy is full, she will fall asleep before we can clean her up."
"So
why did you go out? Why so early? Didn't you know how dangerous it is out
there?" Calum demanded. He turned to the rest of them. "She's not
stupid; I've never seen anybody pick up the basic concept of Fourier transforms
so fast. I can't understand why she would do such a stupid thing."
"How
would she know Kezdet could be dangerous?" Gill leapt to her defense.
"She's never been planetside for more than a day or two, and always with
one of us."
"The
park was beautiful," Acorna said. "It was like the one in my dreams.
..." She realized that was a lame excuse. But maybe no one would realize
that the park was so far from the house that she couldn't have known about it
when she ventured out.
"Your
dreams?" asked Mr. Li in a coaxing voice and waved Rafik and the others
away. "You men, stop harassing the child. Will make her more afraid of you
than of Kezdet!" While Calum and the other men took the seats he indicated
at a good distance from Acorna, he turned his attention back to her. "Tell
me about these dreams . . . while Judit fixes you a refreshing drink. I think
you may need one."
Acorna
sipped something cool and green and tangy and then told him about the dream,
and how the park had seemed so like it.
"At
least the first part of the park -where it was truly lovely," she said,
ending lamely.
"No,
-we will not try regression, Mr. Li," Judit said suddenly. "The
method produces enough problems -with cortices we are beginning to
understand."
"It
was but a thought."
"I
think her . . . adventure, though, has proven a thing or two to the
others," Judit said, smiling at her employer.
"Has
it. Well, that is advantage then," and he leaned over to pat Acorna's arm,
below the mud.
"No
action -without some profit, if the eye can see it. You rest now, later we talk
again."
Acorna
stood. "I am very sorry for any trouble I caused."
"Must
make errors in order to learn," Mr. Li said understandingly and pulled his
hover-chair aside so she could leave the room.
"Do
you need any assistance, Acorna?" Judit asked gently.
She
shook her head. Distress still narrowed her pupils to vertical slits. "I
must think. It is sad ... I have never seen such terribly poor people."
The two
watched her make her way in slow repentant steps up the stairs and to her
quarters.
"Reality
has touched Acorna," Delszaki said with a heavy sigh of regret.
"Ki-lin
must know of reality, sir," Judit said as gently as she had spoken to
Acorna.
"A
rude awakening," and he sighed again.
"She
had healed the child," Judit added. "I hope that the Guardians of the
Peace did not notice."
"They
have been taken care of," Delszaki said.
"Their
interest has been redirected into useful paths."
"So
what is next to be done?"
"Meet
with the miners and discuss the Moon Project and this dream world of
Acorna's."
It was
Delszaki who noticed that Rafik and Gill did most of the talking, while Calum
seemed more intent on covering the notepad in front of him with
light-pen
doodles: most of which were primaries with satellites whirling around them in
impossible astronomical patterns.
"What
is it that you see in those patterns, Calum Baird?" Delszaki asked,
pausing the conversation on double domes versus linked units.
Calum
sat straight up and pretended he had been listening to every word said. Rafik
glared at him, but Gill looked surprised at his inattention. Last night he'd
been full of good suggestions.
"I
think we have got to find Acorna's home world first," he said, letting the
sentence out in a rush, then he colored as redly as Gill could.
"How
can we possibly find what the child only remembers as a dream?" Delszaki
asked.
"But
she does remember something. I was just thinking ..." and he ran dots on
the primaries, "that every star has its own spectroanalysis. And every
star throws out satellites, if they do generate planets, that are made up of
their constituents. Maybe a bit more metal on that one, maybe just gases on
another, but if you knew what metals a primary had to disperse, you could find
the right one," he waved a hand heavenward, "and find Acorna's."
Rafik
shook his head. "There's not enough difference in constituents. Stars are
all basically made of the same stuff-at least, all the ones that generate
Earth-type planets are going to look pretty much alike to spectroanalysis.
Certainly they'll all have the conventional metals."
"The
pod Acorna came in," Calum said stubbornly, "is not composed of
conventional metals. Not entirely, anyway. We never did figure out exactly
what-all was in the alloy, but it's not like anything we-humans-use for space
and industrial construction. Lighter. Stronger." He waved his hands.
"I'm a mathematician, not a physicist. It's worth studying, don't you
think?"
"You
have original spacegoing container?" The fingers of Li's left hand tensed
over the corn pad on his chair. "And have not mentioned the artifact
before?"
"Well,
it scarcely came up in conversation, after all," Calum said
apologetically. "We always meant to study it one day."
"Ah,
well, it takes but a little arrangement..." and, even as Delszaki turned
to Pal, the young man -was tapping out an access code, "... to make
appointment to discover what -we may from it."
Actually,
it took considerably longer because Raflk, Gill, Calum, and Pal had to bring a
collapsible crate to the Uhuru so that anyone watching would not see what they
were unloading. Of course the vehicle Mr. Li could put at their disposal for
the transfer was state of the art and undoubtedly left a number of watchers
gawking at its speed and maneuverability so that the precious pod was at its
destination before they had managed to achieve altitude in the traffic pattern.
Delivered
to the impressive cube of one of Mr. Li's business acquaintances, it was taken
by gravlift down to the bowels of the cube, through several
alert
and noncurious security checks and into the appropriate room for its closer
examination.
"You
can call me Zip," said the white-coated older man who greeted them there.
He had an oriental cast to his features and olive skin, but he spoke in an
accent that suggested he had learned many other languages before the Basic he
now used. He was also minus the first joint of both small fingers and the tip
of one ring finger. "Mr. Li says you have a puzzle for me. Pal. I love
puzzles."
The
three miners decided they liked his style and, with Pal, quickly uncrated the
pod for him.
"Ah!"
he exclaimed, raising both hands in awe, and his eyebrows and letting his mouth
hang open. Then, he prowled around it, kneeling down to see the underside of
the ovoid and standing on tiptoe to look over it. "Ah!" he said
again, seeing the inscriptions and delicately tracing them with an index finger
as lovingly as a mother would trace the features of a child. "And you've
done nothing to discover if this language is known?"
Rafik
looked at Gill and Cal and they all shrugged. "We're miners, not
linguists."
"What
about the occupant? Well, there was one, -wasn't there?" Zip said testily.
"Or so I -was given to understand. I do have Mr. Li's complete confidence,
you know. But I need some clues."
"I
thought . . . well . . . maybe," Calum stuttered, no longer so sure of his
premise.
"That
if we had some idea of what metals comprise this alloy, we might use the
spectroanalysis of stars to find out which ones are more likely to have
produced satellites with similar material," Pal said with a polite nod to
the tongue-tied Calum.
"Not
very likely," Zip said briskly. He repeated Rafik's argument.
"Then
there's nothing we can do?" Calum looked cast down.
"How
come you believe him and not me?" Rafik muttered.
"I
did not say there was nothing to be done." Zip looked at them severely.
"You must listen more carefully if you wish to be true scientists. The
avenue of approach you suggested is not likely to succeed . . . but there are
some other things we can play with. Cosmology has advanced slightly since the
days of planetbound observatories," he said with a slight sneer.
"Have you ever heard of upsilon-V testing? Planetary emissions separation?
Mass diffusion imaging? Do not tell me how to do my job." He tapped the pod
and ran his hands across the top, around the sides. "Come, come,
gentlemen, it is enough of a puzzle by itself without me having to waste time
discovering the opening mechanism."
"We
wouldn't," Calum said sweetly, "want to interfere -with the expert."
"But
we would want to cooperate. Wouldn't we, Calum?" Rafik reached over and
showed how the pieces slipped into each other, then the lid slowly opened
upward.
"Ah!"
Once again Zip threw up both hands in delight at the furnishings within. He was
feeling over every inch of it while the four watched and, bored by his
diligence, began to shift their weight
from
one foot to another. Rafik finally gave a little cough which interrupted the
tactile examination. "Ah, yes. This is not something that can be solved in
a trice. Or even a nonce. Go," and he flicked one hand at them in
dismissal while, -with his other, he reverently felt the lining in which the
baby Acorna had once lain. "I will report when I have discovered anything
of interest. My respectful greetings to Mr. Li," he said to Pal, and
turned back.
They
were passed through the various checkpoints and back to the roof where their
vehicle awaited them.
"Say,
I thought the ID was 87-99-20-DS?" Calum said, pointing to the craft.
"And I'd've sworn blind it was blue."
"I
smell fresh lacquer," Gill said as they closed the gap to the machine.
"It's
the same type," Rafik said, because he hadn't noticed the ID nor the
color.
"A
little precaution that might, or might not, be necessary," Pal said as he
opened the door. "The color is dry."
Calum
entered, perplexed. Gill was frowning, but Rafik began to like Delszaki even
more. A cautious as well as a prudent man.
As
Judit had predicted, the child Acorna had rescued fell asleep before she had
finished eating, clutching a piece of bread so tightly that it could not be
removed from her chubby fist without reducing it to crumbs. "Maybe we can just sponge her off
while she snoozes," Judit suggested, but Acorna resisted the suggestion
fiercely. "Let her sleep! She must be exhausted, poor little thing. I'll
bathe her when she wakes up."
Acorna
sat over the sleeping child for the rest of the morning, watching the gentle
rise and fall of her chest under the light blanket Judit had thrown over her.
She was filthy, but that could be remedied; too thin, too, but regular good
food would take care of that. The bruises and scratches she had borne after the
scuffle in the street were slowly fading, encouraged by an occasional gentle
nuzzle from Acorna's horn to heal into clean newflesh.
"She's
only a baby!" Acorna thought indignantly. "Why isn't somebody taking
care other?"
She did
not realize she had spoken her thought aloud until Pal Kendoro answered her.
"Someone
is, now," he said. "You are."
He had
been silently watching for some time, entranced by Acorna's rapt attention to
the sleeping child and the tender look on her face as she nuzzled the baby's
scratches with her horn. Some people, he realized, might have found the scene
outlandish or alien. To him it was simply the most perfect expression of
motherly love he had ever seen. It didn't matter that Acorna was of a different
species, that she might never have children if they couldn't locate her home,
or that those children would be physically very different from the starving
beggar she had snatched up out of the streets of East Celtalan. The bond of
love was there. "But how could
she have been simply abandoned to starve?" Acorna smoothed the ragged
curls away from the right side of the child's face. On the left side of her
head the hair had been crudely hacked short. "She must belong to
somebody."
"I
don't think she was abandoned," Pal said. "She's a beautiful child.
The way her hair was hacked off, it looks as if somebody was trying to make her
look ugly. Probably the same person helped her to run away."
"What
is wrong with beauty? And what would she be running away from?" Pal sighed
and prepared to recapitulate Delszaki Li's lecture on Kezdet's system of child
labor, bondage, "recruiting," and outright kidnapping. What Li had
told Acorna and the miners had probably been too much for Acorna to take in all
at one time. Calum went into rhapsodies about the speed with which Acorna
absorbed mathematical and astronautical theories, but learning emotional facts
was something else again.
"There
are many children on Kezdet with no one to look after them," he said.
"Some are orphans, some are unwanted children from other planets -who have
been brought here to work in mines and factories, some are bought from their
parents to do the same work. If they don't work, their only alternative is to
starve in the street." He frowned. "She doesn't look young to have
run away, though. Mostly it's the older children who have the gumption to escape
and the wit to make some sort of plan. Perhaps when she wakes we can find out
more about her, at least get some idea what -workplace she was bonded to."
"Not
to send her back!" Acorna said, flinging a protective arm over the little
girl.
"No.
We won't send her back. And if. . ." Pal had been about to say that if the
child's bondowners traced her, Delszaki Li would surely buy her freedom. But he
decided not even to mention that possibility in the face of Acorna's fierce
protective instincts. "If what?"
"If
we can find out her name," Pal improvised, "she might have parents
who are looking for her." Personally he doubted it; most children who
ended up in Kezdet's labor system did so precisely because they had parents so
desperately poor they had no option but to sell their children. But he found
himself wanting to put the best possible face on the child's situation for
Acorna's sake.
Acorna's
eyes narrowed to slits, then she took a deep breath and deliberately widened
them again.
"Yes,"
she said sadly, "all lost children like to think that their parents are
searching for them. If this one has not traveled too far, perhaps her people
may be found."
Pal
could have kicked himself for his clumsy words. How could he have forgotten,
even for an instant, that Acorna too had been a foundling, and one who did not
know even where her race was to be found, let alone her own parents? No wonder
she identified so instantly and protectively with this little waif. He
stammered, trying to find some words of apology that would not deepen Acorna's
pain, and was saved by the abrupt awakening of the waif.
"Mama!"
she wailed, and pushed Acorna away when she would have cradled her in her arms.
"Mama Jana. Chiura wants Mama Jana."
"There,
you see," said Pal, deftly catching up the flailing child and carrying her
toward the bathroom before Acorna could realize how thoroughly she had been
rejected, "she knows her own name and that of her mother. We're making
progress already."
Most of
the progress they made in the next half-hour consisted of transferring large
quantities of warm water from the tub and onto the carpets, draperies, and
themselves. Finally Chiura calmed down, exhausted by her hysterical sobbing,
and sat quietly patting the remaining few inches of water in her tub and
watching the soap bubbles that formed and popped under her hands. Pal took
advantage of the peaceful moment to question Chiura gently. Did she know how
she came to the city? In a skimmer? Who piloted the skimmer? How did she come
to be alone? Where was she before she came to the city?
Chiura
babbled and wandered from topic to topic while Pal tried to make sense of her
words and kept her going with questions, always sheering away when Chiura's
eyes crinkled up and she started to look upset again. Acorna wrapped Chiura in
a towel, took her on her lap, and tried to comb out the long ringlets that had
been caked in mud before the bath and the first three rinses. Chiura babbled
that "a bad man" had piloted the skimmer and they had come from
"the bad place". . . and Acorna "was pulling her hair", and
she "wanted Mama Jana now!
"It's
no use," Acorna said despairingly. "Oh, I wouldn't say that,"
Pal said. "You don't know enough about Kezdet to -work out the clues, but
I'm getting a pretty fair idea where she -was before she was brought to the
city . . . and why she was wandering the streets alone." It was as he had
suspected when Acorna cleaned her up and he saw how lovely the child was.
"Khetala,"
Chiura piped up. "Said when she made Didi Badini busy, run, run away,
hide. There was a little fire." She thought it over. "Maybe big fire.
Didi Badini was mad, but Chiura hid quiet-quiet under the stinky sacks."
Her eyes crinkled and a tear plopped down her cheek. "Didi Badini hit Kheti,
but Kheti didn't tell. Then Kheti jumped on Didi Badini and they roll around
and get all muddy and Chiura ran, long way, got lost. Chiura bad?"
"No,
darling," Acorna said, hugging her and kissing her tangled curls.
"Whoever this Didi Badini was, she does not sound like a nice person at
all and I am sure Kheti would not have wanted you to go back to her."
"You
see," said Pal, "we're getting somewhere. It's not as hopeless as it
seems. And I'd like to meet this Kheti," he added. "Anybody who'd set
a bonkshop on fire to give a kid a chance to get away ..."
"Hopeless?
Oh-I meant her hair," Acorna explained, ruefully lifting a rat's nest of
tangles in one hand. "It will all have to be cut."
"Would
have had to be anyway," Pal pointed out, "to match the other side. Or
did you want her to go around looking lopsided?"
Acorna
managed a smile at that. Chiura bounced up and down on Acorna's knee and cried,
"Lop-side! Lop-side!" until both adults were laughing helplessly. And
Pal managed to put off explaining what he had deduced of Chiura's fate until
after she had demolished a bowl of sweet patts and beans and had fallen asleep
again.
"The
name of Didi Badini is a dead give-away," he explained then.
"Didi" literally means "older sister" in the original
language, but in Kezdet children's slang it means a woman who procures young
girls for . . . um ..." He blushed under the unblinking gaze of Acorna's
wide silver eyes. "For immoral purposes," he finished in a rush.
"You
mean, so that men can have sexual intercourse with them?" Acorna
translated calmly. Then, at Pal's look of surprise, "Calum and Rafik and
Gill have an extensive library of vid-cubes on the ship, and I have watched
many of them-and not only the interactive training cubes on mining techniques!
I do not think I was supposed to know about the others, but sometimes it was
very boring when they were all working outside and there was not yet any
crushed ore for me to run through the refining processes. Those vid-cubes that
Calum kept behind his bunk were boring, too," she added reflectively.
"I do not understand why anybody would want to do such uncomfortable and
undignified things-and over and over, too! Except that I gather from the
Encyclo that it is necessary to make babies. Still, some of the actors in the
vid-cubes seemed excessively enthusiastic about their work."
"The
enthusiasm is something that . . . um . . . develops as one matures," said
Pal, making a mental note to tell the miners that their charge had a rather
more extensive education than they realized. Then he had to explain to Acorna
that, yes, some men were so enthusiastic they paid females to partner them in
this undignified activity-and some were so perverted that they preferred the
use of very young females.
"But
Chiura is only a baby," Acorna protested. "It would hurt her!"
"The
men who buy the use of children," Pal said grimly, "don't care if it
hurts them. Mercy..." He stopped. Mercy had made him promise never to tell
Judit what had happened to her after Judit won the scholarship to get
off-planet. Neither Pal nor Mercy wished to burden her with unnecessary guilt
about things she couldn't have stopped anyway. "Well, this little one
seems to have been lucky. Apparently this Kheti went to a lot of trouble to
give her a chance to run away. It probably wasn't as easy as Chiura makes it
sound, either."
"Lucky?
To beg and starve on the street!" "Better," Pal said.
"Believe me . . . better." "Then we have to find this other
girl, this Kheti, and get her free, too."
"And
what," Pal inquired, "do you plan to do about the hundreds of others
in like situations?"
"Saving
one is better than saving none," Acorna said firmly.
Pal
could hardly disagree -with this statement, but neither could he believe that
Acorna would accomplish much by starting a crusade against the Didis of East
Celtalan and that mysterious powerful figure, the Piper, who was said to
support the brothel industry and to be supported in wealth by its proceeds.
Delszaki
Li had been trying for years to identify the Piper, and when Pal joined him he
had brought the Child Labor League's network of gossip and spies to bear on the
problem. But not one of their covert sympathizers had turned up a whisper of
the man's identity. Even Mercy, ideally situated as she was in a Guardians of
the Peace office, had been unable to give them a clue; even the Guardians, it
seemed, did not know who the Piper really was. All they knew was that he was
wealthy, powerful, and absolutely ruthless in crushing any opposition. There
were rumors that he reserved some of the children bought by the Didis for his
personal use, and that these children were the ones found strangled and
floating in the river from time to time . . . unable to bear -witness against
him. Pal imagined Acorna's long silvery body mangled and tossed into the
polluted water, and felt physically sick.
All
things considered, it was almost a relief when Chiura woke up crying for
"Mama Jana" again and Acorna was distracted into trying to identify
Chiura's mother. To take her mind off the plight of the children in the
brothels. Pal enthusiastically tackled the task of decoding the clues they
could extract from Chiura's baby recollections ... a little too
enthusiastically, he realized, as they neared success.
"This
Jana can't be her real mother," he said after another lengthy questioning
session, interspersed with games of stacking vid-cubes, rolling a "wheel
that had fallen off a household trolley, and other improvised amusements.
"Look at what she played with the vid-cubes." Chiura had built a
completely enclosed space, then went around the room putting all the small
objects she could find inside the space and naming each one. "Lata. Faiz.
Buddhe. Laxmi. Jana. Chiura. Khetala."
"She
was telling us that all these people were on the same level, all trapped."
Chiura
had reacted vigorously when Acorna tried to lift the little bronze box
representing Jana out of the enclosure.
"No,
no, no!" she shrieked. "NO, run away! Siri Teku beat!"
Then,
in an abrupt change of mood, she had swiped at the stacked vid-cubes,
scattering the "walls" she'd built all across the room, and moved
every one of the figures out onto the open floor.
"She
was confined with a group of other children, probably all bonded
laborers," Pal interpreted. "Jana must have been one of the older
ones, like Khetala, who tried to take care other."
He
tried to get some idea of where Chiura had been kept, but she had only the
vaguest notions of place. There had been a big hill -with no trees, only rocks.
The sun went down behind the hill. Chiura had not been sent to work with the
other children and had no idea what they did, only that they came back dirty
and tired. What had Chiura herself done?
"Stupid
Chiura," she said, her face puckering up. "Laxmi hit Chiura."
That
night Pal consulted Delszaki Li's extensive atlas of Kezdet.
"I
think it must be someplace relatively close to Celtalan," he explained his
reasoning to Acorna, "because Chiura says they were not very long in the
skimmer-and anything over an hour's flight would be 'long' to a child that
young."
He drew
a line out from the depiction of Celtalan on the screen, representing the
distance a skimmer could fly in an hour, and requested detailed overlays of the
region. Then he narrowed the search by looking for treeless mountains
"with factories situated on the eastern side of the mountain. There was
only one. "It has to be the Tondubh Glassworks," he concluded,
"Unless . . . no. That's the only mountain that fits her description. "
"Then
we will go there tomorrow?," Acorna said, "and find Jana."
"I
don't think that's such a great idea," Pal demurred. "Mr. Li is
working on his own plans for freeing the bonded children. We could mess things
up for him by going out and making a fuss at the glassworks."
Acorna
gave him a disgusted look. "Naturally we will tell Mr. Li. But he will not
stop us. That child has already lost her home, her parents, and her trust in
the rest of humanity. Now you want to deprive her of the only person who cared
for her and completely destroy her? I know -what it feels like to be separated
from the people who take care of you," she said, remembering the terror of
the barren, chemical-scented corridors of Amalgamated space base and the mean
lady who would not take her back to Gill and Calum and Rafik. But they had come
for her. Who -would come for Chiura? They had to find this Jana.
After
the beating Siri Teku gave her for trying to hide Chiura, Jana lost her
position as dragger on Face Five. Her partner Khetala was gone, and anyway she
couldn't drag. That last kick Siri Teku gave her had crunched something in her
right knee; she could no longer put any -weight on that leg at all, and she
certainly couldn't crawl up the narrow shafts dragging a full corf of ore
behind her. Buddhe and Faiz took over the lucrative Face Five work. By way of
apology for taking her place, Faiz appropriated a slat from the roof -which he
-whittled into the shape of a rough crutch, so that at least Jana could drag
herself outside to the sorting slopes and the latrine trench. She supposed it
was kind of him, but she didn't much care any longer. She hurt all the time
since Siri Teku's beating, and the weals were hot and swollen and not healing
properly. Kheti -would have fussed about bad food and dirt, would have made her
-wash the -wounds and choke down nauseating stews of the -weeds growing on
Anyag's mountainous slag heap to supplement the unvarying diet of patts and
bean paste. Without Khetala to nag her into it, though, Jana just couldn't
bring herself to take the trouble. She was tired and achy and there didn't seem
to be much point in making herself even more miserable with cold water and weed
stew.
Siri
Teku had cursed when he saw that she was temporarily crippled, but her
unfeigned wince when he drew back his foot to kick her bad knee again restored
his good humor.
"Knew
I'd break that cheeky spirit of hers someday," he exulted, not even
troubling to address her directly. "She can take Chiura's place sorting
ore until she can walk again."
Laxmi
grumbled that Jana -wasn't much more use sorting ore than "that baby"
had been, and it was true. She -wasted long hours just sitting on the ore heap,
watching clouds drift across the sky, watching the evening shadows lengthening
in front of the slag heap that blocked off half the sky, desultorily turning
over bits of broken rock in her fingers from time to time. Laxmi made a point
of separating her work from Jana's so that Siri Teku would be in no doubt about
who had done what at the end of the day.
"You
can be lazy and starve if you -want to," she warned Jana, "I'm not
-working double for both of us. Hafta move fast if you -want to earn your
dinner."
"Who
cares?" said Jana.
Choking
down the gritty patts was just another pointless thing that seemed more trouble
than it was worth. She had to concentrate harder than she liked to make the
connection between missed dinners and the constant, gnawing knot of pain in her
middle. It wasn't the worst pain anyway, nothing near as bad as the throbbing of
the infected whip marks on her skin, or the sharp pain whenever she dragged her
bad knee somewhere. She knew, somewhere in the back of her fever-ridden mind,
that if she didn't eat she would get even weaker and die soon, but that didn't
seem to matter anymore, either. Without Kheti to bully them all into taking
care of themselves, the whole gang wouldn't last long; already Faiz had a
festering sore on one hand, and Laxmi's cough was worse than ever. Anyway, what
was the point of working so hard just to keep alive? Nobody cared whether Jana
lived or died, and since they took Chiura away there was no little soft warm
kitten-girl to cuddle and love. If Jana had been given to putting her thoughts
into words, she might have told Laxmi that without someone to love, there was
no reason to live. But talking was too much trouble. She listlessly pitched
another ore-bearing rock into her sorting box, to shut Laxmi up, and went back
to her dreamy contemplation of the clouds.
Pal had
half hoped that Delszaki Li would flatly refuse Acorna's request to visit the
Tondubh Glassworks in search of Chiura's "Mama Jana," or at least
would insist that she go surrounded by a small army of House Li servants and
bodyguards. Acorna had in mind to go unannounced and unescorted, except by Pal,
and pointed out that bringing a large group would almost certainly cause the
supervisor of the glassworks to treat their visit like an official inspection,
hiding all the children.
"I
think he will do so anyway," Delszaki Li said, his eyes twinkling at
Acorna, "but if you wish, shall go with only Pal and one other." He
tapped one of the buttons on the corn pad of his hover-chair.
"One?"
Pal began in outrage. "But that's totally inadequate to protect-" He
stopped and took a deep breath at the sight of the woman who had answered Li's
button.
"I
think you will find Nadhari adequate to any emergency," Li said dryly.
Pal
nodded, dumbstruck. Nadhari Kando was an all but legendary figure in the Li
household. Rumors said that before coming to work for House Li, she had been
one of the infamous Red Bracelets of Kilumbemba, or possibly a commander of one
of Nered's elite shock troops, or maybe she had personally created and led the
Army of Liberation that freed Anrath from its despotic rulers. Logic said a
woman who looked no more than thirty could not possibly have done all those
things, but when Pal looked at Nadhari, he could never decide which stories to
discount; she appeared capable of having done all three before breakfast.
Whatever she had once been, though, it had ended in an episode whose truth was
unknown to anybody in House Li. She had been dismissed in disgrace for a savage
combat action, or she had been sent to assassinate Delszaki Li and instead had
fallen under the spell of his uniquely personal charm, or Li had saved her from
summary execution at the hands of the Kezdet Guardians. Again, all three
stories seemed perfectly possible.
Five
feet six inches tall in her bare feet, lean and as tough as a length of braided
leather, Nadhari Kando was expert in three forms of knife fighting and six
forms of unarmed combat- none of 'which she had many chances now to use in the
line of duty, since she went everywhere armed with an arsenal of miniaturized
state-of-the-art weapons that could appear in seconds from her tight black
braids, her gleaming skin-tight red boots, or ... Pal gulped and tried not to
think about the other places where she probably concealed weapons. Rumor also
said that Nadhari could read minds and that was -why she always appeared
somewhere where her opponent was not expecting her, just outside of his blows
or behind his laser fire. But of course, nobody could read minds. That was just
a superstitious story.
He
hoped.
"I
shall be honored to accept Nadhari Kando's escort," Pal said through lips
suddenly gone dry. "If . . . that is ... if you are sure you can spare
her?" Nadhari's primary duty was to accompany Delszaki Li on all public
appearances.
Li
waved his good hand. "Nadhari is bored. Do not go out often enough or
encounter enough assassins to amuse her."
The
silent, black-braided woman in the doorway nodded once in confirmation of this
statement.
"Mission?"
she queried tersely.
"Ah
. . . the Tondubh Glassworks," Pal said. "Acorna will tell you all
about it as we are going along."
Acorna's
sunny mood gradually dimmed as they moved into the gray, dry industrial
district east of Celtalan proper, and by the time they reached Knobkerrie
Mountain she was hardly talking at all. The desolate landscape, spoiled by
decades of dumping industrial waste and punctuated by walled compounds
enclosing factories and housing, seemed uglier and more barren to her than any
airless asteroid.
"Does
it have to be like this?" she -whispered as the skimmer banked and hovered
over the compound bearing the Tondubh Glassworks logo.
"Kezdet,"
said Pal, "is ruled by the bottom line and the quarterly balance sheet. In
any given quarter there is more profit in spoiling the land than in preserving
it, just as there is more profit in buying new bond laborers than in keeping
those you already have happy and healthy. If you don't care whether your
workers live or die, and if they are too ignorant and frightened to complain,
then why bother to give them decent lodgings or attractive surroundings?"
The
skimmer settled gently into the space set aside for official visitors to the
Tondubh facility, and Pal jumped out, ready with the story he had prepared to
cover their interest in the facility. He spun the security guards a story about
an off planet vid-artist who wanted to feature Tondubh as one of Kezdet's
success stories, a concern that had contributed to giving this resource-poor
planet one of the higher gross planetary products in the sector.
"No
vid equipment allowed in the plant," the guard said.
Pal
gave in on this point after minimal arguing, since he had no idea what he would
have done if they hadn't insisted on this restriction; there hadn't been time
to procure the kind of recording equipment an intergalactically known vid-artist
would expect to use. The guard reciprocated by unbending slightly and allowing
as how they could arrange a brief guided tour for the lady, if she and her
companions would just wait an hour or so.
"No
time," Pal said, "her time on Kezdet is measured in hours. Of course,
if it's not convenient for us to see this facility, I'm sure the Gheredi
Glassworks would do just as well. If you'd just give me a note of your name and
number, so that I can explain to InterVid exactly why Tondubh proved unsuitable
. . ."
The
mention of Tondubh's biggest competitor on Kezdet, plus Pal's veiled threat
that he would see the guard took blame for letting this publicity opportunity
go to the competition, got them inside the glassworks without more ado. As they
passed the second security wall, Pal caught sight of a pair of slender, scarred
bare legs winking out of sight around the corner.
"Damn
kids," the guard said genially, "they're all over the place, bringing
messages to the workers, begging a bite of the hot meals Tondubh provides to
the hands, generally getting in the "way." The roar of the furnaces
within the main manufacturing facility almost drowned out his words. They
picked their way over a floor covered with shards of broken glass. The heat from
the open furnaces was like a blow? in the face; all the signs pointed to a
factory in full production, yet the immense room was curiously empty. Only a
handful of emaciated adults squatted in front of the furnaces.
"Do
you not employ children, then?" Acorna asked.
The
guard looked shocked. "'Deed, no. Why, that would be in violation of the
Federation Child Welfare Statutes! Mind you, I'm not saying an occasional one
as is underage may not sneak onto the payroll; these people breed like flies
and don't keep no records. But Tondubh has always done its best to abide by
Federation standards, madam. Get out of the way, there," he roared at a
boy who trotted into view with an iron rod taller than himself, the end covered
with a blob of molten glass.
"P-please,
sir, I was just bringing the glass to my gang leader," the boy stammered,
the end of his sentence all but drowned out by another outraged roar from the
guard. "Don't you know you kids aren't allowed to do anything but carry
water? Now put that glass down! You could get hurt, messing with hot
glass!"
The
little boy dropped his rod with a clang. Molten glass spattered into the air;
Pal and Acorna had to jump back to save themselves.
"Sorry
about that, madam. You see why it would be better for you to wait and take a
proper tour," the guard said. "It's hard enough to enforce proper
safety regulations here at the best of times, and with these brats infesting
the place for what they can pick up, well, it's no place for a lady like
yourself, and that's a fact. I'll just escort you back to the skimmer
now."
Nadhari
glanced at Pal and raised one brow inquiringly while she shifted her weight in
a manner he found ominous.
"No,"
Pal said under his breath. "We will go as requested."
Looking
disappointed, Nadhari relaxed slightly.
The
guard watched while Pal took off and cleared the factory airspace.
"That,"
Pal said grimly, "is just one of the problems we have to solve. Not employ
children, indeed! That factory is ninety percent child-operated, and everybody
knows it. But they have guards and gates and delaying tactics, and the children
are trained to hide when any strangers come. I had hoped that a party of three
would not be enough to alarm them. I was wrong."
"I
could have alarmed them," Nadhari said in her gravelly voice, with a smile
that sent a cold breeze along the back of Pal's neck.
"I
am sure you could take on the entire security force of Tondubh
Glassworks," said Pal tactfully.
"Piece
of cake," Nadhari confirmed. "Soft slugs. Poor defensive
position."
"But
I think Mr. Li might be annoyed if we started a private war."
Nadhari
nodded sadly.
"I
do not understand why the children hide," Acorna said. "Don't they
want to come out and ask for help?"
"They
do not have much experience with strangers who make their lives better,"
Pal said. "Usually it's the other way."
"That
poor little boy. The guard was lying about his not working there. Did you see
his feet? They were covered with burns and scars. If he hadn't run away, I
could have healed them." Acorna sighed. "I suppose, if they do not
admit to hiring children at all, it is useless to ask if they have a bonded
child laborer named Jana?"
Pal
agreed. He could have predicted this outcome to the trip, but it had appeared
the only way to convince Acorna of the enormity of the task was to let her see
for herself the kind of obstacles they faced. Now, however, he felt her
disappointment as keenly as if it were his own.
"There
is one other place we might try," he said. "I've been thinking . . .
it's true that Knobkerrie is the only treeless mountain this near Celtalan that
has a factory beside it. But to a little girl like Chiura, who's to say what
counts as a mountain?"
"There
isn't much else that could be considered a mountain," Acorna said, looking
down at the featureless landscape below the skimmer.
"Some
of the pit mines have pretty high slag heaps near the sorting bins," Pal
said, banking the skimmer slightly. "And one of the oldest mineswith one
of the biggest slag heaps-is not too far from here. It wouldn't hurt to pay a
visit to Anyag. This time, though, -we're going to think up a better
story."
"We
are?" Acorna had been tremendously impressed by the speed and fluency with
which Pal had spun his tale at the Tondubh Glassworks.
"We'll
have to," Pal said. "The children at Tondubh had plenty of time to
hide while I was convincing the guard that they couldn't afford to alienate a
galactic vid-artist. This time we're going to use a story that will make them
want to keep the children for us to inspect." He glanced at Acorna.
"Good thing you dressed up this morning. But you need to be a little
gaudier." He guided the skimmer down toward a walled compound of
courtyards and gardens, brilliant in the surrounding near-desert as an emerald
in the sand. "Wait in the skimmer," he said over his shoulder as they
landed.
A slim,
pretty girl with long black hair ran out of the nearest arcaded passageway,
calling excited greetings to Pal. He met her too far from the skimmer for Acorna
to hear what they said, but there was no need; his exuberant kiss of greeting
and the way he picked the girl up and spun her around in his arms told her all
she needed to know about their relationship. They disappeared together into the
maze of buildings and Acorna slumped in her seat, feeling remarkably foolish.
Of course Pal had a girlfriend. She'd seen enough story-cubes to understand
that this was the normal arrangement of human society. They spent twenty years
or so growing, and then they were ready to mate. Gill was showing every sign of
preparing to mate with Judit, and that didn't bother her; why should she feel
so depressed at seeing that Pal was in the same situation? Probably because
there was nobody for her to mate with. Not that she had the least interest in
the kind of sexual acrobatics displayed in Calum's secret vid-cube collection,
but it would have been nice to have somebody to share secrets and jokes with,
somebody who came running out with a joyful face when you came to their house,
somebody who would hug you and spin you around like that.
Ridiculous
to feel sorry for herself, just because she was the only one of her kind, when
so many people had worse problems. Acorna glanced at Nadhari, who was sitting
upright and watchful in the backseat. Nadhari was alone, too, and it didn't
seem to bother her. She didn't even need to talk to people except about her
work.
Acorna
shivered. She didn't -want to be quite that self-sufficient. How lucky she had
been to be found by Gill and Rafik and Calum, instead of by somebody who would
have sold her to a labor factory on Kezdet! Acorna sat up very straight and
concentrated on remembering how lucky she was and what a good life she had. She
managed to such good effect that when Pal reappeared and climbed into the
skimmer, the first thing he said was, "What's the matter?"
"Not
a thing," Acorna said. "Not a thing. I don't need to know what your
plans are. I just do what I'm told."
Pal
tightened his lips to conceal a smile. So Acorna could take a huff, just like
any other young girl, -when she felt left out and ignored! She might look
different, but she -was completely and gloriously female. And that thought
pleased him inordinately. He couldn't quite figure out why he should be so
pleased to see her displaying signs of jealousy, but . . . well, it was nice to
know that at least emotionally she was very human, indeed.
"Irodalmi
Javak's family is very wealthy," he said, "and her father would not
approve if he knew that she was a secret sympathizer with the Child Labor
League. He doesn't approve of me either, but pretending to be a penniless and
unacceptable suitor for her gives us an excellent cover for an occasional
secret meeting-even if anybody found out, they'd just think I was sneaking into
the compound to steal a few kisses."
"Oh."
Acorna digested this. "Then it's just . . . pretense? You two certainly
looked happy enough to meet!"
"I
am very fond of Irodalmi," Pal said truthfully. "She is a good, brave
girl and she risks a lot for the movement. But she has no use for boyfriends;
she wants to get off-planet and study to become a starship navigator."
"That
must be very sad for you."
"Nothing
to do with me," Pal said so cheerfully that Acorna began to feel much
happier. "She's got her life planned out, and I am developing plans of my
own. Our 'courtship' is a convenient cover, that's all. I didn't want her to
see you because the less she knows, the safer for all of us. But she lent me
enough of her jewelry to deck you out in the
necessary
style." Both his hands were fully occupied now with lifting the skimmer
and piloting it back toward Anyag. He nodded at the dark green case he had
brought out of Irodalmi's house. "Open that, will you, and put the stuff
on."
Acorna
was dazzled by the sight that met her eyes when she lifted the lid of the case.
A profusion of rings, bracelets, chains, and stick pins glittered in the
sunlight that filtered through the skimmer windows. Most of the jewelry was in
a heavy, ornate style of gold work that would suit neither the slender Irodalmi
nor Acorna with her silvery coloring, but there -was one ring of blue
starstones set in platinum, and a matching chain with a very large starstone
pendant. She put these on and longed for a mirror in which to check the effect.
"How
do I look?" she demanded of Pal.
He
glanced sideways and grunted. "I said, put it on. All of it."
"I
do not know much of fashionable dress," Acorna said, "but I think
that to wear all this gold at once would constitute a vulgar display of wealth,
as well as being most unattractive."
"Yep,"
Pal agreed, "that's Javak Seniors style, all right. Irodalmi doesn't care
for the stuff herself. Says that if she -wore her father's gifts, she'd look
like the senior Didi in a high-class bonkmg-shop. Which is what made me think
of her. That's precisely the effect we're after. Now put the Jewelry on.
Please."
Acorna
did her best to follow his instructions, but most of the rings designed for
human fingers would not fit on her less-supple digits, and she ran out of room
for bangles on her arms. "The
larger bangles are for your ankles," Pal instructed without taking his
eyes from the skimmer's instrument panel, "and can't you thread some of
the rings through that turban kind of thing you wear on your head?"
"Try
not to crash this thing in a lake," Acorna said after following his
instructions. "I'd sink like a stone. I'm not even sure I'll be able to
walk with this much jewelry hanging off my body."
"Excellent,"
Pal said. "We want you to look extremely rich and extremely vulgar. Too
bad you don't wear scent. A heavy dose of musk and jasmine essence -would
finish off the picture nicely."
"What
picture?" Acorna demanded.
"Just
came to me," Pal said, "in a sudden flash of inspiration. We geniuses
often work that way. If Didi Badini is welcome at Anyag to inspect the
children, why not Didi Acorna? Explains Nadhari, too," he added. "Any
Didi as rich as you're pretending to be would naturally travel with a
bodyguard."
"You
want me to pretend to be a Didi!" Acorna exclaimed. "That's a truly
revolting idea."
"It's
a truly brilliant one," Pal said. "Just leave the talking to me, and
nothing can go wrong this time."
Acorna
regarded him with some suspicion. "Sometimes," she said, "you
remind me very much of Ratik."
"Act
arrogant," Pal warned her just before they reached Anyag, "and leave
the talking to me."
Acorna
had no trouble following either of these instructions. Shock at the sheer
unrelieved ugliness of Anyag, the gigantic slag heap and the piles of separated
ore and the endless roar of crushers, kept her silent. The stench of the
latrine trench behind the sleeping sheds kept her nose up in the air, and the
unaccustomed weight of jewelry on her body forced her to move slowly. The
effect was all Pal could have wished: she appeared to be an incredibly -wealthy
young -woman -with vulgar taste, slow dignified movements, and too much pride
to speak a civil -word to the mine superintendent. It was easy for him to
believe that she -was a new and unprecedentedly successful Didi looking for
fresh young stock to build up her expanding network of houses. He all but fell
over himself apologizing for the poor condition of most of the children in the
mine and issued no orders at all to hide them.
Pal
demanded curtly to be shown to where Siri Teku's gang slept, and the
superintendent showed some relief. He had heard that Siri Teku had scored a
coup from a labor contractor just last month, picking up a curly-headed,
fairskinned girl child -who looked like just the sort of fresh young thing a
Didi -would buy off him at twice or three times what he'd paid for her. He
started to apologize that Siri Teku's crew was on day shift and would be
unavailable right now, then stumbled to a halt as he decided that Siri Teku
wouldn't have been fool enough to send a pretty piece like that baby girl
Below. He'd have her working Above on some easy task like sorting ore or
sweeping tailings to not spoil her looks. . . .
Pal
interrupted him. "Just point out the sleep shed. We won't need your
company."
The
superintendent was disappointed; he'd expected a cut of the profits from any
sale made on his shift. A discreet transfer of credits salved his
disappointment and bought Pal and Acorna privacy while they picked their way
through the debris of the mine to the area where Siri Teku's gang sorted the
ore they had dragged to the surface.
There
were only two children on the sorting bench. One of them was working so fast
her fingers seemed to fly as she picked through the broken rocks and assessed
them with an expert eye. The other stared through them with blank, empty eyes
that made Acorna's own eyes narrow in anguished sympathy.
"Jana?"
she asked, expecting the active child to answer.
"I'm
Laxmi," said the girl who was working so hard. "She's Jana." She
jerked her chin toward the other child. "She don't talk much, not since
..." A rattling cough interrupted her words.
"Get
her some -water. Pal!" Acorna said.
"
'S okay. 'S nothing," Laxmi croaked, wiping her chin. "Don't tell 'm
. . . I'm not sick!" There was desperation in her cry. "Not!"
"Of
course you are not sick," Acorna agreed soothingly. "You are a fine,
strong worker."
Laxmi
edged suspiciously away from her as Acorna came closer, until she was on the
far side of the bench with a pile of broken rocks between her and the visitors.
Acorna sat down beside Jana and put an arm around her. Jana winced away with a
gasp of pain.
"Best
not touch 'er," Laxmi warned from a safe distance. "She ain't healed
from that beatin' Sin Teku give 'er."
Jana's
ragged gray kameez was stuck to her back and sides in several places. When Pal
came back with a bucket of scummy water, Acorna looked at it in despair, then
deftly stripped off the scarves that swathed her head. Laxmi gasped and fell
into another coughing fit at sight of the small white horn in the middle of
Acorna's forehead.
Acorna
dipped her horn into the water for a moment, then used her silk scarf to dab
the nowclean water onto the worst of Jana's marks. When she was finally able to
lift the kameez without pulling at the broken skin underneath, she laid her
forehead against each swollen, infected -weal. Laxmi edged closer and closer,
eyes round as she saw clean new skin replacing the raw stripes on Jana's back
and sides.
"Please,
lady," she whispered, "I dunno what you're doing . . . but could you
do her knee, too? That's what hurts her the worst. Can't walk without a stick.
..."
Acorna
bent her head to the swollen knee for a long moment. Jana sat unmoving and
unresponsive, but the swelling visibly -went down.
"Come
to me," she said, and Laxmi, a look of surprise on her face, slowly moved
toward Acorna.
"If
you c'n fix me, too," she said hoarsely, "reckon I'll go with you.
Kheti always said going with a Didi was worst thing as could happen to a girl .
. . but Kheti dint see you.."
Acorna
laid her face against Laxmi's throat and slowly moved the horn down along her
chest. Laxmi drew in a deep breath and hardly coughed at all; she took another
breath and another, and color crept into her face.
"What
you think you're doing, bint?"
The
angry roar came from the mouth of the shaft behind them. A moment later a tall,
lean man in brown robe and turban leapt out of the cage-lift, brandishing a
long, flexible rod in one hand.
Quickly
swathing her horn, Acorna lifted her head.
"I
have a use for these children," she said. "You will be compensated
for them."
Siri
Teku's eyes narrowed in crafty speculation. It must be Laxmi the Didi wanted;
Jana wasn't much use to anybody now. She was trying to confuse him by
pretending an interest in both children.
"I
might consider letting you have that one," he said, nodding at Jana.
"'T'other's too valuable to me. Last trained sorter I got, see."
"I
need them both," Acorna replied firmly.
Siri
Teku mentally evaluated the worth of this new Didi's gold jewelry and decided
to take a gamble. It was true that he needed Laxmi's services. He wouldn't have
pretended not to notice her cough for so long if he'd had anybody else half so
good at sorting ore. But a month would give him time to buy some new children
and have Laxmi train them. And if this Didi was really so interested in Laxmi,
Old Black knew why, she'd come back at the end of that month . . . by which
time he should be able to trade, steal, and buy enough really handsome children
to make her a constant customer of his.
Besides,
he thought he recognized the silent bodyguard who stood behind the Didi. Was
House Li getting into the bonk-shop business? And if so, did old Li himself
know, or was the old man so senile that his employees were able to take off on
their own? He needed time to check the rumors so that he could figure out how
to turn the maximum profit from this situation.
"This
un's not for sale yet," he repeated, grabbing Laxmi's arm and jerking her
away from Acorna and Pal. "Come back next month, after I've had time to
train some new sorters. And for the other, it'll be fifty credits."
"Who're
you kidding?" Pal demanded, using a rough accent Acorna had not heard from
him before. "We'd be doing you a favor to take her off your hands. Ten
credits, no more."
"You
wish to rob an honest working man of his livelihood? Besides, I will have to
give a percentage to the mine superintendent. Thirty-five."
"Fifteen,"
Acorna said.
Siri
Teku hesitated, and Acorna turned on her heel.
"Come,"
she snapped to Pal. "My time is too valuable to spend haggling over one
child."
"Seventeen
and a half!" Siri Teku cried.
"Very
well," Acorna said, "seventeen it is." She dropped a bundle of
credits in the dirt and turned toward the skimmer.
"And
a half?"
Acorna
laughed and kept walking.
"Remember,"
Siri Teku called after them as Pal carried Jana toward the skimmer, "come
back next month! I'll make it worth your while!"
Laxmi's
eyes followed the skimmer as it rose over the mountainous slag heap of Anyag
and banked west, into the afternoon sun, toward Celtalan.
Pal
tarried long enough at Irodalmi's house to return the jewelry, which Acorna was
only too happy to remove, despite the surprise that it caused Jana.
"I
am no Didi, little one," Acorna told Jana, stroking her no longer sore
back. "I am taking you to Chiura, who has been crying for her Mama
Jana."
"Chiura?"
Jana exclaimed. Miracle upon miracle this day had for her. Not only had her
pains been soothed and she had been taken from bondage with Siri Teku, but
Chiura was at her destination. Furthermore, her well-honed instincts told her
that this marvelous lady with the funny horn in the middle of her forehead was
good, and Jana had had so little of "good" in her life, she wondered
that she could believe in any. Yet why heal her when she wasn't pretty like
Chiura or useful like Khetala? That name sprang from her lips. "Khetala?
You will find and free her from Didi Badini?"
The man
who drove the skimmer groaned.
"One
rescue a day is all I can cope with right now, and there'll be a lot of
explaining to be done for this day's work-that I can assure you."
"But
surely. Pal, we must save these children. The other one who coughed ..."
"Laxmi?"
Jana asked hopefully.
"Mr.
Li has a large house, but there are limits to what hospitality he can extend.
That is why we must make the moon colony. Then -we will have a safe place for
all the abused and misused children in those mines. First things must come
first, Acorna." He spoke as severely as he could, and yet the melting look
in Acorna's eyes over Jana's head was almost more than he could bear. What
amazing powers this most unusual female had!
In
December 1936, the English king, Edward VIII, abdicated his throne to marry an
American divorcee, Wallis Simpson. Before Christmas of that year,
schoolchildren from Land's End to John o'Groats were chanting, "Hark, the
herald angels sing, Mrs. Simpson's pinched our king." No one ever figured
out how the song spread so quickly; it certainly hadn't been part of a BBC
broadcast.
The
tale of a silver goddess with a horn in the middle of her forehead, come to
Kezdet especially to heal and help children, spread with similar rapidity. As
with the song about Mrs. Simpson, the only certainty is that it wasn't
disseminated by anyone in authority.
When
the rest of Siri Teku's gang came up from their twelve-hour shift Below, Laxmi
told them that Sita Ram, Lady of the Sky and Above, had visited Anyag disguised
as a Didi, had healed her, and had taken Jana to live with her in the sky. The
other children might have scoffed, but it was a fact that Laxmi's racking cough
was gone; she breathed as easily and deeply as any of the newest arrivals. A
child sold from the mines to Czerebogar took the story and the hope of that
healing with him.
In the
carpet works at Czerebogar, where the children squatted on hanging benches and
tied knots in the famous Kezdet carpets until their fingers bled, Laxmi's Sita
Ram was transmuted into Lukia of the Lights, and they whispered that the
unicorn's white horn shed a magical healing light that restored the sight of
squinting, half-blind carpet weavers. An itinerant teacher from the Child Labor
League, entering Czerebogar in disguise, found her way made easier by this
legend and suggested to her colleagues that they spread it as a way of
overcoming the children's ingrained fear and distrust of all strangers.
"Should
-we try to overcome it?" one of the other part-time teachers asked.
"Most of the time they're right to fear strangers."
"Not
us," said the young woman who'd slipped in and out of Czerebogar, bringing
counting games and stories and taking away the legend of Lukia. "If they
fear us, we can't help them."
In the
Tondubh Glassworks, the story became part of the legend of Epona, the
horse-goddess who bore tired glass-runners on her back and galloped from
furnace to blower with the molten glass to spare the children's weary
legs. Everywhere on Kezdet, where
there was a mine or factory keeping children at work in cramped, poisoned,
miserable conditions, there was also some legend of a rescuing goddess, spun out
of the older children's hazy memories of a mother's arms and given strength by
the younger children's need for hope. But never before had one of the legendary
goddesses taken mortal form and given solid, practical healing to a sick child.
All the legends suddenly took on new life; hope flourished like an underground
stream of pure water running through all the dark factories; overseers
-wondered why the children had begun to sing and laugh, and worried about the
change.
The
repercussions from Acorna's adventure were less than Pal had feared. Judit was
frankly relieved to have Jana take over the care of Chiura, who had never
ceased wailing for the older child whom she evidently regarded as a mother.
Delszaki
Li and the miners were somewhat more vocal. "You did what?" Rafik
bellowed when Acorna proudly reported the results of her trip to him.
"I
told you that I was going to look for Chiura's 'Mama Jana,'" Acorna said.
"Yes,"
said Calum unguardedly, "but we didn't think you'd succeed, or we wouldn't
have let you go off with just Pal and one bodyguard."
Nadhari
Kando shifted her weight slightly, from one foot to a balanced pose on the
balls of both feet. The slight movement should have gone unnoticed, but instead
it drew everyone's attention. She looked straight at Calum until his eyes dropped.
"That
is ..." he mumbled, "of course you were perfectly safe with Nadhari.
After all, if Mr. Li entrusts his own life to her. ..."
"Quite
correct," Nadhari said. Her low, grating voice was almost without
expression.
"Don't
you want Jana?" Acorna put her arm around the bewildered child.
"Sure
we do," Gill said heartily. He dropped to one knee before Jana, who shrank
back involuntarily at the approach of this red-bearded giant. "We need you
here, Jana. Chiura needs you. We all do. Plenty of room in this house for
another little girl." He glanced at Delszaki Li and received an approving
nod. "We were just . . . surprised that Acorna found you so quickly."
"We
underestimated her," Rafik said gloomily.
"Probably
not for last time," Delszaki Li chirped. His dark eyes were bright with
amusement.
Pal's
private nightmare, that the Guardians of the Peace would somehow trace him and
"Didi Acorna" back from Anyag to the Li mansion and accuse him of
procuring children for immoral purposes, never came true. He was not sure
whether that was because they had not been traced, or because the Guardians
were too bright to try to shake down so powerful a figure as Delszaki Li, or
because they simply accepted as a matter of course that any man who was so
inclined might buy himself a few girl children for private use whenever he felt
the urge. He suspected the last.
Even
Acorna, after a few -wistful comments about the amount of room there was in
those upper stories and how many beds they could fit into the long parlor,
seemed to accept Pals strict injunction against collecting any more children
before Delszaki Li had started the safe haven of the lunar colony. She didn't
even promise Jana to go out and look for Khetala- thank goodness! Pal sweated
when he remembered the risks he had already allowed Acorna to run in their mad
escapade. The last thing he needed was to have her opening those wide silvery
eyes at him and politely requesting a tour of the East Celtalan brothels.
Especially since he had a terrible suspicion he would give in. The urge to give
Acorna everything she wanted was only growing stronger the more time he spent
in her company.
All
things considered, he should have felt relieved when, after a fews days spent
quietly with Chiura and Jana, her only request was to go shopping with Judit.
"I
am sure you must have many more important things to do," she apologized to
Judit, "but you see, I have promised Mr. Li not to go out alone again.
There are a few things I need from the stores, and somehow I do not think that
Nadhari..."
"Of
course," Judit said. "You're quite right. I'm pretty sure Nadhari
doesn't have a black belt in shopping. And I have been quietly going mad with
inactivity while I wait for Delszaki and your friends to come up with something
for me to do. Really, if he's going to spend all his time locked in Dr. Zip's lab or cruising the Lattice on his
corn unit, Delszaki hardly needs one personal assistant, let alone two!"
"I'll
go with you," Pal volunteered, and felt unreasonably annoyed when Acorna
stammeringly refused his help.
"Don't
be silly. Pal," Judit said in her best bossy elder-sister tones. "One
of us must stay here in case Delszaki comes out of his brown study and -wants
something." Adding, after she sent Acorna off to get a heavier wrap on the
pretext that there were cold winds coming in from the north, "I expect the
child wants to buy feminine fripperies, Pal. She'd only be embarrassed to have
you tagging along. Nadhari will come, and she'll be quite protection
enough."
Nadhari
cleared her throat, and Pal hastily agreed that no one could want more
protection than she could supply.
Relief
though it must be to have Acorna safelyoccupied, Judit could not repress a
slight scorn when she saw the girl counting the credits in her purse before
they set out. Was all the -work of the Child Labor League to be set aside for
Acorna's convenience? Here was Delszaki Li off on a wildgoose chase to find
Acorna's home planet, instead of completing the plans for his lunar colony;
Acorna
herself, it seemed, was perfectly happy to go shopping for the latest fashions.
It was true that Delszaki had advanced the credits to her himself, saying that
he wished his "ward" to be dressed as befitted the House of Li,
rather than continually washing and -wearing the same three outfits the miners
had casually picked out for her. And it was true that the plans of the Child
Labor League were in much more danger from hasty enterprises such as Acorna's
rescue of Jana than from a few days of neglect. Still, Judit could not keep
from fretting over all the problems remaining: the lunar colony yet to be
designed, let alone set up; how the children -were to be gathered together
-when every factory owner had trained them to hide whenever strangers approached;
"worst of all, how to neutralize the shadowy, malevolent figure known only
as the Piper, whose fortune derived entirely from the worst forms of child
labor and who was supposed to be behind most of the official and unofficial
bedevilment the league members had suffered. The Piper would surely find some
-way to stop Li's latest and boldest plan if he got word of it, as he was sure
to do sooner or later in Kezdet's spyriddled society.
She was
further surprised when Acorna first proposed that they should walk, then
stopped not five minutes from the house and hired a skimmer, directing the
pilot to take them to the Gorazde Bazaar.
"Acorna,
are you sure that is where you wish to go?" Judit remonstrated as the
skimmer rose and hovered over the heart of Celtalans wealthiest district.
"The Gorazde is not at all fashionable. Respectable, yes, but it is the
sort of place where Delszaki's servants buy their daywear. It is not equipped
to cater to a young lady of fashion."
"I
am not a young lady of fashion," Acorna said calmly, "and I inquired
of the house staff before making my decision. I am confident that I shall find
exactly -what I need at the Gorazde."
"And
-why rent a skimmer?" Judit -went on. "We could have used one of the
House Li skimmers."
Acorna
hung her head. "I -wanted to do this
myself,"
she said, "with my own credits from the work I have done for Calum and
Rafik and Gill."
"Do
what, for heavens sake?"
"That
little boy at Tondubh," Acorna said, "his feet were all burned and
cut from running over hot and broken glass. I thought ... he could use a pair
of sandals."
"What
a nice thought!" Judit approved. "And all the other children
there," Acorna said. "That is why I thought of the Gorazde, you see.
They say it is a good place to find cheap but durable clothes."
She
proceeded to occupy the few minutes required for the skimmer to cross the city
by asking Judit about her brother. Judit played down the misery of the first
years on Kezdet, when she and Pal and Mercy had been bond-laborers with no hope
of freedom, by saying truthfully that they had all three been sent to different
places and she really knew very little of Pal's life during those years.
Instead she concentrated on tales of Pal's progress through technical school
and the stories he had told her about his work with Delszaki Li. It -was a
pleasure to talk at length about her beloved little brother to such an
attentive audience, and Judit was almost sorry when they reached the Gorazde.
She had been meaning to ask Acorna a few things about Gill . . . subtly, of
course, so as not to betray how much more interested she was in him than in the
other two miners who composed Acorna's foster family.
Once
the skimmer pilot had set them down and had been requested to wait, Acorna
changed from passive audience to taking charge of the expedition once again.
"I
think this is exactly the place I have been looking for," she said,
walking past a handful of clothing stalls to enter Sopels Sandalarium -with its
flashing lighted sign proclaiming, WHOLESALE, DISCOUNT SALE, AND
GOING-OUT-OF-BUSINESS SALE EVERY DAY.
A clerk
hurried forward to serve them, every line of his demeanor announcing that he
had never hoped to see two well-dressed young ladies from West Celtalan in
Sopel's Sandalarium. When he offered to measure their feet, Acorna informed him
that this would not be necessary, as she knew what sizes she wanted. Judit gave
a small internal sigh of relief; they really did not need the kind of attention
that a close inspection of Acorna's unusually shaped feet would draw. Acorna
specified a range of sandal sizes that would fit anything from a toddler to a
child of ten and selected a cheap and long-wearing style in recycled
synthofoam. When the clerk mentioned a price that Judit thought far too high,
Acorna glanced at her and immediately counter-offered for little more than the
wholesale cost of the sandals. She pointed out the advantages of good relations
with someone who was prepared to buy in bulk, gave the impression that she might
be a buyer for some large consortium -who could be enticed back by a very low
price on this first order, and eventually acquired the Sandalarium's entire
stock in the requested sizes at less than half the price originally mentioned.
"You
see," Acorna said -when a slightly dazed clerk left to order porters to
carry their purchases to the waiting skimmer, "I told you I would require
some help with my parcels."
Almost
as dazed as the clerk, Judit said the first thing that came into her head.
"Where did you learn to bargain like that? "
Acorna
gave her an impish smile. "I have spent two years listening to Calum
selling payloads of ore and drone buckets of iron all over this quadrant. The
basic principles are not dissimilar-and I have always liked working with
numbers."
"Working
with numbers is hardly an adequate description," Judit said with feeling.
"Anybody who can juggle all those prices and quantities in her head ought
to be looking at a career in gambling."
"Seven
to four," Acorna murmured, smiling at a private memory, "'Nobble' the
favorite ... I think we had better watch the sandals being loaded, don't you?
Mr. Sopel is not making as much of a profit as usual on this transaction; he
may try to redress the balance by making a few slight mistakes during
loading."
In
fact, Acorna discovered no fewer than three "minor discrepancies"
between her receipt and the goods being loaded on the skimmer in the first few
minutes. With the discovery of the third shortage, she instructed the porter to
inform Mr. Sopel that any more discrepancies would cause her to lose faith in
his ability to conduct a business and would force her to take her credits
elsewhere. Thereafter all proceeded smoothly.
When
the skimmer was fully loaded, Acorna directed the pilot to take them to the
Tondubh Glassworks, with a sidelong glance to see if Judit would countermand
her orders.
"You
promised Delszaki not to collect any more children," Judit murmured with a
warning shake of her head.
Acorna
lifted her long chin slightly. "I did not promise not to help them. Surely
no one can object if I give a few things to make their lives easier?"
And in
fact, when Acorna swept into the Tondubh compound with the imperious air she
had been practicing, she met with almost no opposition from the startled
overseers. Judit was rather surprised to find that the Tondubh staff suffered
from the illusion that Acorna was a galactically famous vid-star come to film a
complimentary documentary on Kezdet's "economic miracle," but she
said nothing to dispel the idea.
"We
do not film today," Acorna said loftily, "so I amuse myself by
bringing a few gifts for the children I saw here the other day."
The
manager started his practiced spiel claiming that no children worked in the
glass factory, but Acorna cut him off.
"Of
course, I understand perfectly, they do not work here," she agreed -with a
complicitous smile and wink at the manager.
"Exactly,"
said the manager, returning the wink. "They are only hanging about here to
run errands and beg meals from the generosity of the management. As long as
that is understood, there can be no objection to the lady's kind gifts."
"They
will perhaps 'run errands' more swiftly if their feet are protected from the
hot glass and broken shards in the factory," Acorna said. "Let them
come to me here and select sandals to fit each one."
The
manager frowned. "I think they will not come. They are shy of strangers,
gracious lady. It would be best if you left the sandals here for me to
distribute."
Already
he was calculating how much he could get from Sopal's Sandalarium if he
returned the merchandise still in its original wrapping - not full price, of
course, but even a percentage of the discounted cost would make a nice little
addition to his salary.
But,
although the child workers in the factory had scattered as usual when Acorna's
skimmer arrived, they were not that far away. A few of the braver and more
curious ones had lingered to learn what they could of the new arrival, and they
spread the word to the others that the whispered rumors were true: the Lady
Epona had come to Tondubh! Who else would care to bring sandals to protect
their burned and blistered feet?
At
first slowly, by ones and twos, the children crept out of concealment to receive
their gifts from the Lady Epona. At the sight of the first boys' burned feet,
Acorna's eyes narrowed to silver slits.
"Distract
that man," she murmured at Judit, nodding at the greedy manager.
Judit
smiled sweetly at the manager, flirted shamelessly, and persuaded him to take
her inside for a restorative cup of kava. The other overseers, not to be left
out, crowded after her, and Acorna was left alone with the children for a few
precious moments.
As soon
as the adults were gone, Acorna pulled off the scarf wound about her head. At
the sight of the white horn rising from the tumble of silvery curls on her
forehead, the children murmured in awe. A few of them dropped to their knees,
all doubt removed; the younger ones clung to her skirts and begged her to take
them away.
"I
cannot take you now," Acorna said, her eyeslits narrowing until they were
almost invisible. "I have promised . . . and I have no place for you yet.
But I will come back. And when I come, you will not hide? You will come to me?"
The
children were awed into silence as Acorna knelt before the first boy to claim
his sandals and touched her horn to his scarred feet. When they saw the
blisters and infected cuts disappearing under the touch of the horn, they were
momentarily frightened. But little Donkin jumped and shouted in happiness.
"They
doesn't hurt! They doesn't hurt anymore ! Come on, noodle-tops, get
yours!"
"Shh,
shh," Acorna cautioned Donkin, and the children quieted immediately.
They
were so pale, so quiet, so obedient! There was hardly any pushing and shoving
as they lined up to receive their sandals and, an even greater gift, the
healing touch of the Lady Epona's white horn.
By the
time the last child had been cared for, Acorna was exhausted and shaking. She
was relieved by Judit's prompt reappearance from the manager's quarters and
hardly noticed Judit's disheveled, flushed look.
"Take
me home," Acorna whispered to Judit, "I am so tired."
"With
the greatest of pleasure," Judit said between her teeth. She gave Acorna a
hand into the skimmer and leapt in after her, accidentally stepping on the
manager's hand as he reached in to wish them farewell. "West Celtalan
Riverwalk," she told the skimmer pilot. That would put. them within an
easy walk of the Li mansion-or a hundred other wealthy homes, so anybody
questioning the skimmer pilot later would not be sure just where they had gone.
But
Acorna fell into an exhausted slumber on the flight back, and with resignation
Judit altered her orders and told the pilot to take them to Delszaki Li's
private landing pad.
"With
pleasure," said the pilot, "and -won't nobody find out from me where
you went, neither! I thought as it must be somebody from the CLL."
"Delszaki
Li has no connection with the Child Labor League," Judit said.
"Righty-ho,"
the pilot said with a cheerful wink, "and I'm the president of Kezdet.
Don't you worry none, little lady. Truth to tell, I was just fixin' to go in
and get you, claiming some kinda emergency, when you come on out of the
offices. Nice girl like you hadn't ought to be alone with the kind of scum they
use to run those factories."
"You're
telling me," Judit said with feeling. She straightened her tunic and
twisted her hair back into its usual severe knot.
"Pulled
you about some, didn't they? Like me to go back and beat 'em up?"
Judit
chuckled. "If you want to be helpful, my friend," she said,
"let's not start by getting you thrown into a Peacetower. An anonymous
skimmer could be useful from time to time."
"Here's
my call sign," the pilot said. "Any time you want me, just take the
nearest public com unit and put out this sign. Double the last two digits and
I'll know it's you, see; then I'll be there soon's I can. If it's an emergency,
triple the last two digits and I'll ditch my passengers and be there
sooner."
The
children were not the only ones to hear about Sita Ram, Lukia of the Light, and
Epona: Didi Badini did, too, and she was livid. She asked a few questions of
various informed sources and learned, to her astonishment, that no, there was
no new bonk-shop opened with a Didi named Acorna. She was even more annoyed to
learn that--In fact, she became obsessed with this Didi Acorna personage and
traveled all the way to Anyag to question Siri Teku at length. He knew only
that she had come in a rented skimmer
"To keep us from knowing her location, no doubt!" Didi Badini
said, tapping her elegant foot and forgetting that the mud -would get between
her painted toes, done only that morning in silver - a color she intended to
take off the moment she got back. Silver was definitely "out."
"Quite
possibly, Didi Badini," Siri Teku said, bobbing continuously in his desire
not to alienate one of his better customers-although in the back of his mind
-was the thought that if the mysterious new young Didi could, indeed, heal his
sickly children, it would be worth more to cultivate her patronage than placate
this old fiend.
More
aggravated than ever, Didi Badini paced her apartment, ignoring the cool drinks
and tasty tidbits offered to her. Only the news that a new patron awaited her
inspection diverted her from her annoyance.
The
customer introduced himself as Farkas Hamisen, an off-planet merchant who had,
he said, been told that Didi Badini's house would show him the best Kezdet had
to offer.
He was
a handsome young man, if one overlooked the ears that sat rather oddly on his
head and did not seem to quite match the cafe-au-lait tone of his face. Didi
Badini was far more interested in Hamisen's expensive clothes and the jeweled
ring that twinkled on his hand; she had no problem at all ignoring the ears,
especially when he initiated the conversation by flattering her shamelessly. He
could well believe that an establishment with such a lovely proprietor was the
finest on Kezdet, he said, but it was hard to believe the owner did not
outshine her merchandise. Perhaps she would do him the honor of an evening's
conversation, just to get acquainted, before they discussed business?
Didi
Badini smilingly agreed. Surely she could serve him better, she agreed, if she
knew his tastes and personality.
A few
more fulsome compliments gained him entree into her private rooms, where poufs
of silkcovered cushions invited visitors to relax at their ease. Hamisen
praised the room as well and said that surely no establishment on Kezdet could
boast such a lovely lady and such luxurious settings. He almost dared to
confess the secret fantasy that had never yet been satisfied.
"On
Kezdet," Didi Badini said, smiling, "anything is possible . . . for a
price."
Hesitantly,
almost shamefacedly, she thought, Farkas Hamisen confessed to a fascination
with unusual girls. After some beating about the bush Didi Badini established
that "unusual" meant deformed rather than very young.
"You
have come to the right planet, my friend," she said, searching her memory
for the children she'd recently rejected as too odd to appeal to her customers.
There was that one-eyed child at Anyag...
Still
acting shy, Hamisen said that there was a particular deformity that had always
excited him beyond measure, although he had only seen it in a dream. A Didi in
the next street had attempted to satisfy him by offering a girl with an
obviously false horn pasted onto her forehead, but of course he had been revolted
by the trickery.
"You
-want her?" Didi Badini gasped unguardedly. "I don't believe
it!"
"You
know of such a girl?" Farkas murmured. "Truly I was well guided by
those who recommended your establishment." In fact he had been touring the
bonk-shops of Kezdet in no particular order, amusing himself with a girl at
each one -while at the same time he pursued this inquiry for Acorna, who -would
lead him to Rafik. "Do tell me about her."
"There
are rumors of such a one," Didi Badini said, thinking quickly. If she told
Hamisen that the horned freak was setting up as a Didi on her own account, he
would go straight to Didi Acorna and she herself -would lose the lovely profits
promised by his clothes and ring ... as well as the pleasurable caresses -with
-which he -was entertaining her -while they talked. She never "went"
with clients anymore, but that didn't mean she -was averse to affectionate
fondling of the kind that knowledgeable men and women exchanged. Just now he
was stroking her hair, which she felt was her best feature: soft, silky, curly,
and without a single -white hair. He knew just how to do it, too, -without
catching his fingers or his nails, -which she had noticed he kept properly
manicured.
"Only
rumors?" he repeated, withdrawing the caressing hand.
Then
again, Didi Badini thought, if she professed too much ignorance he might leave
and pursue his interests elsewhere. That must not be allowed to happen! Not
only would she lose the money and the pleasure he promised, but the halfformed
plan which was floating in her mind would never come to fruition.
"Only
rumors to most people," she said, "but I have seen her, and I ...
might be able to find her again." The thought ,of delivering her impudent
new rival to Farkas Hamisen, drugged into a state of compliance, gave her far
more pleasure than anything Farkas Hamisen could do with those elegant, long,
brown hands.
"Really?
You must let me know if you learn anything else," Hamisen said in a bored
tone. The underlying message -was clear: she would have to do better if she
-wanted to retain his interest. Didi Badini searched her memory for some scrap
of information that -would intrigue Hamisen and keep him close to her, -without
giving him enough of a clue to actually locate this girl.
"Her
bodyguard used to -work for the Li consortium," she said reluctantly.
"There may be some connection there . . . but you -would be well advised
not to pursue it, my dear. Delszaki Li is powerful, corrupt, and utterly
ruthless. It -would be too dangerous for someone who does not know the -ways of
Kezdet to inquire into House Li affairs."
"A
man does not shelter behind a -woman's skirts," Hamisen said firmly.
"How are you going to find out about the girl?"
Didi
Badini smiled and stroked his arm -with one long, elegantly oval fingernail.
"I have my friends . . . here and there. Amuse yourself -with some
ordinary girls tonight, Farkas-on the house, of course," she added
hastily, "and come back to me in a few days for more information."
She treated him to the sleepy smile that had beguiled the elder Tondubh into
parting with more jewels than the glassworks could afford, back in the days
when she still did her own work. "You will come back . . . won't
you?"
He
answered her question with one of his own. "You will find the unicorn girl
for me . . . won't
It was
Gill who brought home news of the legends that permeated Kezdet through kava
shop to bazaar and even to the sacred rooms of the Miners' Guild. He had all he
could do to keep from pounding a few faces in for the smutty suggestions about
horn-nuzzling that went on. What had Acorna done to generate such speculation?
Well, it would have to stop right now! Mr. Li's house was impregnable, but
Acorna had lately been given to such bizarre . . . escapades . . . even when
she was supposedly being guarded and/or chaperoned by Pal and Judit.
Then it
occurred to him that maybe he had best join any more outings, to guard Judit as
well as Acorna.
The
high-pitched laughter of happy children greeted him as he palmed his entrance
to Mr. Li's mansion. He stood for a moment, listening to the enchanting mirth.
Laughter was a lovely sound and suddenly he realized that he could not make
Acorna suspend her lifesaving activities. But the sooner they initiated the
Moon project, the better . . . the safer.
Rafik
was busier than he had ever been in his life in the spacious office which Mr.
Li had given over to him, and the use of state-of-the-art communications
devices that allowed him to speed messages to an incredible number of
destinations. He was not a member of his particular family without having an
innate natural instinct for trading. He often wondered why he hadn't gone into
that respectable profession as his mother had wanted. Not that he felt himself
at any loss in the bargaining and badgering that were part and parcel of making
successful deals. In the odd moments he had, he decided that as a callow youth
he had only been kicking over the traces to go a-mining. And yet, he wouldn't
have had the opportunity to do this now if he hadn't done that. Kismet!
He had
managed to make contact, again through Mr. Li's amazing network of contacts,
with a lunar engineer: an elderly man, one Martin Dehoney, now retired, who had
been responsible for the ingenious structures that were almost compulsory on
moon mining installations for their high safety factors and low budget
requirement. He was also said to be a treasure chest of innovative ideas which
conservative agencies, such as large corporations and governments, -would not
consider. So, when Rafik contacted him, at first the Architect Dehoney had
demurred by virtue of his age and debility, but Rafik's gentle persuasion-and
the explanation that the plan would ruin the system of Kezdet's child-bondage
system-won him over. He allowed that he had quite a few novel ideas for moon
installations which he felt might be eminently suitable, and which someone of
Rafik's breadth of understanding might appreciate more than bureaucracies. To
know that some of his best work would see the light of a sun would be very nice
indeed before he slept. It took a moment for Rafik to realize he meant the
"long sleep" of death.
To his
and Mr. Li's intense gratification, a veritable harvest of plans, complete with
specifications (although some of these were improvements and annexes to some of
Dehoney's existing lunar facilities-fascinating in themselves) arrived by
special courier three weeks later.
"It's
not just the innovative design for integrating living facilities and
life-support hydroponics," Calum marveled. "The man has an incredible
instinct for mining engineering problems! Look at this bootstrap proposal. It's
so elegant it's beautiful!" He was looking at Dehoney s projected Phase II
of the lunar base. In Phase I the lunar regolith would be raked for metal
grains, which would then be reduced to their component elements by the gaseous
carbonyl process. At the same time, a related chemical vapor deposition process
"would be used to fabricate large-sized, ultra-lightweight mirrors from
the carbonyls of iron and nickel. In Phase II, when the regolith had been raked
down to the underlying rock, these mirrors could be used to concentrate solar
heat and break up the rock without the use of explosives, which would have to
be imported, or mechanical drills, which as Calum knew all too well were
subject to frequent dust clogging and friction wear in near-vacuum conditions.
"And
he uses by-products of the regolith beneficiation to provide shielding from
solar flares in the first habitats," Gill pointed out, "then, in
Phase II, we can construct extensive living quarters in the rocky areas we
excavate. So there's very little added cost for habitat construction and
radiation shielding." They were poring over the doubleddomed,
lock-connected habitat and hydroponics design when Judit interrupted them to
turn on Universal News and the report of Dehoney's demise: in his sleep.
"He
must have just sent the plans off to us," Rafik said, awed and chagrined.
Had his urgency contributed to a fatal fatigue?
"I
wouldn't have thought you could care about such things," Judit said,
giving him an odd look.
"You
malign me," Rafik said, though he knew that she had overheard him dealing
rather ruthlessly with some suppliers. He laid one hand on his heart, allowing his
hurt to show. "I would be callous indeed to work an old man to death. Even
if children are being done so daily here, until -we can get this
underway."
Mr. Li
regarded Judit over his nose as he had a habit of doing when he wished her to
do something that she did not wish to do.
"My
apologies, Rafik."
"We
will name the main dome 'Dehoney' after his inestimable contribution to the
project," Rafik announced, though he looked at Mr. Li for confirmation of
this sudden whimsy. Then, with a deep sigh, which could be interpreted in any
way she chose, he unrolled the rest of the plans and studied them.
With
such detailed plans, even to the environmental shifts as the population
increased, Rafik was able to send out tenders to the construction firms which
Gill had been checking out for integrity and the reputation of finishing jobs
on time and within budgetary parameters. They sent the tenders out -with a
return address of the Uhuru, so that Mr. Li's privacy -would not be invaded by
the importunate. When word of the size of this job got out, they would be
besieged by every penurious subcontractor looking to make more than his work
was worth. Better that the office of record be a space ship so that dock
security could be tipped to see that the worst did not gain entrance.
That
meant that Rafik and Gill would have to have a discreet and secure modem link
to Mr. Li so he could supervise affairs.
"Rafik
has the energy this project has needed," Mr. Li said, smiling beneficently
at Judit and patting her hand, "-while I can still supply the wisdom of
experience -which his young head has not yet had time to accumulate."
Judit
had just discovered the packet of disks, part of the consignment, and,
exclaiming with delight, loaded them into the computer. Almost instantly, the
sketches became three-dimension drawings, moving as the strained voice of Marty
Dehoney added explanation to his vision of a lunar mining station that could
also vie for use as a holiday resort, so complete were the amenities.
"And
look at this!" Gill exclaimed as Dehoney went into his expansion plans.
"To cut down the hazard of fire, he suggests we capture small carbonaceous
asteroids and release their nitrogen."
"Not
to mention we can get sulfates and phosphates from the same source, if needed,
to supplement the lunar minerals," Calum pointed out. "If you hadn't
been so single-minded about collecting valuable metal payloads, you'd have
thought of that yourself. We passed up plenty of carbonaceous chondrites in
between E-types."
"I
didn't notice you coming up with the suggestion, either."
"Didn't
need it to support a crew of four," Calum said smugly. "If we'd been
trying to stabilize life-support and atmospheric systems for an entire colony,
naturally I would have mentioned it."
"Oh,
naturally," Gill drawled with heavy irony.
They
were still viewing the comprehensive disks when Pal came to announce that
dinner was ready. On noticing their intent faces, he very quickly called down
to ask the butler to hold the meal for at least half an hour.
Tapha's
tongue stuck out between his pinched lips as he -worked his -way through the
cipher program built into his personal com. His father was so stupidly
old-fashioned, requiring all his operatives to use a cipher that depended on
recalling large chunks of the Books of the Three Prophets from memory. He'd
probably have a fit if he knew that Tapha had reprogrammed his personal corn to
generate enciphered messages automatically, always using the First Verse of the
First Book as the key . .. and even so, there was more hands-on labor involved
than Tapha cared for. When he took over the organization, one of the first
changes he'd make would be to modernize the communications system, using an
automatic encryptor instead of this cumbersome system. Hafiz was overly
concerned about security, anyway. Why, Tapha had been using the same encryption
key for every message he sent from Kezdet, and there was no sign that any of
them had been broken.
Nor was
there any sign that any of them had been received, though he knew they must
have been. Hafiz was just being mean and petty, refusing to advance the credits
necessary for Tapha to live in the style befitting the heir to the Hafiz
Harakamian empire, forcing him to sell off one by one the jewels he'd collected
when he fled. Well, all that would change now. With satisfaction Tapha
completed the encrypted message telling his father that he had located his
prized unicorn girl and would return her . . . for a price. He could not resist
adding the cryptic comment that he had also found the way to solve another
family problem here on Kezdet.
Without
help! Well, without very much help, anyway. Didi Badini's mention of House Li
had been enough of a clue for Tapha to locate Acorna and Rafik on his own. He
wouldn't need to go back to her for information . . . though he might go back
for his own amusement.
After
handing in his message at one of the public comsuites on the main streets of
Celtalan, Tapha went on his way to arrange the solution of that nagging family
problem. How proud his father would be when he learned that Tapha had not only
recaptured the unicorn girl but had also revenged the trickery practiced on
their house by Cousin Rafik! More to the point, with Rafik safely out of the
way, there would be no more plots to do Tapha out of his rightful position as
his father's heir apparent. This time Tapha did not intend to make any stupid,
impulsive moves, such as the attack at the restaurant . . . although that would
have worked; he still couldn't figure out how Rafik could have moved fast
enough to avoid taking even one blast of laser fire. No matter. This time his
disguise would allow him to get close enough to make absolutely sure that Rafik
was quite thoroughly dead.
And
once that little matter had been cleared up, he had only to wait until his
father's emissaries arrived with enough credits to make it worth his while to
tell them where the unicorn girl was. No need to put himself to the effort of
capturing her; that was work for subordinates. He, Tapha, was the mastermind
behind the plan, and that was quite enough. No, he would simply relax at Didi
Badini's until Hafiz responded to this latest news. The old bat would give him
anything for a few kisses and sweet words . . . and when he was ready for
something fresher, he would offer to help train this new acquisition, the
scarred girl from the mines. An enjoyable way to wile away the days of waiting,
and one advantage accrued to this child, since she was already marked, was that
presumably the Didi wouldn't care if she acquired a few more scars during
"training." There'd be no need to be careful as he had been ever
since that unfortunate accident with the joy-toy girl on Theloi.
As was
routine on Kezdet, Tapha's latest message and all other messages with
off-planet tags were routed through a Guardians of the Peace office on their
way to their final destination. Ed Minkus browsed through the day's mail list
with a casual eye out for any interesting anomalies or potential profits,
stopping at the obviously encrypted message purporting to concern differing
religious interpretations of the First Verse of the First Prophet.
"Hey,
Des," he called to his partner, "here's some more crap from that
Tapha guy. You know? The one with the funny-looking ears who keeps writing home
for money and uses the same encryption key every time."
"So?"
Des grunted. "Unless he actually gets some money, he's no use to us."
"This
one is something different." Ed activated the decryption program and
scanned the cleartext as it appeared on the screen. "He's found something
valuable . . . might be worth a cut of the action . . . oh, and it looks as if
he's planning to assassinate some guy named Nadezda."
"Nadezda?"
Des rolled out of his chair and into a standing position over Ed in one savage
movement. "Nadezda! He can't do that! That tripletiming, two-tailed miner
is mine! Nobody kills Nadezda before I get mine back on him!"
Delszaki
Li's payment of the "fines" owed by Calum, Gill, and Rafik to Kezdet
had left Des "without official excuse to persecute the miners, but with
none of his original lust for vengeance diminished in the slightest.
"Well,
then," Ed replied mildly, "we'll just have to stop this Tapha before
he gets there, won't we?"
The
vid-screen in a corner of Didi Badini's luxuriously furnished sitting room
transmitted only a jagged pattern of neon flashes that made the Didi's head
hurt.
"Drop
the bloody scramble, can't you? It hurts my eyes-and it's not as if I'd never
seen you before." Immediately she made that last comment, the Didi
regretted it. It was not wise to remind the Piper that you were one of the few
people on Kezdet who had seen his face . . . even if you had no idea where in
the ranks of Kezdet's technoaristocracy he led his "real" life.
"I
have already been careless enough," a dry voice whispered from the speaker
grill surrounding the screen, "accompanying you to that mine. And for
what? First sight of a pretty girl-child whom you managed to lose before she
was back in your house!"
Didi
Badini cringed at the anger in the whispering voice and forbore to remind the
Piper that he, too, had been in the skimmer when that little beast Khetala
distracted them and gave Chiura her chance to run away. Never mind. She dared
not express her anger at the Piper, but she could take it out on Khetala later.
The brat had been locked below long enough to take the fight out of her; now
she would turn her over to Tapha to break her.
"A
thousand apologies, master," she said, swallowing her rage at this unfair
criticism. "How may I serve you now?"
"There
are rumors-" the voice whispered, while neon-green and bile-yellow stripes
crawled and writhed across the vid-screen, "rumors that the goddess of
some children's cult walks the soil of Kezdet. She has a thousand names but
only one face, long and narrow, with a horn like a unicorn's sprouting from her
forehead."
"Didi
Acorna!" Did! Badini sat upright on her pile of cushions. "I knew she
was no true Didi, for none of the sisterhood knew of her!"
"Didi,
goddess, what does it matter?" the Piper interrupted her. "The tales
they are spreading of her healing powers are gross exaggeration, but that does
not matter, either. What matters is that the children believe. The Child Labor
League and that malcontent Li are stirring up enough trouble now;
We do
not need some goddess cult serving as the focal point for more resistance. This
horned freak must disappear. And I must not be seen to be involved in it. I
will not have my official position compromised."
Didi
Badini's plump, powdered face creased in an unpleasant smile.
"Nothing," she assured the Piper, "would give me more pleasure.
And there need be no hint of politics about the removal, either. For
impersonating a sister without paying dues to our guild, she has already earned
punishment. And there are those who would pay well for that horn of hers;
powdered unicorn's horn is an aphrodisiac of unparalleled power."
"But
will removal of the horn kill her?" asked the voice, like dry leaves
rustling.
"I
think we can be sure of that little point," said Didi Badini, smiling as
the vid-screen display abruptly went gray.
Then
her face sagged with relief. She might not be able to see the Piper, but she
knew he could watch and interpret every change of expression on her face. A
little longer, and she might have been rash enough to let him find out exactly
how she proposed to locate this Didi Acorna. She saw no need to tell him that
she counted on young Tapha to lead her to the girl. The Piper might think that
he could more profitably deal with Tapha directly . . . and Didi Badini had not
been lying when she mentioned the resale value of a unicorn's horn. She had
customers whose natural powers were failing, to be revived only by some special
treat such as a very young virgin or the whipping of a recalcitrant girl; they
would pay handsomely for this by-product of Acorna's death.
Tapha
gave his borrowed dock workers coveralls a last nervous hitch and strode
through the workers' gate to the spaceport, giving the security guard a jaunty
wave as he passed. He could scarcely conceal his jubilation. The disguise had
worked! The coveralls were a gift from Didi Badini, who had bought them from a
lower-class Didi whose establishment of aging ladies was patronized by the
poorer dock mechanics and by transients who knew no better. It had been a
simple matter for Didi Hamida to slip a trank into one of her clients' drinks,
remove his uniform while he slept, and subsequently remove his unclothed body
to a gutter some distance from her establishment.
Women
helped him, Tapha thought as he paced down the cavernous hangar where ships in
for repairs were being disassembled and worked on. He definitely had a way with
women . . . and once this little job was taken care of, he looked forward to
returning to Didi Badini's establishment to have his way with the new girl.
Experienced women were all very well, but there was nothing quite like the
young and untouched . . . and if they were frightened as well, that added spice
to the encounter.
"Hey,
you!" a real mechanic bawled at him. "Get me a hydraulic splitter!
Not that way, you idiot," he went on as Tapha sauntered on his way.
"Stores are the other side of the hangar!"
Tapha
waved and mouthed something intended to be totally unintelligible. The mechanic
shrugged in disgust, said something to his mates about fardling idiot
foreigners who didn't even speak Basic properly and what was the Guild coming
to, and went to get his own hydraulic splitter--whatever that might be. Tapha
neither knew nor cared, but he quickened his pace so as to reach the Uhurus,
docking space outside the hangar before anybody else could delay him. It would
be a real pity if the fiendish cunning of his new disguise and improved
weaponry were spoiled by encountering somebody who expected him to actually
know about mechanicals. Tapha patted the sagging pocket of his coveralls and
grinned. This time there would be no possibility of a miss.
From a
borrowed office high on the hangar wall, Des Smirnoff and Ed Minkus watched
Tapha's sauntering progress. "Idiot thinks he got through the security
check by dressing up like a mech," Ed commented. "He doesn't even
guess that we had the weaponry and retinal scanners turned off and told the
guard not to check IDs when the little guy with the funny ears showed up. Why
did we let him through the check, anyway? Would've been easier to've picked him
up there. Or did you change your mind about letting him off Nadezda for you ?
"
"Hell,
no," Des replied, "but he hasn't done anything illegal yet. He hasn't
even cheated the scanners, since they were turned off. It would be exceeding
our charter as Guardians of the Peace to stop a man who, for all we know, is
paying an innocent family visit."
"And
very nice that'll sound if there's an inquiry," Ed applauded. "Now
what's the real reason?"
Des
gave a wolfish grin. "It won't hurt to put a bit of a scare into Nadezda
before we take this one out. Besides, if we stop a suspicious-looking character
at the gate and find unlawful arms on him, we're just doing our duty. If we
shoot him down just in time to prevent an assassination attempt, we're Heroes
of the Republic."
Ed
sighed. "You already got your money back. Now you want revenge on Nadezda
and a Hero of the Republic medal? Ever hear the story of the fisherman's wife
who wished to be pope?"
"Pope
who?"
"Never
mind. He's coming into range now; let's see if the scanners can pick up just
what he's carrying in that bulging left pocket." Ed activated the beams,
focused them, and gave a long, low whistle. "Holy Kezdet . . . we
shouldn't have disabled the weapons scanners at the main gate."
"We
didn't want him stopped for carrying a pocket laser or something like
that," Des reminded him.
"Pocket
laser! Ha! The idiot's got a tungsten bomb in there!"
"You're
kidding!"
"Wish
I were. Here-take a look at the reading."
Des
glanced at the scanner screens and blanched. "He didn't mention this was a
suicide mission. If that thing goes off, he won't only get Nadezda. He'll blow
up the bloody ship!"
"He'll
blow up the whole bloody hangar," Ed corrected him.
"Maybe
the whole spaceport."
"A
chunk of West Celtalan."
"Hero
of the Republic," Ed said, "is not what they're going to hang around
your neck for letting this one through, boyo."
"If
we don't stop him," Des said tersely, "I won't have a neck left for
them to hang me by. And if he sees us, he might panic and set the thing off
prematurely. . . . Hell, he's so dumb he might set it off by accident
anyway!"
Both
men were jogging down the internal security hall by the middle of this
conversation, so well attuned to each others' thoughts and reactions that they
didn't even need to discuss what to do next. If they could round two sides of
the hangar and cut off Tapha before he reached the Uhuru, if one of them could
get a clear shot at him, they just might be able to save themselves and a
largish chunk of West Celtalan from molecular disintegration.
"Alarm?"
puffed Ed as they passed a security station.
"Nope.
Don't "want to startle him." Des was in no better shape than his
colleague, but his adrenaline high was enough to keep him from feeling out of
breath yet.
They
made it to their target corner with seconds to spare, Ed leading. He drew his
stunner, peered around the wall, and swore. "Too many fardling workers in
the way. I can't get a clear shot."
"Screw?
the workers," Des said. "They'd rather be shot in passing than
disintegrated by a tungsten bomb, wouldn't they?" He leaned over Ed's
crouching form, utilizing every advantage of his superior height and reach, and
squeezed off a series of narrow-band stunner shots without even seeming to
pause to take aim.
"Got
him," he said with satisfaction, and sprinted for Tapha's fallen form to
defuse the bomb, Ed close behind. "Let's hope it's a standard arming
device," he said, reaching into the baggy pocket they had spotted as
containing the weapon. "Be a damn shame to lose the hands that have such
perfect aim to a misfired tungsten bomb."
"This
thing goes off," Ed said sourly, "you'll never have time to miss your
hands." He knelt over Tapha and watched, breath held, as Des twirled the
combination detonator on the tungsten bomb without a trace of nervousness.
Three clicks, an agonizing pause, and then the bones of Ed's skull registered
the cessation of the almost subliminal buzzing that had signaled an armed
tungsten bomb ready to detonate on signal. Now for the first time he noticed
the people around them; the crowd of mechs shouting misinformation at one another,
and two of the miners pushing their way through the crowd. Rafik Nadezda was
the first to reach them.
"Hey,"
Rafik said, looking down, "that's-"
"A
tungsten bomb," Des Smirnoff said, rising to his feet with the dismantled
halves of the bomb, one in each hand. "Whoever this was really didn't like
you, Nadezda-even more than I don't like you. You owe me one. Another
one," he said with heavy meaning.
"I
was about to say," said Rafik with dignity, "that's my cousin,
Tapha."
"You
got the tense -wrong," Des said with a tight-lipped smile. "That was
your cousin Tapha. I set my stunner on max when I got a maniac with an armed
tungsten bomb wandering around the port, Nadezda, and he took half a dozen
shots to the head. Fried his brains." He thought that over. "His
hypothetical brains."
"How
did he get past security?" somebody wondered aloud.
"These
terrorists are fiendishly cunning," Des said, raising his voice to roar
over the noise of the crowd.
"Terrorists?"
Gill repeated. "I thought it was a personal - "
"The
Guardians of the Peace have been watching this man for some time," Des
said loudly. "We have reason to believe he is closely associated with the
Child Labor League, those notorious terrorists who are doing their best to
wreck the economy of our happy, peaceful, and productive planet."
Gill's
face turned as red as his beard. Rafik stepped backward and landed heavily on
his toe.
"A
happy end to an unfortunate situation," he said over Gill's rumblings of
anger. "Allow me to congratulate you on your prompt handling of the
crisis. Guardian Smirnoff. And-er-that little episode on the asteroid was a
mistake. We had no idea you would be marooned there for any length of time. I
owe you an apology for that incident."
Smirnoff's
face darkened. "You owe me more than an apology," he said under his
breath, "and I still intend to collect, Nadezda. Later!"
"How
about a formal report and recommendation that you be nominated as a Hero of the
Republic?" Rafik suggested in equally low tones. "You've definitely
earned it today." Smirnoff paused, visibly undecided. "And no inquiry
as to how this . . . terrorist . . . made it through security," Rafik
added. "You can pull that off?"
"An
off-planet miner may not have that much influence," said Rafik, "but
the heir to the Harakamian Empire has." "You?"
Rafik
stood looking down at Tapha's body, his face expressionless. "I am now.
You'll permit me to collect his personal effects?" he added after a
moment's silence. "I should have something to send to his father."
"Go
right ahead," Des offered. "And-" Rafik's lips curved slightly.
"I won't forget the report, no. Congratulations-Hero of the
Republic!"
Calum
missed the excitement of Tapha's second assassination attempt, as he had missed
most of what was going on around him since Dr. Zip produced the results of his
study. Zip had concentrated on the sector of space nearest where Acorna was
found and had been downcast to report that the upsilon-V studies of stars in
that sector showed a very low chance of any primary producing planets rich in
the precise mix of metals used in the pod, a report that was borne out by the
mass diffusion imaging of the nearest JM-type stars and their planets.
But
Calum rather thought Zip, in his pride at being able to report the constituents
of distant planets through new technology, had overlooked a few things. The one
sure thing they knew about Acorna's people was that they had a sophisticated
space-faring system. If he and Gill and Calum could take rhenium from the
asteroid Daffodil to make solar thermal-thrust chambers on Theloi, why couldn't
Acorna's people also have mined a number of systems to collect the metals for
this alloy?
That
concept turned the problem of locating Acorna's home world from a straightforward
task of astrophysical analysis to a complex optimization program requiring
sophisticated operations research techniques.
"You
see," Calum had explained to Gill when he started working on the program,
"we are also going to assume, going from what we know of Acorna, that her
people are not stupid or wasteful. They wouldn't go farther than necessary to
get their metals. So first I have to use Zip's data to design a program to find
all the subsets of stars within a given volume of space that would, collectively,
provide the necessary substances, then, for each such subset, find the M-type
planet that most nearly approaches an optimal location for all the required
mining missions."
"Hey,"
Rafik said, "if Zip can come up with planetary emissions studies for all
these systems, why don't we use him to locate good mining areas for us?"
"Costs
too much," Calum said. "You wouldn't believe what Li has spent on
this problem already."
He
quoted figures until even Rafik reluctantly agreed that it wouldn't be
cost-effective to retain Zip's services as a prospector.
"But,"
he said, brightening, "he has already produced all this data in search of
Acorna, has he not? Surely there would be no objection to our using it for
other purposes?"
"Probably
not," Calum agreed. He was rather annoyed at the way his friends kept
missing the point. Who cared about mining? He wanted them to appreciate his
elegant approach to the problem of identifying Acorna's home. "I'm
treating the entire collection of stars as overlapping subsets, each containing
one or more M-types. By the Axiom of Choice, there must be - "
Rafik
had left abruptly then, muttering something about mad dogs and mathematicians.
Calum was a bit surprised that Rafik didn't share his joy in the beauties of
applied linear programming, but then it took all sorts, didn't it? Whistling
under his breath, he commandeered one of the parallel-processing units used by
the banking branch of the Li consortium, raided another branch for statistical
analysis software that could be perverted to serve his ends, and proceeded to
put together his very own astronomical and mining optimization program. For the
past weeks his conversation at mealtimes had been limited to cryptic statements
such as, "I'd have it done if I didn't have to put the data structures
from all these different bloody star charts into canonical form first,"
or, "No, the fact that it's in an infinite loop doesn't mean the program
doesn't work; it just entered a state with which I was previously unfamiliar."
And whenever Judit would let him get away with it, he skipped meals altogether
in favor of a quick snack that he could eat one-handed while gliding through
visual displays of his program in the windowless room dedicated to the project.
Now, at
last, he was getting results. Inconclusive, maybe, but results. He barely heard
Gill's excited account of the assassination attempt and its aftermath.
"Tapha's dead? Good, that's one less person after us."
"And
I think Rafik's squared Des Smirnoff. So the Guardians of the Peace won't be
bothering us, either. Calum, you should have seen Smirnoff defusing that
tungsten bomb! The man may be a corrupt cop, but he can take a place on my bomb
squad any day. Talk about nerves of steel!"
"Mmm.
Good job he defused it," Calum said, nodding over the latest printout.
"A bomb like that could've caused a power outage as far as here, couldn't
it? I could've lost a lot of data."
Gill
suggested that Calum take his data and do something anatomically improbable
-with it, then stomped off to find a more appreciative audience. Calum barely
registered his disappearance; he was thinking about ways to narrow down the
long list of possible planets to check out. The trouble with his brainstorm was
that they'd gone from zero possibles to over a hundred, none of them
conveniently close. Of course, they wouldn't be close. He snorted at his own
na'i'vete. If they were nearby we'd've met Acorna's people by now. And he might
not be able to rule out any of this long list of possibles, but he could rank
them for the search by running a second optimization, this time minimizing the
total travel time and distance required. It would be a simple variant of the
classic traveling-salesman problem.
The
only trouble was, then what? Calum longed to test his results, and the only way
he could see to do that was to go and look for himself. Delszaki Li would
probably be willing to retrofit the Uhuru with superdrives that would minimize
the travel time. But it would still be a five-year project just to check out
the nearest group of possible planets. How could he abandon his buddies and
take their ship for five years? Rafik and Gill needed him; neither of them was
enough of a mathematician to manage subspace navigation on his own.
Calum
came out of his particular haze when he realized he had not seen Rafik and, at
breakfast, asked if Rafik was living aboard the Uhuru.
Acorna
giggled. "I told you that eventually he would notice," she said to
Mr. Li, who was smiling benignly on her.
"Well?
Is he?" He addressed this query to Gill.
"In
a manner of speaking, he is," Gill replied around a mess of kippered
herrings which Mr. Li had imported especially for him. Though Calum was as
British in origin as himself, the mathematician did not like kippered herrings.
Waiting
for Gill to continue, he even wrinkled his nose as the reek of the delicacy
wafted in his direction.
"He's
on a sorrowful mission," Acorna said, giggling again.
Calum
wished she wouldn't giggle. It wasn't like his Acorna. She had never been
silly, but maybe it was part of the girlish things that Judit was teaching her.
Although he couldn't remember Judit giggling.
"What?"
and Calum addressed this inquiry to Mr. Li as the only sensible member at the
dining table.
"His
cousin, Tapha," Mr. Li supplied.
"Can
no one give me a straight answer?" Calum complained.
"Considering
that all we've had out of you recently has been either statistical
probabilities or astronomical variables," Judit said, a touch peevishly,
"a straight answer is improbable, isn't it?" Then she relented as
Calum did indeed look hurt and had been trying so hard to locate Acorna's home
world. "He decided he'd better take Tapha's ashes back to Uncle Hafiz and
explain how he met his death."
"Oh!"
Calum digested this along with several mouthfuls of a delightful breakfast
omelet before he let his fork fall from his hand. "But he's now his
uncle's heir."
"We
know," Judit replied.
"Will
he come back at all? Gill said something about Rafik finally finding his
element in all the trading he's had to do for the Moon Mines."
Gill
glowered at him. "He won't leave us until he's finished that, because that
will prove to Hafiz that he's really sown his wild oats and is ready to settle
down and represent House Harakamian."
"Oh!"
Calum said, digesting that before he picked up his fork. "Yes, it would
rather, wouldn't it? But Rafik wouldn't do that, would he? Not yet, when we
haven't finished the moon base or found Acorna's planet."
"I
don't think he would," Gill said, half his mind on getting the last flake
of kippered herring onto his fork and into his mouth.
Pal
entered, looking concerned. "I just heard that Hafiz Harakamian's fastest
ship docked here this morning, in fact, in the berth the Uhuru was, using."
"Uh-oh,"
Gill said, looking at Acorna. "That idiot son of his must have told him
you're here." "How could he know?" Acorna was dismayed.
"How could he know?" And Gill went falsetto in mimicry. "Because
you've been doing your Lady of the Lights and the healed -wounds and purified
water act all over Celtalan is how he knows. How many unicorn horns are there
on Kezdet?" He stood, throwing down his napkin, the bristles of his beard
trembling with sincerity. "And I'm going to stick as close to you as your
shadow."
"Oh,
good, when Calum goes back to his computers, we can go out. I have just a
little errand to do. I would have asked Pal, but he's doing something for Mr.
Li, and I have a call in to Pedir," she spared a glance at the elegant
antique carriage clock on the mantelpiece, "and he will be here shortly.
Do say you'll come?"
"You
better go," Calum said, "because I haven't spent hours, days
..."
"Weeks?"
Judit put in, grinning from him to Gill.
".
. . trying to locate where you came from, to let Uncle Hafiz get you
first."
"So
Pedir found out where she is?" Judit asked.
Acorna
nodded. "He's been so helpful." Judit looked as if she were about to
add something, then saw the belligerent look on Gill's face. "I can't come
this morning." She turned to Mr. Li. "We have that appointment with
the head of the Public Works about proving the moon base design meets
code."
"That
sounds like an engineering problem," Gill objected.
"It's
politics," Judit said. "He knows the base design is safe, and he
knows -we know it. At this stage, Delszaki doesn't need an engineer to
reiterate the facts and get red in the face. He needs a psycholinguist to
maneuver the talks the right way."
"You
mean, Kezdet's objecting?" Gill asked, for he'd heard rumors which Rafik
had discounted.
"Nothing
that can't be discreetly settled, my boy," Mr. Li said, and moved his
hover-chair back from the table. "Come along, Judit. Gill, I'd rather you
accompanied Acorna and Nadhari since Judit cannot."
"As
you wish, Mr. Li," Gill said, but he wasn't looking forward to it. Nadhari
Kando wasn't his idea of a pleasant female companion for an excursion.
"You'll be safe with me." Actually, he didn't think they needed
Nadhari at all, but it was better to be safe than sorry.
He
could add that to Calum's list of famous last words. Climbing into Pedir's
skimmer-he'd met the man previously, since his vehicle seemed to be constantly
in use by Judit and Acorna for their "shopping trips"-he had no idea
where they were going. Pedir started right in telling Acorna about some very
useful items he heard were going for nothing in the market which he thought she
should check out. That ought to have warned Gill, but he was thinking about
Tapha and Rafik and worrying that Rafik's wily uncle might somehow hold him on
Laboue, and the Li Moon Mining Company Ltd. might grind to a halt. Rafik had so
much in his head and not on paper that it would take Gill months to catch up if
Rafik didn't return in a timely fashion.
He was
roused out of his contemplation when Pedir landed the skimmer, and Gill was
astonished to find themselves in the very -worst possible neighborhood.
"You
will wait in the skimmer," Nadhari told Acorna. "I will fetch the
girl."
"She
won't come to you," Acorna said. Nadhari bared her teeth. "She will
if I tell her to." She slipped out of the skimmer, which barely fit in the
narrow courtyard where they had landed, and trod through puddles of slime to
where a short flight of stairs led to a basement door in the wall. She tapped a
special sequence; the door opened a crack, then swung shut again.
"Wait,
wait!" Acorna cried, scrambling after Nadhari. "They don't know you!
She's afraid! You'll have to go back to the skimmer!"
"Delszaki
Li ordered me to protect you." Nadhari planted her booted heels firmly in
the mud and glared at Acorna. "You go, I go." "Nobody's going
in," Acorna said patiently. Gill thought it was time he joined the
discussion. "Acorna, acushia, this is not exactly a shopping trip, is it?
Want to tell me what's going on?" Acorna looked at her feet. "Not
really." "Not good enough," Gill said sternly. Acorna drew a
deep breath. "Well..."
The
door creaked on its hinges. "You talk too long!" whispered a woman.
She put her face to the open crack, where the daylight cruelly illuminated the
shiny red burn scars that disfigured the right side of her face from cheekbone
to chin. "Someone will come! The lady must come in and pay the price. No
one else."
There
was a moment of tense bargaining, as both Gill and Nadhari initially refused to
allow Acorna to go into the dark rooms at all, and the person on the other side
of the door wanted them to go back to the skimmer, and Nadhari clearly wanted
to blast her way into the rooms and take whatever it was Acorna had come for
with no more talking. Finally a compromise was reached: Nadhari and Acorna were
allowed in while Gill waited outside.
"We
are only women here," the veiled figure had said. "Only women come
in."
"And
if they think that makes them safe," Gill muttered, pacing the short
length of the courtyard and back again, three strides each way, "they
obviously don't recognize dear Nadhari."
There
was a cry from inside, then the door bolt snicked, the door was flung back, and
Acorna's arm pushed a very young girl out of the entry. Her arm did not follow
as he hoped, but was yanked back inside.
"They'll
kill her," the child squeaked, and managed to jam her foot in the door.
She cried out with pain as the closing door compressed her foot, but only for a
heartbeat; then Gill had his shoulder to the door, forcing it open again.
The
sudden change from light to darkness startled him. He had a confused impression
of figures struggling in the confined space. Was that Acorna? He was afraid to
move for fear of hurting her or Nadhari.
An
elbow jammed into his solar plexus and Gill backed up two steps, banging into
the door. "Be some use, can't you!" Nadhari's low rough voice
excoriated him. "Open the fardling door!"
Gill
pulled the door open, and the daylight showed him that at least two of the
figures he'd seen were going to give nobody any trouble. Two men lay on the
floor, one with a trickle of blood coming from his open mouth, the other
staring wide-eyed and blank at the ceiling. Acorna was breathing hard. Nadhari
was not. In the light from the open door, her right hand flicked and sent a
knife into the shoulder of the young woman who'd insisted that Acorna come
inside.
"Don't
hurt her!" Acorna cried.
"It
was a trap," Nadhari s toneless voice grated. "You have paid the
price. Now come, before there is more trouble."
Gill
could see that the woman's face, though contorted with pain, was now smooth
with new clean skin where the burns had disfigured her before. "I didn't
mean for you to be trapped," she cried to Acorna. "They must have
followed me."
Nadhari
made a sound of disgust and took Acorna's arm, pushing her out of the door.
The
child in the courtyard had been trying to get back in to help, but now she was
hindering their escape by blocking the door. Gill swooped her up in one arm,
pushed Acorna toward the stairs with the other, and was up the stairs, down the
alley, and into the skimmer in seconds.
They
were actually in and Pedir was making a hasty lift out of the courtyard when
more figures erupted out of the basement. The child started shrieking, clinging
to Acorna.
"They'll
get me. They'll get me," she cried.
"Who?"
Then Gill did a double-take on one of the male figures who had joined in the
futile attempt to catch the rising skimmer. "By all the saints, that's
Uncle Hafiz!"
"Uncle
Hafiz?" Acorna swiveled round, but the courtyard and its occupants were
now out of sight and Pedir had pushed the speed bar as far forward as it would
go, kicking the skimmer into full power.
"So,
after all, Tapha told him you were here? And there's Rafik trying to make a
good impression on Uncle!" Gill gave a snort of exasperation. "Where
was that? And who's this?" He decided these were safer topics than
speculating about Rafik's annoyance when he discovered that Hafiz was here and
might even know that his son had been trying to kill his nephew. Or maybe that
wouldn't surprise him.
"This-"
Acorna smiled proudly down at the young girl who -was hugging her rescuer's
waist in a stranglehold, still chanting her litany, "she'll get me she'll
get me" "-this is Khetala, who saved Jana and so many of the children
and guarded them as best she could until Didi Badini took her away. And we've
taken her away from Didi Badini!"
"That
won't help now," Khetala blurted. "He's after you and the Piper
always kills those he's after." "The Piper?" Pedir said,
noticeably blanching. "The Piper?" Acorna's tone held contempt and
scorn.
"The
Piper?" Gill asked, wanting to understand the diverse reactions.
"He's
the one who's supposed to be behind the child bondage schemes here on Kezdet .
. ." Acorna began.
"He
is," Pedir said in an awed tone, jiggling the controls to get more speed
out of the skimmer as he aimed it toward the nearest congregation of vehicles
exactly like his.
"But
we have Khetala now and she's safe with me," Acorna said.
"I'm
not sure I am," Gill said, and sucked his bloody knuckles.
"Did
you have a chance ... I mean ..." Pedir floundered and craned his head
around to look at Acorna.
"Of
course, I did. That was the bargain, wasn't it?" Acorna said stoutly.
Gill
decided that since Pedir seemed to care what happened to the scarred girl, it
might not be tactful to mention that they had left her with a knife through her
shoulder and suspected her of setting them up. Nadhari and Acorna seemed to be
working through the same thought processes, for they were both silent on the
trip back. For Acorna, at least, that was unusual.
They
reached Delszaki Li's home to discover that the population had been augmented
by one that very morning, and a three-way fight was raging in the entrance
hall.
"Now
what?" Pal demanded, taking in their disheveled condition and the girl
clutching Acorna like a life-preserver. "Oh, never mind, don't tell me. I've
got enough trouble this morning already, what with Mercy running out on her
job."
"I'm
Mercy, Pal," said the slender young woman facing him. Her delicate yet
firm features and the thick braid of dark hair that hung down her back reminded
Gill of Judit, though this girl wasn't half as pretty. Her dark eyes didn't
flash like Judit's, and she didn't have Judit's way of tilting her chin up just
before charging into battle. "I know youwe-need the information I was
getting from the Guardians' office. But there wasn't going to be much more
information that way. Not through me. Even Des Smirnoff noticed eventually that
there were too many people named Kendoro around him. You and Judit haven't
exactly been keeping a low profile, you know. Smirnoff and Minkus started being
careful what they said around me last week. Today I came in to find they'd
changed the passwords on all their files . . . and then I saw one of those
windowless skimmers from Interrogation on the landing pad. I had to get out.
I'm not brave like you and Judit, you know that. If they took me to
Interrogation, I don't know what I might have told them."
Surrounded
by unknown people, Khetala clung with bruising fingers to Acorna. She quietly
led the child away to the kitchen, hoping that the probably unusual experience
of having all she wanted to eat would soothe and reassure her.
"Stop
apologizing!" Calum snorted. He put one arm round Mercy's shoulders, as if
to hold her upright. "I've heard about some of the methods Interrogation
uses. One jab of the needle and you spill all, no matter how you try to keep
from talking. I doubt I could stand up against them myself. You did exactly the
right thing-not just for yourself, but for all of us-by getting out before they
could take you." He glared at Pal. "What were you thinking of, to let
the kid stay there at all after they started suspecting her?"
"I
had no reason to think she was under suspicion," Pal said stiffly,
"and the inside information she has provided on Guardians of the Peace
activities has been invaluable. She's warned three of our field agents to get
out before the Guardians could break up the hedgerow schools they were running
for factory children and arrest our people."
"With
that kind of record, even the Guardians would have had to figure out there was
a fly on the office wall somewhere," Calum exclaimed. "What was your
plan: save the field agents and sacrifice the local one?"
"There
was no need for any suspicion to have fallen on Mercy if she had been
discreet," Pal said.
"Discreet?
Didn't you listen to the girl? It was her name, not her actions, that got her
in trouble," Calum said, blithely reversing his previous argument.
"If you two hadn't been taking Acorna all over Kezdet to stir up trouble,
maybe it wouldn't be so dangerous for her to be a Kendoro." "Were you
followed here. Mercy?" Pal asked, ignoring Calum.
The
girl shivered. "I don't know. I don't think so. ... I used the old route,
through East Celtalan, and then the tunnels under the Riverwalk Park."
"Let's
hope you haven't compromised it, then."
Calum
snorted. "Pal, if the Guardians are watching out for people named Kendoro,
you can be sure they've got a watch on this house. What difference does it make
whether Mercy was followed? The house is already under surveillance. But
they're hardly likely to break into Delszaki Li's private residence to get a
girl who's committed no crimes . . . are they?"
At this
point Judit returned from her appointment with the head of Public Works and
entered the fray.
"Pal,
leave Mercy alone!" Judit commanded. "She's had the hardest job of
any of us, and if she says it was time for her to clear out, the least you can
do is trust her judgment."
Pal
threw up his hands. "I give up! Two big sisters in one household is more than
any man should be expected to take."
"Fine,"
Judit retorted, "next time you can go and talk to the Public Works
Department. Tumlm Viggers is refusing to certify our base on Maganos for
colonization. He says it's an untried technology and the architect needs to
come to Kezdet to explain his plans in person."
"The
architect happens to be dead!" Gill exclaimed.
"Precisely.
It's a stalling maneuver." Judit frowned. "Usually that means they
want more bribes. But Viggers didn't hear any of Delszaki's hints in that
direction. Maybe he really doesn't understand the base design. It is a radical
departure from standard practice in some ways . . . and Kezdets Public Works
Department doesn't even have any experience with standard space environment
designs."
Delszaki
Li had steered his hover-chair in behind Judit and had been watching the
argument with quiet amusement.
"Perhaps
would be wise for some people to go to Maganos," he suggested.
"Report, please, on how lunar base construction progresses; demonstrate
success of habitat and ecological system."
"I'll
go," Gill said. "Rafik may not be back for a while, and heaven forbid
we should tear Calum away from his astronomical optimization programs." He
looked at Acorna. "And ... I didn't have a chance to tell you yet, but we
spotted Hafiz this morning. Three guesses what he's doing here! I think Acorna
had better come with me. That'll keep her out of his way." And out of
trouble, he added silently to himself.
"I'll
go with her," Pal said immediately. He shot a dirty look at Mercy, who
didn't notice. Her attention was all on Calum, who was talking quietly with her
in a corner. "This house is entirely too full of sisters."
"Judit,"
Delszaki Li said while Pal and Gill started discussing how they would produce a
convincing report for Public Works, "I wish you would accompany
them."
"Why
me? Not that I mind," Judit said hastily, "but you need an
assistant." She glanced at Gill. For some reason the idea of studying a
halfcompleted lunar colony with Gill sounded as attractive as a month-long
holiday on the rainbow beaches of Erev Ba.
"Also
need someone with sense to keep these children out of trouble," Li said,
which made Judit feel like the aging spinster governess in a Victorian
household. Or the maiden aunt. "As for assistant. Mercy can take over in
your absence. Continue tradition of a Kendoro as my personal assistant."
He cackled under his breath. "You and Pal need to get busy, produce next
generation of Kendoros before this old man -wears out all three of this
generation." His glance at Gill was full of meaning.
Judit
blushed and tried to think of some way to disguise her eagerness to go.
"Seems
hard on Pal," she murmured. "He's going to Maganos to get away from
his big sisters, and now you're sending one of us along to keep tabs on
him."
Li
cackled again. "I think maybe Pal has other reason for wishing to go to
Maganos." He looked meaningfully at Pal, who was staring at Acorna with an
expression his loving older sister could only categorize as goopy in the
extreme. "Just when I have an assistant who understands my mind," he
sighed with pretended disappointment, "his gets bent in another direction.
You will go to Maganos, Judit," he said firmly, a little too soon for Judit
to be sure that his previous complaint had been meant to apply only to Pal.
"Mercy will stay and take care of poor old man in his declining
years."
"If
you're sure she can do it. . ." Judit began doubtfully.
"You
people don't appreciate Mercy!" Calum reentered the conversation with a
bang, still clasping Mercy's shoulders. "For years she's had the hardest
job of any of you, working undercover for the Guardians of the Peace. Wasting
her intelligence on pretending to be a secretary and carrying trays of kava!
It's criminal. Do you realize this girl has an advanced degree in linear
systems optimization theory? She's coming down to the basement now with me to
see the programs I've developed to search for Acorna's home world."
Li
sighed as they left, but his dark eyes were twinkling.
"At
least is not etchings," he murmured, "but is getting harder and
harder to keep good help these days!"
Brantley
Geram, the subcontractor in charge of building the living quarters and
life-support systems for Maganos Moon Base, was only too happy to have
representatives of Delszaki Li coming to look at the work in progress. He was
in general a happy man, working on Maganos in almost complete autonomy,
developing the last designs of the legendary Martin Dehoney, and with the
financial backing of the Li consortium allowing him to make sure that for once
everything was done exactly as it should be, no corners cut in construction
processes and no inferior materials used.
This
did not, he hastened to assure Pal and Acorna, imply any extravagance. Quite
the reverse. Mr. Dehoney's plans were far-reaching, ambitious, futuristic,
perhaps, but not impractical or extravagant.
"As
you see, we started with minimal living quarters, due to the expense of lifting
shielding
materials
into orbit. But as soon as the beneficiation and reduction processors for the
regolith were in place, we -were able to expand significantly, using the dust
and by-products of reduction as our radiation shield."
Acorna
looked over the one large room he was showing them.
"Is
this all?" she asked.
"We
will, of course, be able to expand the living quarters even more as the
processing of regolith continues," Geram said, "but there's no need
for that at present. We have ample space for the contractors and work crews
here."
"You'll
need more space," Acorna said. "How fast can you expand the quarters?
We'll need dormitories, schoolrooms - "
"Schoolrooms
? "
"Children
may take up less space than adults," Acorna said, "but they must be
educated. Or did you think Delszaki Li had gone into the business of exploiting
child laborers like the rest of Kezdet?"
Brantley
Geram sputtered unintelligibly and finally managed to convey that nobody had
told him anything about children.
"That's
why Mr. Li wants all the machinery designed for easy maintenance and operation
by people with little upper-body strength," Pal told him. "But I
suppose you weren't involved with the mining machinery contract."
"No,"
Brantley said, with a regretful glance down the tunnel leading to the
processing section of the base.
Gill
had disappeared almost immediately upon arrival to inspect the technical
workings, taking Mr. Li's other assistant-strange how all of Li's assistants
seemed to be named Kendoro-along with him and reducing Brantley's audience to
two. The funnylooking girl didn't even seem to be interested in the technical
obstacles they had overcome to get this much of the lunar base operational in
such a short time. Women! Let them into a place and they were mentally hanging
curtains and planting flowers before you even had a decent oxygen-nitrogen
balance established.
"And
don't start turning the "whole space into communal living quarters,"
young Kendoro added to the girl. "Remember, we'll have adults here, too,
and they'll want some privacy. Make sure there are some shielded bedrooms for
staff."
Young
men, Brantley thought, were even worse than women. All they thought about was
bedrooms. Too bad that middle-aged miner, Gill something, hadn't stayed to
inspect the base living quarters. He had looked like a sensible man.
"Privacy
is necessarily a low priority in this phase of the project," he said.
"Later on, when the miners start excavating below the regolith, the
tunnels should provide enough living space to satisfy everyone's needs. In
fact, it will be quite luxurious. With solar power from the hyper-mirrors that
we're now constructing, we will have abundant energy. And by incorporating Mr.
Nadezda's suggestion of capturing a cometary asteroid for its ice core, we will
be able to maintain a large base of water which can be passed through a
swimming
pool, a
series of decorative ponds, and the hydroponics facility before it is purified
for reuse."
"Excellent,"
Acorna said. "You're quite right, privacy isn't important now. We need to
provide a safe habitat for as many children as possible. We can wait as long as
necessary for the luxuries."
Pal
sighed. "I'm willing to wait as long as I have to," he said.
Acorna,
of course, didn't notice his double meaning. At the moment, she was so
entranced with the vision of refuge for Kezdet's children that he wasn't sure
she had even noticed his presence. Well, he could only keep trying . . . and
waiting.
"Perhaps
you'd like to view the hydroponics section," Brantley suggested, trying to
regain the attention of his wandering audience. "Maintaining an even
ecological balance is, of course, the other limiting factor in our expansion,
as well as the need for shielded quarters. We could import food, but in the
long run it's better to grow it here; if enough plants are grown to provide
food, they will automatically meet the oxygen demands of the people. That means
approximately three hundred square meters of growing area per person, and a
photosynthesis energy requirement of thirty kilowatts per person. If we
increase the demand for oxygen faster than we build up the 'ponics, the whole
ecosystem will go out of balance and we'll have serious problems. Same thing if
we expand the growing area significantly beyond the needs of present personnel.
Balance is the key to success in any closed ecological system," he said
earnestly.
"Mmm,"
said Acorna as they ducked through the low tunnel to reach the hydroponics
area. No space wasted here! She and Pal had to crouch to make it through; it was
a relief to stand up in the spacious dome allocated to hydroponics, with its
moist atmosphere and reflected solar light. She sniffed the air. "You have
a little problem with excess nitrogen."
"Why,
yes," Brantley said, surprised. How had the girl managed to read the
gauges from all the way across the dome? "We're increasing the number of
soybean tanks; they're our principal nitrogen-fixing legumes. Later we'll add
peanuts, too, for a more varied diet."
"Good.
That should take care of it. It's a little much for me to manage on my
own," Acorna said.
Brantley
shook his head. "On her own?" Something about this conversation . . .
These people seemed to be speaking Basic, but some of the things they said made
no sense at all.
While
he was trying to regain his momentum, Acorna plucked a leaf of chard from the
nearest tank and chewed it daintily, a thoughtful expression on her face.
"Needs
potassium," she said. "Better check your mix."
"I'd
do it if I were you," Pal said cheerfully at the blank look on Brantley's
face. "She has great intuition about these particular things ... no
intuition whatever about some others, though, so it balances out."
"What
do you mean, no intuition?" Acorna demanded.
Great.
She might be annoyed with him, but at least it was attention. Pal grinned.
"Don't
you ever think about the future?"
Brantley
Geram sidled off to activate the water testers. It would take a few minutes to
verify that the girl had been talking off the top of her head when she claimed
the 'ponics tanks were low on potassium-, but the satisfaction would be worth
it. He knew this system; he'd built it, he maintained it. No pretty girl could
do a better job than his AI-driven automatic ingredient-balancing system!
"Of
course I think about the future," Acorna snapped at Pal. "That's
practically all I think about-how many children can we house up here, and how
soon we can start bringing them up."
"I
meant your personal future," Pal said patiently.
"Calum
is working on that."
"Finding
your home? Yes, but that's not all there is."
Acorna's
pupils narrowed to vertical slits. "Without other people like me,"
she said, "I have no personal future."
"That,"
said Pal, "is what I mean about your impaired intuition, Acorna. There are
other people like you right here and you never even noticed. Don't we want the
same things? Don't we care about the same things? Do I have to grow white fur
on my legs before you'll notice me? Or is all your love reserved for small,
helpless people? Maybe I should break my leg. Would you notice me,then?"
"I
would not recommend that," Acorna said. "I do not know if I can heal
broken bones." They had already discovered some limitations to her healing
power, Delszaki Li's nerve paralysis "was too far advanced for her to do
more than relieve some of his minor symptoms.
Pal
threw up his hands. "You're impossible! You're deliberately missing the
point!"
Acorna
took his hand. "Had it occurred to you," she said softly, "that
maybe this particular point had better be missed? "
"No,
it hadn't, and I don't see why," Pal said.
Acorna
took a deep breath.
"Pal.
We don't know anything at all about my genus. Your people take twenty years to
reach physical maturity; I've done it in four. For all we know, I could be old
in another four years."
"I
don't care," Pal interrupted her. "And even if it were so, is that
any reason for not living now?"
"We
don't even know if our species are interfertile."
"I'd
be willing to run some tests. We wouldn't even need a laboratory-" Pal
smiled "-and I'd be happy to repeat the experiment over and over."
"Don't
you want children?"
"Dear
lady of my heart," Pal said, "we're going to have children. Several
hundred of them, for starters!"
As he
checked the results of the water test with unbelieving eyes, Brantley Geram
heard them laughing and thought they must have been running their own tests on
the tank mix. Okay, so the girl had been right: potassium levels were down. A
lucky guess, that was all. A lucky guess.
Ed Minkus
took the call which came into the Guardians of the Peace offices. When he
realized the origin of the call, he covered the mouthpiece and hissed across
the room at Des Smirnoff.
"We've
got the inspector on our neck. Over that dock shooting. The grieving parent is
on his way here and we have to prove it wasn't our negligence that caused his
death."
"Negligence?
Negligence?" Des said, blustering because any call from the inspector was
startling-and dangerous. One day the man was going to figure out just how
little he knew about this department. When he started taking an interest in
things, there would be an awful lot of "things" that would need to be
rapidly "lost."
"Yes,
sir, we certainly will, sir. All the files ready and the tri-d documentation of
the ... ah ... regrettable incident," Des was saying, almost falling into
the phone to project earnest, and innocent, sincerity. "Yes, yes. I got
the name: Hafiz Harakamian." He put the unit down as if it carried
skin-eating plague.
"Harakamian
the father is coming here?" From his surfing of the trade nets the name
was instantly familiar to Smirnotf, and suddenly he realized who the man known
as "Farkas Hamisen," with his connection to Rafik Nadezda, must
really have been. The planet seemed to grow aliases the way some people grew .
. . ears. "Did we save the files? I thought we gave the stuff to
Nadezda?"
"He
got copies, but our files sure show the tungsten bomb, and that'll save our
liver and lights."
Smirnoff
glowered at his subordinate. "You hope!"
Then
the door to their office swung open and in came their new clerk, Cowdy, a very
shapely young woman, herded inside, back first, by the prodding finger of the
man who was barging in without proper introduction.
"How
many times must I tell-" Smirnoff switched gears the moment he saw their
visitor, who was unctuously backing Cowdy into the room. "Oh, sir, we
didn't expect you so quickly," and he rose, as gracious as if he had never
started to ream his underling out of her tights. "May I, and my partner,
express our deep sympathy and regret for the unfortunate way in which your son
met his end?"
"I
want to see the records," Hafiz Harakamian said in an absolutely
expressionless voice, taking a seat at the vid-screen and looking from it to
Smirnoff expectantly.
Minkus
nearly fell over his own feet and Smirnoff's to key up the necessary file. And
there it was: the perp's unswerving progress toward a certain ship, the
scanners' discovery of the tungsten bomb, their race to intercept him, and then
their neat skewering of him with stunner shots. Then the all-important close-up
of Des defusing the tungsten bomb.
"He
couldn't have been that stupid," Hafiz was heard to mutter, at which point
both Minkus and Smirnoff began to relax.
"You
see, Honorable Harakamian, how little option there was! For that device to have
been planted . . ." Smirnoff shrugged eloquently. "Yes, I see." He rose from the
desk and turned with a very cold and distant expression to face them. "I
have come to collect his remains."
"There
were none. He was cremated," Ed blurted out.
"Cremated?
You donkey! You horse's ass, you camel's slime spit..."
"Rafik
said that was the way - "
"Rafik?"
Hafiz lowered the arm with which he was dramatically gesturing. "Rafik here?"
Relief flooded his features. "Then it was done as the Prophets have
ordained?"
"Of
course. How could you doubt our efficiency in such a detail?" Smirnoff
said. "And, of course, we had Nadezda to direct the ceremonies. But, he is
on his way to you. He felt it only necessary."
Hafiz's
expression altered and he regarded Smirnoflf as one would camel's green cud on
formal attire. "So the bomb was meant for my nephew!"
"It
was?" Ed Minkus looked innocently at the Honorable Harakamian.
"There
was bad blood between them, that is true," Harakamian said, dropping his
head as if in deep sorrow. Then, tilting his head a trifle, he asked, "I
don't suppose you would know where the ward of my nephew would be? On the ship
with him, returning my son's ceremonially blessed ashes?"
"No,
he went by himself. The others are still at Mr. Li's," Ed replied, and
managed a sickly grin as Smirnoff's expression told him he should probably have
reserved that information for a price.
"Not
Mr. Delszaki Li?" Hafiz exclaimed.
"The
very man," Smirnotf replied.
"Thank
you. And good day," Hafiz said, and made as speedy a departure as his
arrival.
"You
stupid twit! You ninny-hammered loghead! You anvil-pated numskull. Have you any
idea how much that information would have meant in good House Harakamian
credits? And you gave it to him?"
Ed
Minkus drooped. It would take him a long time to get over that.
It did
not, however, take Hafiz Harakamian very long to reach the house of Mr.
Delszaki Li. And there he sat, observing who came and went. When the skimmer
pilot seemed restless, Hafiz reminded him that he had agreed to the hire of his
vehicle and if he, Hafiz, wished to spend all day across from the house of Mr.
Li, the meter was ticking and what difference did it make to what the vehicle
did with its time?
"Who
was you looking to find?" the driver asked. "Lotsa people go in and
out of that house."
"Well,
why not?" Hafiz said to himself. "Would you have noticed a female
with silver hair and ..."
The
driver swung to face his client, his eyes wide with surprise. "How wouldja
know anything about the Lady of the Lights? I only picked you up at the
spaceport."
"Lady
of the Lights? My sweet little Acorna has achieved the distinction of a
title?" Hafiz said.
"You
better believe it. Cured my sister of a birthmark which uglified her to the
point no decent man would look at one so cursed. And, without the stain, she's
not that bad lookin'." The transformation seemed to have surprised the
driver.
Hafiz
sighed. He had thought it might be easy to smuggle her back to his ship and
away. But if she had achieved this sort of adoring notoriety, the odds had
turned astronomical. The Didi had suggested that the girl had acquired unusual
protectors.
"Anyway,"
the driver went on, all affability now, "she ain't here. She and the big
red-beard and the littler guy went off to Maganos two days ago. To see the moon
installation. But they're goin' to have trouble with that," he added,
frowning.
"Oh?"
Hafiz said encouragingly.
"Yeah,
only they haven't figgered it out yet. If I'd of been the one to take them to
the spaceport, instead of a House Li pilot, I'd of told them a thing or
two." He laid an oily, broken-nailed finger along the side of his nose and
winked at Hafiz. "You wanna know anything around here, you ask drivers.
They hear a lot even if they do sit up front, pretending they're deef."
"Do
tell," Hafiz said, making a paper plane out of a large denomination credit
note which, with a practiced flick of his wrist, lofted over the partition,
where it flew straight into the driver's quick hand.
"That
I can, because we're all wantin' the Lady Epona to get the better of the Child
Bonders and clean up Kezdet's reputation. Why, just the other day, there was
some kinda fanatic trying to blow up the docks with a bomb!"
"Really!
Is there some place nearby where a man like yourself and I might have a quiet
meal and discreet conversation?"
The
driver revved the engine of the skimmer in answer. "Know the very
place!"
Judit
listened politely. Gill with growing enthusiasm, to the mining subcontractor's
description of the simple three-drum drag scraper which was already in
operation as they tested feasibility of Dehoney's first-stage designs.
"This
is one of DPW's stated objections to the Maganos proposal," Judit told
Gill and the subcontractor. "They say the drag scraper is an outdated
twentieth-century technology."
Provola
Quero, the subcontractor, sneered. "They should talk! Kezdet's mines
aren't just outdated, they're medieval! Besides, haven't they ever heard of the
saying, 'If it ain't broke, don't fix it'?" She jammed both hands deep
into the pockets of her coveralls and paced to the next viewing window, talking
nonstop. "The scraper is outdated for planetary use; it's inefficient and
inflexible. And it's not worth setting up for quick in-and-out asteroid jobs.
But as a starter system for Maganos, it is ideal. It's simple, rugged, and
required very low mass to be lifted up here. When we scale up, of course, we'll
replace this with more efficient, highvolume methods . . . using equipment
fabricated right here on Maganos, in the pressurized repair shop we have
already set up to deal with scraper repairs and working with the high-purity
structural metals we reduce from the first batches of lunar regolith. Dehoney
planned this operation to bootstrap itself from the git-go. He always said that
the whole point of lunar industrialization was to do what you couldn 't do
dirtside, not to throw away credits lifting machinery designed for gravity and
atmosphere into orbit and then fixing the inevitable problems."
Gill's
eyes lit up. "You knew Dehoney personally?"
"Studied
with him for five years," Provola said, running a hand through her yellow
crewcut. "Helped assemble the designs for his prizewinning solar
greenhouse habitat." She tapped the stud in her nose, which Gill now
recognized as a miniature version of the space-station icon that was the famed
Andromeda Prize, worked in black enamel and diamonds. "I plan to be the
next Andromeda prizewinner," she added, "and Maganos is going to do
it. Just tell me what you need to make DPW happy, and I'll bury them in
documentation proving the worth of Dehoney's plans . . . and my
implementation."
She and
Gill moved happily into a discussion of duty cycles, component replacement, and
modular design, -while Judit stared out the viewport at the monotonous drag,
scrape, lift of the cabledriven machinery. She didn't need to follow the
engineering discussion in detail to be reassured that both Gill and Provola
knew what they were talking about; years of working with Amalgamated had given
her a sixth sense for which engineers knew their field and -which ones were
shooting out clouds of technical terminology to disguise their incompetence and
laziness. Gill and Provola Quero were both in the first class. If they were
satisfied that this three-drum whatsit was the best way to initiate lunar
mining on Maganos, she had no doubt they were right.
What
she did doubt-very seriously-was the usefulness of any engineering argument to
convince Tumim Viggers of the Public Works Department. Accustomed to reading
nuances of speech and slight gestures of body language in order to survive with
Amalgamated, Judit had picked up far more from that brief, inconclusive meeting
than Viggers had actually said. The man wasn't really concerned about the
technical specifications for Maganos; he'd thrown out those objections almost
casually, as if he were only playing for time. More disturbing, he had evinced
no interest in Delszaki Li's hinted bribes either. When a Kezdet bureaucrat
didn't take a bribe, you knew you were in real trouble.
She
tried listening more carefully to the technical argument, to take her mind off
what she suspected were their more dangerous political problems. Gill was
querying the need for the large-scale pressurized repair shop. It had been
relatively low on Dehoney's original list of priorities; why had Provola chosen
to make it the first major construction?
"Because
we need it now, and we're going to need it more every day!" Provola tugged
at the one long braid dangling at the side of her short, bristly haircut.
"Sure, some of this work can be done suited and on the surface, but why
should we? Give me one good reason for rewinding an electric motor in a vacuum!
You've worked asteroids; you should know that dust is the worst problem of
low-g, low-atmosphere environments." Even you, her contemptuous tone
implied.
"We
managed our repairs on the ship," Gill said.
"You,"
Provola flashed back, "had to be portable. We don't. We're going to need
an industrial-sized shop soon enough to fabricate the next generation of mining
machinery, so why not build it now and save the cost of expanding later? "
Gill
put up his hands to register capitulation. "All right, all right," he
said pacifically. "You're right; I'm used to small, quick operations, not
to permanent base construction. I wouldn't mind learning, though."
Provola
gave him a sudden, flashing smile. "And I," she admitted, "have
more theoretical than practical experience. Are you going to hire on to the
Maganos project? We'd make a good team . . . unless you have problems with a
woman supervisor?"
"I
like women," Gill said.
"That
doesn't answer the question. I wasn't asking what you like to do with your
hands when you're off duty."
Gill
reached out for Judit and pulled her close to him. "My hands, and my off
duty, are already committed, lady," he said, "and I wouldn't object
to working for any student of Martin Dehoney's ... if that answers your
question. Unfortunately, I'm not free to stay on Maganos."
"Why
not?" Judit cried. She had just begun spinning a picture of how pleasant
their life here could be. Delszaki Li had already shown her plans of the
private living quarters he intended to allocate to the woman in charge of
welfare and education for the rescued children and had hinted strongly that he
would like her to be that woman. If Gill took a job on the mining side of the
project, he could share those quarters . . . and he loved children. There
couldn't be a better man to restore the children's faith after the horrendous
experiences some of them had been through.
But, of
course, he hadn't actually said he wanted to stay with her. He had only been
putting an arm round her at every opportunity, and wanting her to go with him
wherever he went, and . . . Judit swallowed her disappointment.
"Can't
ditch my buddies," Gill said. "We've always been a team, the three of
us. Calum and Rafik need somebody with some muscle to do the heavy jobs, and
somebody with some common sense to get them out of the crazy complications
they're always getting into. I'd be a real jerk if I asked them to buy out my
third of the Uhuru just because I'm a little older than they are and feel like
settling down in a cushy construction job." The words were directed at
Provola Quero, but his blue eyes -were on Judit, begging her to understand.
She
swallowed again and nodded slowly. Of course he wouldn't break up the
partnership. She should have understood that was why he never said anything
about the future, even when he was most enthusiastically demonstrating his
desire for her company in the present. "I wouldn't want a real jerk to ...
work on the project," she said in a small voice. "But perhaps you'll
visit occasionally."
"As
often as I can arrange it," Gill said, a wistful look on his broad face.
"Oftener."
It was
cold comfort, but it was better than nothing, Judit told herself. Anyway, what
did she have to complain about? She had been incredibly lucky in her life so
far. And now, at only twenty-eight, she was being offered the chance to do what
she loved most: working with children, designing their education, overseeing
their welfare, and healing the invisible wounds that she herself knew all too
well. It would be asking too much for the fates to throw in a fortyish,
broad-shouldered, red-bearded Viking throwback as a life's companion in that
work.
Hafiz
Harakamian found the skimmer driver an invaluable source of information. Not only
did he know the day on which Acorna was due to return from Maganos, he claimed
to know the very hour of her return. But he also warned Hafiz that waiting for
her at the shuttle port would not be a good idea.
"Too
many folks wants to see our little Lady of the Lights, now that word's getting
out about her," he warned. "Goin' to be a crowd at the port. If she
comes out in it, you'll never get to her; if she's smart and gets Security to
let her take a back exit, you'll miss her like the rest of 'em."
He
suggested that he bring Hafiz back to the Li residence at the exact time when
Acorna was scheduled to return.
"I
have always preferred to be in place well before anybody else is
expected," Hafiz said with the firmness of a man who had survived the thirty-year
Harakamian-Batsu feud and had negotiated a partitioning of the planetary
business without, like the two elder Harakamians, losing his head . . .
literally. "We will take our position outside the Li mansion two standard
hours before the arrival."
At the
time, this had seemed like an excellent idea. Before the two-hour safely margin
was even one-third past, though, Hafiz Harakamian recognized that his tactical
instincts had been impaired by too many years in the tropical clime of his home
planet. Nobody had mentioned to him that Kezdet's rainy season was about to
begin. Or that the rainy season was accompanied by a biting cold wind from the
northern mountains. And, since it had been warm and sunny until this morning,
he hadn't noticed that this particular skimmer had a leak in the roof and
allowed an irritating draft to whistle through from one ill-fitting window to
the next. He shifted his position so that the worst of the drip would fall on
the driver and told himself philosophically that it was always a mistake to
rely on hired equipment and staff, he should have brought his own people and
transportation. But after the way young Rafik had cheated him over the unicorn
girl, he had rather wanted to pull off this coup singlehanded-the way he'd done
in the old days, before he became head of House Harakamian. Just to let Rafik
see that the old man wasn't past it yet.
The
iron-studded front doors of the Li residence swung open, revealing the fantasy
of thin-sliced, colorful Illic self-lighting crystals that illuminated the
inner doors. Hafiz admired the play of lights and colors while at the same time
registering that no other skimmer had pulled up; somebody was coming out, not
going in. No need to do anything except slump down in his seat and be inconspicuous.
. . .
A light
tapping on the window beside him was the end of that notion. When he pushed a
button to make the glass sound-permeable, it stuck. Cheap, rented equipment! He
had to physically open the window. A fine cold rain slanted in, accompanied by
a yellow hand holding a holo-card.
"Mr.
Li sends his compliments," said the servant, who, Hafiz noted irritably,
was protected by a rainshield extending at least a foot around his body,
"and suggests that the head of House Harakamian might be more comfortable
keeping him under surveillance from inside the house."
At
least Delszaki Li knew how things should be done between equals. It would
probably be insulting to hint that the sudden disappearance of Hafiz Harakamian
would cause untoward repercussions upon several branches of the Li consortium.
Hafiz insulted the servant anyway, and received a graceful reassurance that
this was merely a social invitation, nothing more. Of course, the man would
have said that anyway. . . . Hafiz grunted agreement and climbed stiffly out of
the rented skimmer.
"Wait
here," he told the driver.
He
could perfectly well have called up another and better-quality skimmer when he
was ready to leave, but after the miserable hour he'd just spent, it suited him
to think of the skimmer driver sitting and shivering in his drafty vehicle.
Besides, in delicate business negotiations, there was always the possibility
that one might have to depart in haste, omitting the usual polite formalities
of leave-taking.
The
servant extended his personal shield to cover Hafiz on the short walk across
the street. Once inside the double doors of iron and crystal, he was invited to
hand over his lightly sprinkled turban and outer robe for drying while he took
kava with Delszaki Li.
The
head of the Li consortium was older than Hafiz had expected, considering the
energy with which he directed the galaxy-wide network of the varied Li
manufacturing and financial interests. He looked -with interest at the
shriveled, yellow-faced man in a hover-chair, a blanket covering the wasted
body whose absolute immobility betrayed his growing paralysis, only the
snapping black eyes still showing the life that burned brightly inside. The man
was older than Hafiz by a generation or more, older than any living member of
House Harakamian. Hafiz's sense of danger went up a notch. Unlike some people,
followers of the Three Prophets knew better than to underestimate the aged. In
his long and successful life, Delszaki Li had undoubtedly used, analyzed, and countered
every trick Hafiz knew, and then some.
While
they sipped the first small cups of hot, fragrant kava and murmured
conversational nothings at one another, Hafiz felt his brain working furiously.
There was no point in clinging to his first plan of snatching Acorna, claiming
she was his wife by the Books of the Prophets, and removing her from Kezdet
while the Guardians of the Peace were still asking the religious courts for a
ruling. Not only had he lost the advantage of surprise, but he doubted his ability
to fool Delszaki Li as easily as one could fool or bribe the Guardians. A
straightforward, honest approach was more likely to be successful . . . that
is, a reasonably straightforward and honest approach. His ancestors would
reconstitute their corporeal substances if he let down House Harakamian by
laying all his cards on the table at once.
After
the necessary exchange of condolences from Li on the loss of Tapha and
apologies from Hafiz for the boy's idiotic behavior, he made his first oblique
approach.
"Regrettable
though the death of my son may be," said Hafiz, reflecting on the matter
with little internal regret whatsoever, "it is written in the Book of the
Second Prophet, 'When you embrace your wife or child, be aware that it is a human
being you are embracing; then should they die, you will not be unreasonably
grieved.' As is enjoined upon me by my faith, therefore, I have put aside care
for the dead and am now concerned tor the living. Before his death, Tapha
informed me that my nephew, Rafik, had brought to this planet my young ward,
Acorna, a child whom he kidnapped from my home last year. These rash young
men!" Hafiz sighed with a conspiratorial smile at Li.
"They
will be the death of us with their escapades and exploits, will they not?"
"On
contrary," said Li, his black eyes twinkling, "I find escapades of
young people most rejuvenating force in this ancient life. But Rafik has
brought no child named Acorna here."
"Perhaps
he changed her name," Hafiz suggested. "She is unmistakable-a rarity,
deformed, some would say, but in a most attractive way. Tall and slender, with
silver hair and a small horn in the middle other forehead."
Li's
face creased into a smile and Hafiz let out the breath he had not been aware of
holding. Thank the Prophet, the old man was going to admit Acorna's presence!
"Ah,
you are speaking of the one our people of Kezdet call the Lady of Lights. But
she is not a child. She is a mature woman and no man's ward."
"That's
impossible!" Hafiz protested. "I tell you, I saw the child less than
two standard years ago. She seemed to be about six, then - I mean, she was
six," he corrected himself firmly, remembering that she was supposed to be
his ward and that he would be expected to know her exact age. "Even on Kezdet,
are children of seven considered adults?"
"Ah.
There is concept of chronological age, and there is concept of developmental
age," Li said serenely. "The one whom I know as Acorna is most
assuredly a grown woman. Allow me to show you."
For a wild
moment Hafiz thought that Acorna had been smuggled into the house by a back way
and that Li was actually going to have her brought in; then the holo-paintings
on the far wall dimmed, to be replaced by obviously home-made vids. The image
of a graceful, six-foot-tall Acorna moved, life-sized, across the wall,
plucking flowers in a walled garden, playing with a toddler, gracefully lifting
a long, full skirt to run up a flight of golden limestone stairs.
"Perhaps,"
Li suggested, eyes twinkling at the astounded expression on Haftzs face,
"is not the one you know as Acorna? Perhaps is coincidence of name and
appearance?"
"Impossible,"
Hafiz said. "There can't be two like that."
Nor
could she possibly have grown so fast. The vids must be some trickery. He
decided to forget the argument about Acorna's age and press on to his second
point. He had the skimmer driver to thank for the gossip that gave him this
additional argument.
"It
was most irresponsible of my nephew to bring her to this superstition-riddled
place," he said, "and I shall speak severely to Rafik when I see him.
She is in danger from hired assassins, some possibly actually in government
pay. It is my duty to take her back to a place where she will be kept safe,
loved, and cherished as the unique being she is."
"Perhaps
is not wishing to be 'safe, loved, and cherished' in museum of rarities."
Li smiled. "Perhaps prefers danger and important work which only she can
do."
Hafiz
took a deep breath and counted to thirteen slowly. It would be most impolitic
to accuse his host of talking nonsense. But what important work could a child
like that be doing? This was just another lie to delay him, like those faked
vids.
He had
only reached ten when the door burst open and a short, fair-haired young man
burst in.
"Delszaki,
I think we've got it!" he exclaimed. "Probabilities on this latest
run show a ninety percent chance that it's somewhere in the Coma Berenices
area-" He halted and stared at Hafiz with an expression of horror-struck
recognition. "Ah, that is, never mind, I'll come back later. ..."
"Please."
Li stopped him with a single word. "Do be seated. I feel sure that Mr.
Harakamian will be as interested as I in the results of your research."
The
young man bowed and tried to surreptitiously brush the crumbs off his wrinkled
coveralls. His eyes were red-rimmed, as though he'd been working without sleep
for several nights.
"Delszaki,"
he said, "I don't think you understand. This guy tried to kidnap Acorna
once already."
"Excuse
me," Hafiz said, "I do not believe I have the honor of your
acquaintance."
"Calum
Baird," the young man said. He wasn't so young, now that Hafiz looked at
him closely: late thirties, perhaps. It was the awkwardness and the exuberance
that had misled Hafiz. "And we have met... at your home on Laboue . . .
although you may not recognize me. I was Rafik's senior 'wife,'" he said
with a demure smile. "The ugly one."
Hafiz
burst into uninhibited laughter. "That rascal, how he has tricked me again
and again! Truly a worthy successor to House Harakamian! How did he persuade
you to put on a hijab? You do not look like the sort of man who takes a secret
delight in putting on women's clothing . . . although appearances can be
deceiving. I certainly was deceived."
"Rafik
talked me into it," Calum said. "Rafik, as you may have noticed, can
talk anyone into almost anything."
"Of
course he can," Hafiz nodded. "He is my nephew, after all. The
Harakamian strain runs true in him, at least." Tapha, on the other hand .
. . Oh, well, Tapha was no longer a factor. "But I interrupt. You wished
to tell Mr. Li something?"
An
almost imperceptible nod from Delszaki Li reassured Calum that it was indeed
all right to go ahead.
"I
think we've pinpointed Acorna's home world, sir. Once I normalized the
astronomical data bases ..."
"Home
world?" Hafiz interrupted in spite of himself.
"Yes.
Where her people come from. Of course, she wants to get back to her own
race," Calum said.
"Her
own race? But I thought..."
"That
she was human?" Calum shook his head. "No way. We don't know much
about her background, but the pod she was found in shows that she comes from an
advanced space-faring race with technology far beyond our own in some
ways."
"The
pod she was found in," Hafiz repeated. He seemed to be reduced to
repeating phrases all the time. He didn't like the feeling that everything was
shifting and changing under his feet. "You mean there are others like
her?"
"I
doubt," Calum said, "that it would be possible to sustain a
high-tech, space-faring civilization with a population of less than, say,
several million at the absolute lowest estimate. The need for specialization
alone would preclude any smaller grouping."
"Several
million." By the Three Prophets, he was repeating himself! Hafiz pulled
himself together. "You could have told me this before," he said
severely. "It might have saved us all a lot of trouble."
"I
didn't know where her planet was until this morning," Calum protested.
"Where it probably is, I mean. There's only one way to be sure. Someone
will have to go and see. ..."
The
look of naked longing on his face surprised Hafiz, but he did not have time to
consider what it might mean. Another person had entered, as unceremoniously as
Calum.
"I
might have known you'd be here," Rafik snarled at his uncle as he barged
into the room. "I turned around as soon as I heard a Harakamian ship had
applied for clearance into Kezdet space. It didn't take you long to track down
where Acorna was staying, did it? Well, it won't work! She's not here, and
you're not getting her back to add to your museum!"
"I
am delighted to see you, too, my beloved nephew," Hafiz said urbanely.
"As for the matter of Acorna . . . perhaps we can come to some arrangement
that will be satisfactory to both of us."
"Tapha's
ashes?" "Better a live nephew than a dead son," said Hafiz with
his benign smile.
Rafik's
whole body tensed slightly. "Well, then. I was going to give them back to
you anyway, you know. And the cremation was performed according to the orthodox
rituals."
"I
know that," Hafiz said "Just as I know that you have not really let
that Neo-Hadithian nonsense rot your brain and supplant your decent religious
upbringing."
"How
..." Rafik croaked.
Hafiz
smiled and gestured at Calum.
"Well,
now, boy. You would hardly be letting your senior 'wife' run around without a
hijab if you were truly a Neo-Hadithian, would you? I must admit, you
completely took me in at the time," he went on. He felt he could afford a little
generosity, since Rafik was so completely off balance. It would soften the boy
up for the final agreement. "But I hold no grudge. You have shown me that
you have the true Harakamian mentality."
As
Rafik only goggled at him, Hafiz continued, looking away from the boy so that
his words would not seem too pointed.
"Having
lost my only son, I am in need of an heir. A worthy heir," he emphasized,
"one of my own blood, one almost as clever as I am myself. Such a one
would, of course, have to be trained in the complex affairs of the House.
Training him would be very nearly a full-time occupation for me. I suspect I
would have very little time left to pursue my hobby of collecting . . .
rarities."
Rafik
gulped audibly. "I am committed to finishing the Maganos Moon Base
project," he said at last.
"House
Harakamian honors its commitments," Hafiz said.
"My
partnership with Calum and Gill- "
"Is
it a lifetime contract?"
"It's
not a formal contract at all," Rafik said. "It just, well, things just
worked out well for the three of us together."
"Perhaps,"
Hafiz suggested, placing each word as delicately as a surgeon cutting out
overgrown flesh, "it is now time for the three of you to work apart."
Rafik
glanced at his partner. "Calum?"
"Actually,"
Calum said, "I would rather like to go check out my findings on Acorna's
home planet myself."
"Gill.
. ."
"If
Gill can be compensated for loss of partnership," Delszaki Li said,
"is offer of Mr. Harakamian acceptable to you?"
Rafik
looked sternly at his uncle. "You'll leave Acorna alone?"
"I
will swear on the Three Books," Hafiz said. "Well, then." All
the tension seemed to drain out of Rafik's slender body. "If it suits you
... I, too, will swear on the Three Books to return to Laboue for training in
the ways of House Harakamian-as soon as I have completed Maganos Moon Base . ..
if you will compensate my partners appropriately."
After
some formal haggling, they agreed that Hafiz Harakamian would buy out Rafik's
and Calum's shares in the Uhuru from Gill and would provide Calum -with a
subspace-equipped scout ship from the Harakamian fleet for his search. Rafik
and Calum left, limp with exhaustion from the bargaining session, to revive
their energies with something stronger than kava, while Hafiz and Delszaki
relaxed with the satisfaction of old men who have seen matters properly
arranged.
As soon
as they were well out of earshot, Rafik began chuckling to himself.
"Uncle
Hafiz drives a hard bargain ... he thinks! But if you're really okay with
breaking up the partnership, Calum ..."
"I've
been dying to get out to the Comes Berenices and check my results in
person," Calum said, "but I didn't like to say anything to you and
Gill. Anyway, we're getting a bit old for this asteroid-hopping life. Gill,
too. I think he's about ready to retire into a planetside Job . . . especially
if it's a planet Judit Kendoro is on!"
"And
I," Rafik said with satisfaction, "have discovered considerable
talent for trading during the process of setting up Maganos on a commercial
basis. I had already been thinking what fun it would be to have the Harakamian
assets to play with. We'll go on letting Uncle Hafiz think he's driven a sharp
bargain, though. It makes the old man happy."
Meanwhile,
Delszaki Li and Hafiz Harakamian were enjoying their own interpretation of the
bargain over their third cups of kava.
"My
nephew is sharp," Hafiz chuckled, "sharp enough to cut himself. If he
had not been in such a hurry to extract a promise from me, he would have seen
what I think you had already noticed."
Li's
face crinkled. "That you had no more interest in Acorna, now that she is
believed not to be unique after all?"
Hafiz
nodded. "When this Calum finds her home-and he strikes me as the sort of
obsessed fanatic who will not rest until he has solved the problem-unicorn
people will be as common as Neo-Hadithians. What a fool I should have looked,
collecting and announcing one as a rarity, when shortly thereafter they would
be walking the streets everywhere. But it is well as it ends. I have an heir of
the blood to carry on the affairs of my house, and young Rafik has a settled
position in life. I keep thinking of him as a boy, but he's not getting any
younger, you know."
"None
of us are," Li said calmly. "Yes, but you and I have done our work.
Rafik needs a wife-a real wife," Hafiz smiled, "to give us another
generation of traders for House Harakamian. I will settle the matter as soon as
he comes home."
"I
have no doubt you will," murmured Li, "but might be wise not to
announce plans to Rafik just yet. Leave him illusion of choosing his own woman.
The
team of four returned from Maganos early that afternoon, with vids, datacubes,
construction records, air and water quality analyses, and every other bit of
evidence they could think of to support their contention that Maganos Moon Base
was not just potentially habitable but already habitable.
"Why
must we wait for Phase II?" Acorna demanded of Delszaki Li before she was
well in the door. "The base is in use now. The construction crews are
living there; how can this Tumim Viggers say it is not safe? And there is much
space available within the pressurized sectors. Provola Quero has caused to be
built the very large repair and manufacturing facility which will be wanted
later, only she does not need it at all yet-well, only a tiny bit of it,"
she said with a reproachful glance at Gill's choked-off expostulation. "We
could wall off a small section for repair work and put children's bunks in the rest-use
it for a dormitory until the proper living quarters are completed. Why should
they live so miserably any longer than is absolutely necessary? Further,
Brantley Geram now understands how he can expand the 'ponics system rapidly
enough to cope with a sudden increase in population."
"Acorna
is responsible for that," Pal put in. "While we were there, she found
a nitrogen imbalance in the air, identified a potassium deficiency in the
water, and showed Geram how to triple 'ponics production practically overnight without
destroying the atmospheric balance."
"The
first two things were data that could have been read from instruments, and I am
sure Mr. Geram would have thought of the ecobalancing system on his own if he
had had time," Acorna murmured. "All that is not important,
Pal-please do not interrupt!" She turned back to Delszaki Li, her pale
face glowing with the cool silvery light that showed when she was excited, her
eyes opened so wide that they were silver orbs in her face. "Truly, Mr.
Li, there is no technical problem with beginning to use the base
immediately-not one!"
"Unfortunately,"
Delszaki Li said, "technical problems are not the only ones. The Kezdet
Authority has forbidden us to go forward with Maganos Moon Base, or to add any
more personnel, until is completely satisfied by report of independent
commission that all construction meets Kezdet building codes."
Pal
snorted. "If the match factory where I used to work meets the building
codes, Maganos is so far beyond that it's not even applicable!"
"Match
factory has probably never been inspected by building commission," Li said
gravely.
"Who's
on this independent commission?" Gill demanded. "We can meet with
them right now, show them the data. I'll convince them Maganos meets code, if I
have to ram the cubes down their throats!"
"Members
of commission have not yet been appointed," Li said. "Informed
sources within Department of Public Works say selection and appointment of
commission may take several years." He regarded the four young people-from
his perspective they were all children-benignly. "Is not technical
problem. Is political. Someone does not intend plan to succeed."
"Who?"
Li's
left hand lifted slightly, his approximation of a shrug.
"Many
people profit greatly from exploitation of children on Kezdet. Could be any of
them. Or all of them. But at this time, is still mystery. We know, for
instance, that owner of Tondubh Glassworks has bought two judges and a
subinspector of Guardians. Very well. I pay them better bribe than Tondubh, now
I have them. Child Labor League has list of other corrupt government officials,
paid by this factory or that to ignore abuses of Federation law. But even if we
buy off all minor officials, is still blocked from top. Someone with much power
and position in government is stopping plan. Someone so respectable, and so
well concealed, that even Child Labor League does not know true identity of man
called the Piper."
Gill's
shoulders sagged. "Then what can we do?"
"Do
not despair," Li said. "You have on your side Delszaki Li, veteran of
many years political and financial double- and triple-crossing. Also have now
secured independent services of consultant -with even more experience than Li
in handling corrupt governments, because has run seriously corrupt organization
himself. Hafiz Harakamian."
Gill
turned white. "Get Acorna out of here!"
"Harakamian
no longer wishes to acquire Acorna," Li said. "Talk to Calum and
Rafik. They have much news for you."
But the
talk had to wait, because Chiura got wind of Gill's return. At this point she
came flying down the lift-chute, squealing happily, "Monster Man! Monster
Man!"
"He's
big and ugly, all right," said Calum, who had entered the hall just in
time to catch Chiura executing a flying leap far too soon to reach her
objective, "but don't you think it's a bit over the top to call him a
monster?"
Gill's
face was almost as red as his beard.
"It's
... uh ... a game we play," he explained. By now Jana had arrived after
Chiura and the girls were tugging Gill by both hands toward the lift-chute.
"Umm . . . maybe we can talk upstairs?"
The
talk was again delayed until Gill had been exhausted by chasing Chiura and Jana
around the suite on his hands and knees, roaring like a bull and occasionally
reaching out one large hand to snatch at flying hair or the hem of a kameez,
while they squealed in pretended terror. Even Khetala, who at thirteen
considered herself too old for such games, got caught up in the excitement and
laughed and giggled like the other two.
"He
is giving them back their childhood," Judit murmured under cover of the
noisy game. There were tears in her eyes. "I don't know how to do
that."
"You
never had a childhood." Pal put an arm around his sister's shoulders and
hugged her. "You had to grow up too fast, to save Mercy and me."
She
looked up at the "little brother," who had shot up so fast in the
last years that now he stood half a head taller than her.
"Oh,
Pal, we need Gill at Maganos. The children need him. Can't we persuade Calum
and Rafik-"
"That,"
said Rafik, grinning, "was what we wanted to talk to you about."
"You
want to talk business while Chiura's crawling all over him and climbing his
beard?" Calum muttered under his breath.
"Safest
time," Rafik replied out of the side of his mouth. "He won't turn
violent while he's festooned with kids."
They
explained their arrangement with Hafiz Harakamian, somewhat apprehensively, and
were relieved when Gill's broad face broke into a beaming smile.
"That,"
he said cheerfully, "simplifies everything."
"We
were, um, hoping you'd see it that way," Rafik said.
Gill
looked at Judit.
"That's
a nice living suite Delszaki Li has put into the Maganos design for you. Plenty
of space for two people, wouldn't you say? Think Li would hire a couple to work
with the children, instead of leaving it all on you ? "
"The
proposition would have to be put to him," Judit said, lowering her eyes.
"Well,
then!" Gill made to get up, but he was too weighted down with children to
make it on the first try.
"And
first," Judit said, very demurely, "the proposition would have to be
put to me. I'm old fashioned about these things."
Gill
looked at her.
"Me,
too," he said, "and I draw the line at proposing to you in front of
two minors and a gaggle of giggling kids."
"Then
we'll have to do it for you," said Calum and Rafik in unison.
Calum
went down on one knee in front of Judit. Rafik laid his hand on his heart. Gill
started turning red.
"Dear
Judit," Calum said, "would you do us the immense favor - "
"-and
Gill the great honor," Rafik put in.
"Of
providing a home and family for this poor, old, arthritic-"
"I
am not arthritic!" Gill bellowed. "That trouble with my right knee is
an old sports injury -broken-down, lonely, unloved-" Rafik continued over
Gill's protests.
"Oh,
stop it, you two!" Judit interrupted them. "He is by no means
unloved." She looked meltingly at Gill, -who was now more purple than red.
"But I think he might have a stroke if you don't knock it off."
"Then
you'd better accept him," Calum said promptly. "You wouldn't want to
be responsible for the poor old fellow's demise from apoplexy, would you? A
kind-hearted girl like you?"
"We'll
ask Li to name that suite at Maganos after you," Rafik suggested.
"The Judit Kendoro Home For Stray Miners."
"Get
out of here," Gill roared, having finally divested himself of children,
"and let me propose to my girl in my own way and my own time!" He
shooed Calum, Rafik, and all three children out of the room. "And no
eavesdropping!"
That
the two former partners did not, spoke volumes for their self-discipline and
the fact that they had both decided Gill and Judit were exactly suited to each
other.
Each
went down the lift-chute with a much lighter heart to see what they could do to
solve the major problem now facing the Maganos Moon Base scheme.
"Bribery
will only get you so far," Rafik said. "I suspect there is more at
stake than money or prestige or mere power."
"There's
nothing 'mere' about power, Rafik," Calum said in a sudden fit of
depression, brought on as much by the happy scene being enacted in the
children's quarters as anticipation of facing an unknown quantity of opponents.
It
couldn't just be this mysterious Piper person, not when Mr. Li was confounded
by the machinations behind the scenes.
"Well,
what Mr. Li can't find out. Uncle Hafiz can."
"Don't
you mean Papa Hafiz?" he said almost snidely.
"Uncle,
smunckle, papa doppa," Rafik said, shrugging indifferently, "we are
both Harakamians and nothing will daunt us!" He raised a fist in respect
of his determination as they reached the door leading to Mr. Li's domain. The
fist altered and its knuckles rapped most circumspectly for admission.
During
their absence in the children's suite, Uncle Hafiz had joined Mr. Li, and so
had the scruffy man they identified as Pedir, the auxiliary skimmer driver who
had attached himself, limpetlike, to Acorna and Judit for their excursions.
"Ah,
is good you have returned," Mr. Li said. "You know Pedir?"
After
Rafik and Calum had exchanged greetings and seated themselves, Mr. Li
continued. "Is source of much local knowledge and gossip."
"Knows
where a lot of bodies have been buried, you might even say," Uncle Hafiz
added, stroking the chin beard he was cultivating.
"We,"
and Mr. Li's delicate hand gestured to Uncle Hafiz, "who feel is time to
introduce Lady Acorna to society - "
"-such
as it is," Hafiz put in.
"-are
inviting," and he gestured now to Mercy who was seated at the console and
furiously typing away, "every person of wealth and standing in city to
splendid gala banquet and dancing the night away."
"Anyone
who is anyone in Kezdet will come," Hafiz said, "because it will
borne in on them that not to be invited would indicate social or industrial
inferiority to those also on the guest list."
"But
Acorna," Rafik and Calum were instantly on the qui vive, "would be in
jeopardy."
Hafiz
flapped his hand dismissively, grimacing away their caution.
"Not
from this house," Mr. Li said. "Not with so many watching her all
night long with eyes of hawk and claws of tiger."
Hafiz
leaned back in the conformable chair, at almost a dangerous tilt, steepling his
fingers and staring up at the ceiling, a slow smile creasing his face.
"She
will be clad in raiment fit for a princess, a queen, an empress ..." he
extended one hand ceilingward, opening his fingers at the apex, indicating
magnificence beyond imagining, ". . . bejeweled . . . and also," he
pulled his eyes down to his nephew, "warded from every possible danger by
the built-in systems hidden in the jewelry."
"Ah,
ingenious!" and Rafik relaxed into a chair, stretching out his legs,
hooking his thumbs in his belt and preparing himself for whatever pearls of wisdom
and crafty conniving were sure to be revealed.
Calum,
with a droll smile, wandered over to Mercy's desk position and perched on a
stool.
"There
will be music ..." Uncle Hafiz went on.
"Several
groups," Pedir said, "for I am promised to promote three groups and
undoubtedly, once this is noised about, I will have to help others. All worthy
and all good musicians ..."
"Only
good musicians," Mr. Li said, raising a slim finger.
"Only
the very best," Pedir nodded, "for there ain't no bad guys around
here as play well. Get you good extra boys, girls for serving, too."
"I'm
doing that, Pedir," Mercy said, looking up from her screen.
"No
problemo," Pedir said, wriggling both hands to assure her he would not
interfere. "What about a skimmer strike? Would that be any help?"
Mr. Li
shook his head with more vigor than he usually displayed for poor ideas.
"Strike
is ours to do," he said. "A different strike. All will see." Now
he raised his frail arm, closing the fingers to a point, retracting his arm,
then darting it forward in an unmistakably reptilian strike.
Uncle
Hafiz pretended to recoil in terror, his eyes sparkling with amusement. But no
more was said. In fact, Pedir was excused, and so were Calum and Rafik, though
they were enjoined to have the skimmer driver transport them to the most
prestigious tailor in Kezdet, to be measured for masculine finery.
'To
talk of the sumptuousness of the coming evening of Mr. Delszaki Li's
prestigious house," Uncle Hafiz said. He buffed his nails on his lapel.
"I have already commissioned elegant evening attire. Unless you wish me to
deprive you of acceptable female companionship for the entire evening, you had
best look less like camel drivers than you do now."
Rafik
snorted. He had hurried without changing from his usual shipboard gear to Mr.
Li's, and Calum had come dressed as he was because he was uncomfortable in
anything but the casual clothing he was now wearing.
"Come,
Calum," said Rafik, rising, "let us do as we are bid, for if my
dearly beloved uncle has commanded us to appear in sartorial elegance, he will
certainly be willing to pay for the best there is to be had."
While
Hafiz was sputtering about impudent, improvident imps, the two made their
escape, pushing the laughing Pedir ahead of them as Mr. Li cackled in
appreciation of the taunt.
"I
have finished the list, Mr. Li," Mercy said, instantly diverting them to
the more important task of contriving a most exhaustive guest list.
Mr.
Li's house was more than adequate for such a social evening, but rooms long
unused for entertainment had to be turned out, refurbished in the newest fads,
decorated in the latest color schemes, and exotic viands ordered from all over
the galaxy. "Is going to be a legend in this time, this evening," Mr.
Li often said while Uncle Hafiz fervently seconded him, but had to be
discreetly restrained from providing a few bizarre entertainments. "Is not
to distract guests from main purpose of all this, good friend Hafiz."
"True,
true." Though Hafiz sighed, remembering the most amazing contortionist act
he had happened to catch at one of the more elegant of the casinos on Kezdet,
stimulating jaded tastes and appetites.
The
invitations, miracles of calligraphy and illustration in their own right, were
dispatched to the recipients, and shortly it became difficult to manage
necessary calls from Mr. Li's house to suppliers, merchants, and even
acquaintances.
Acorna,
accompanied by a glowing Judit and a more sedately excited Mercy, made many
trips to the couturier -who had been chosen, of the many available, to supply
their gowns. Excitement was high in that establishment, which had made certain
that every other couturier in Kezdet realized how much they had lost by not
securing these commissions. Acorna was often so besieged by those wishing her
miracles that Rafik and Calum joined them at the dressmaker's.
Rafik
was actually helpful, for he had inherited, among other things, Calum said
sourly, the Harakamian dress sense and was able to comment knowledgeably about
fit, line, and color.
The
jewels were, however, left to Uncle Hafiz, who had sent for skilled craftsmen
as well as the raw materials of precious metals and uncut gems, and supervised
the styles and elegance of what each girl would wear. That special adornments
were also being made for Mr. Li's evening banquet was discreetly mentioned and
several invitees finally decided to attend upon hearing that news.
Calum
and Gill had been busy, too, with electronic and engineering effects which would
guard the already well-guarded Li household. They even did their best to
protect against such ingenuities as contact poisons, sleepy powders, and other
deadly elements. Special beams could render the most popular of these
substances neutral. Not that Acorna could not neutralize venom but they wished
to avoid such problems in the first place.
And so
the great day arrived, and the coiffeurs came with their preparations and oohed
and aahed over Acorna's magnificent mane. Her gown had been cut to free her
hirsute splendor and a tiara had been designed to crown that silvery glory.
(One of the many jealous females was later heard to swear that Mr. Li's ward
had had to be glued into her costume, for how else could it have stayed
anchored so firmly when she gyrated on the dance floor.) The dark hairs of both
Judit and Mercy were also teased into fetching styles, but nothing outre, since
quiet elegance suited them better, and as a foil for Acorna's unusual
appearance.
Khetala,
Chiura, and Jana watched, almost as glued to their vantage seats in the
"tiring room," speechless with the beauty they were seeing, and the
subtle ways which natural loveliness could be enhanced. They had received
permission to watch the guests arrive and were to receive the same foods that
would be served for dinner.
"So
you can feast even as we do," Judit explained. "There will be so many
people, small persons like yourselves would get lost and that might be
scary."
Khetala
had agreed. She still liked lots of space around her and felt safe around
strangers only if her "uncles" were nearby.
Chiura
had put behind her all the terrible memories which still woke Jana, sweaty and
trembling in the night. She was forever leaving her little bed and creeping in
with Kheti for comfort. But she was truly excited about the party and knew
exactly where she could crouch, unseen, on the first landing of the great
stairs and see everyone arriving.
Finally
the ninth hour came, an hour which the fine clocks in their niches, corners,
and surfaces celebrated with melodious, arrogant, or demure chimings. At
precisely the third stroking of the hour, the front door was opened to receive
the first guest, a very minor official and his wife, splendidly garbed for the
occasion. Jana didn't think much of her dress: the color was garish and the
flickering light display adorning the neckline made her look like a washed-out
sketch. On the stroke of the ninth, another minor official, his wife, oldest
son and daughter, were admitted. Jana liked -what the daughter -was wearing-the
very prettiest shade of pale blue-though it didn't really suit the girl. Her
shoes, with their very high heels, studded with sparkling jewels, and straps
that started at her toes and went up to her knee, were nice.
The
trickle of guests became a rivulet and then a river, with no time to close the
door between their comings. Kheti and Chiura got bored with looking at what
people were wearing, but Jana feasted her eyes on the colors, the patterns, the
combinations, the swags and the trimmings, the feathers and the furs. She could
not quite believe there could be so many variations of dress and suit: she, who
had lived much of her life in darkness, in a black to gray environment, lapped
up all the colors as a desert dweller would drink from an oasis.
Then,
he stood in the doorway. Jana was frozen with fear. Kheti and Chiura had left
their positions -when the undermaid had called them to eat their share of the
banquet. Not that Jana could have uttered a word. She could only stare at him,
seen in the bright lights, in a deep blue suit which gave off subtle glitters,
with a white-white shirt collar barely showing at the neck of it. But it was
he, and he was here where she thought she could be safe.
Rigid
with terror she watched as Mr. Li greeted him and introduced him to Uncle
Hafiz, who introduced Acorna, who smiled and made Judit and Mercy and Pal known
to him in this silly ritual they had been performing for every guest that
entered the house. Nearly fainting, she saw Gill and Judit usher him into the
main salon, where he passed from her sight. Then she collapsed in a little
heap.
That is
how the undermaid found her when she went to collect the third of her charges
for the evening.
"He's
coming for us," was all Jana could say when she first recovered from her
faint. "We've got to hide Chiura."
"Who?"
"He's
here. I saw him. They invited him."
There
could be only one "him" who would elicit that terrified note from
Jana. Kheti's face went gray. "The Piper?"
Jana
nodded. She snatched up Chiura, eliciting a wail of protest as the little one
was seriously involved with the tray of sweets, and wrapped both arms around
her as though to shield her with her own body.
"We
have to get away," she whispered. "The lift-chute's too dangerous, it
lets out in the front hall. The windows - "
"Wait!"
Khetala sank down on the floor, not quite as gracefully as she had been trained
to do by Didi Badini; her knees were trembling too hard for that. "Let me
think."
Jana
crammed sweets into Chiura's mouth randomly, to keep her happy while Kheti
thought. She was shocked, though, when Khetala reached for a jellabie and bit
into the sweet, crystallized-honey crust.
"Is
this a time to be stuffing your face?"
"Sugar
helps when you got the shakes," Khetala said. "You eat something,
too. Even if we do run - "
"We
have to. Now!" Jana interrupted.
"Even
if we do, you won't run far on an empty belly. You eat. I'll think."
Khetala
washed down the jellabie with a long drink of iced madigadi juice while Jana
obediently picked at a witifowl pastry. Each crumb seemed as if it would choke
her.
"Now
then," Khetala said at last. "I been thinking. The Lady Acorna is
good. She wouldn't invite the Piper here."
"I
tell you, I saw him! The gray man who came to the mine with Didi Badini. Ain't
he the Piper?"
Kheti
nodded and folded her hands to conceal the shaking of her fingers.
"Oh,
yes. I heard him talking to Didi Badini, many and many a time, when she had me
locked in that closet where they keep - Well, never mind that," she
interrupted herself hastily. Jana didn't need to know about Didi Badini's dark
closets and the means she employed to make sure new girls would be docile when
she finally let them out. "I got to hear him talk again to make sure,
though. If it is him ..." she shivered ". . . it's bad. Very bad.
See, I don't think they know who the Piper really is. He's got himself another
name for this side of Celtalan. I heard them talking about it the other day.
It's a big secret, the Piper's real name. Maybe the biggest secret in Celtalan.
If he finds out we've seen him here-" She mimed slitting her throat.
"Best we could hope for is he kills us quick. He ain't taking us back to
the mines, Jana. He ain't taking us anywhere. Did he see you?"
Jana
shook her head. "He went straight into that big room with all the lights
and pretty ladies." "Did the Lady Acorna go with him?" Jana
shook her head again.
"Good," Kheti murmured. "She should be all right here,
anyway. He wouldn't do anything to her here, where he's passin' under his real
name."
"What
would he do to her?"
Khetala
looked at Jana pityingly.
"He
wants her killed, too. He told Didi Badini she's making too much trouble here
on Kezdet, getting the bond kids and the Child Labor League all stirred
up."
Jana
stiffened and squeezed Chiura so hard that the sleepy child cried in protest.
"You didn't tell me that before!"
"Told
Delszaki Li," Khetala said. "He knows. He's been seeing that the
Lady's safe. Why do you think he sent her off to Maganos? I heard them talking
about that, too. I hear a lot."
Jana
went unerringly to the weak point in Khetala's argument.
"But
he doesn't know the Piper is that dressedup man I saw downstairs. Nobody knows.
You said that yourself. So he doesn't know the Piper is here, in this house.
How can he keep the Lady safe if he doesn't know?" She felt more
frightened than she ever had in her life, more than when Siri Teku came at her
with the whip that last time. She'd thought she might as well die then, she was
hurt so bad and Chiura was gone. But the Lady Acorna had made her live again
and had brought her back to Chiura. Debts had to be paid. Jana forced the next
words out. "We got to warn her."
"We'll
find Mr. Li. Or somebody we can trust," Kheti said sharply to force down
her fear at the idea of going among all those strangers. "But I still
think he won't move against her now, in this house, where everybody knows him
by his real name!"
"He
could put poison in her food or something." As none of the children had
experience with Acorna's ability to detect poisons, this seemed all too
probable to Khetala as well as to Jana. "Or maybe he's going to lure her
out into the garden and there'll be a bomb. Or ..." Jana's invention failed.
What did it matter? She only knew that the Lady Acorna, her lady, was in
terrible danger and she had to do something about it. Even if she was so scared
all she wanted to do was hide and cry. "Come on. We got to warn her!"
She
stood up with some difficulty, because Chiura had become frightened by the
older girls' evident tension and was refusing to let go of her "Mama
Jana."
"He
sees us," Khetala said, "we're dead. You know that?"
"I
know that," Jana said, wishing her voice wouldn't wobble so much.
"But I got to go. She took me out of Anyag." She gave Khetala a
scornful look. "You want to, you can stay here. Maybe the Lady didn't take
you out of Didi Badini's bonk-shop. Or maybe you forgot already? "
But
Kheti was on her feet now.
"You're
an idiot, Jana," she said, sighing, "but I can't let you go and be an
idiot all by yourself. Got in the habit of taking care of you little kids too
long ago, I guess. Come on. Let's go and get ourselves killed, if that's what
you gotta do. Only let's leave Chiura here. He don't need to know about
her."
But
Chiura -wound her arms tighter about Jana's neck -when Jana tried to set her
down, and screwed up her pretty face in the grimace that they knew was
preparatory to one of her earpiercing screams.
"All
right, all right," Jana hushed her, "you can stay with me. But you
got to be real quiet, you understand? Quiet like a ghurri-ghurri, like a
shadow, like you're not even there. Or Piper'll get you."
To
Chiura, the Piper was just a name used to frighten her into acquiescence, like
Old Black, who lived down in the bottom of the mines and ate little girls for
breakfast. So she was scared enough by the threat to hush up, but not scared
into screaming hysteria.
Acorna
was in fact in the garden, where (under the watchful eye of Hafiz Harakamian)
she had retreated from the noise and social chitchat of the party to talk with
some of Delszaki Li's distinguished guests about matters of more importance to
her.
"Is
not only social occasion," Li had instructed all his people. "Is
testing of the waters. Must talk little, listen much, try to find source of
highgovernment secret opposition. Perhaps head of Public Works says, 'Is not my
doing, gracious lady, is warning from Orator of the council that would be
unwise for political appointee such as myselt to further projects undesirable
to certain of his constituency.' Perhaps orator of the council says,
'Having
duty to protect interests of glass-working and related industries.' Then
perhaps we say, 'Aha! Is looking closer at Tondubh Glassworks.' Only example,
you understand," Li had said, almost purring. "Personally, do not
expect to find source of opposition in Tondubh. Have already bought most of
judges and public servants bribed by Dorkamadian Tondubh. He is cheap man, does
not pay workers, does not even make good bribes. But perhaps you find some
other thread. Listen! Listen! And if must talk, then be obnoxious."
"Why?"
Pal had queried.
"How?"
That was Calum, who looked more interested than alarmed at this suggestion.
"Accuse
justicers of taking bribes, claim that politicians are put in office by
industrial interests, hint that civil servants are in second service of the
Piper. See who looks nervous and changes subject. All people here are wishing
to be seen as respectable, good people, personally obeying Federation laws as
well as Kezdet local law. Someone is not. Be offensive, my children." He
smiled seraphically. "Someone already hates us. Be charitable. Give him
good reason to hate and fear us."
Acorna
did not feel that she had any real talent for offending people, so she had been
dutifully following Li's first directive and listening. But she doubted she
would learn anything from this particular conversation except that Dork Tondubh
lived up to his nickname and that Tumim Viggers, head of Public Works, and the
politician Vidra Shamali were equally smug, self-satisfied, and impervious to
suggestion. All three of these social and political leaders of Kezdet society
-were more than happy to stroll in Li's exotic gardens with a lovely young
lady, even if she did have an odd protuberance in the middle of her forehead.
Acorna had followed Li's suggestion and, instead of trying to disguise her
physical differences for this party, had accentuated them. Her tight sheath of
Illuc spidersilk showed off the lean, flat planes of her body; a spiral of
jeweled ribbons accentuated her white horn. The result had been exactly as Li
had predicted: after a few surprised looks, the haut monde of Celtalan had
decided that anything so flamboyantly displayed must be an asset, not a
deformity. ("It's a feature, not a bug," Calum had said sardonically,
and when questioned, added, "Old Earth saying. I'm not sure exactly what
it means.")
Unfortunately,
the avuncular tone adopted by Dork and Tumim was not likely to give Acorna any
results except extreme boredom and a growing desire to turn around and kick
them where it would do the most good with her sharp, hard feet. As for Vidra,
at least she wasn't accompanying her lecture with the sleazy looks and
surreptitious touches Dork added to his talk, but the bossiness of her manner
more than made up for that.
At
present all three were happily "explaining" to Acorna exactly why it
was impossible to eradicate Kezdets practice of child labor and why employers
should be considered charitable guardians rather than slave owners.
"Of
course there are children around the glassworks," Dork said. "It's
hot work, there among the furnaces. The workers need water; the children bring
it to them."
"I
saw a little boy running among the furnaces with a seven-foot iron rod loaded
with molten glass," Acorna said.
Dork
made a mental note to ream out the security guards at Tondubh for ever letting
this pretty thing inside the compound. She hadn't just been giving away shoes;
she'd been noticing things. He shifted to his second line of defense.
"Alas,
yes, there have been some lapses. You must understand, my dear, Kezdet is an
undercapitalized economy. Our people must work to eat. What can we do when parents
bring their children to the factory and beg for work? Should we let them
starve?"
"Don't
wrap it up in pretty ribbons. Dork," said Vidra in her harsh voice.
"The glass industry on Kezdet requires children. Adults can't run so fast
with the molten glass. If Dork and others like him didn't hire children, not
only would those poor families starve, but production would go down."
"That's
true," Dork said with more animation. "Profits might drop by as much
as thirty percent. I have a duty to my shareholders, you know."
"Yes,
it if expensive having workers whom you have to pay and provide medical care
for." Acorna smiled agreement. "Still, most industrial planets manage
it." She thought she could get to enjoy Li's instructions on being
offensive, after all. "What's wrong with Kezdet, that you people can't
figure out how to run a factory without slave labor?"
"Now,
now, dear, do not upset yourself," Tumim Viggers counseled her. "You
are young and a stranger to our ways, and perhaps those terrorist zealots of
the Child Labor League have been telling you misleading stories. The fact is
that the few children working on Kezdet are very "well treated. They are
fed and lodged at their employer's expense, have years of free training in
their chosen career, and enjoy the knowledge that their earnings are sent home
to help support their beloved families. Why, if you sent a team of Federation
inspectors to any of our mines or factories, I do believe the children would
run away and hide rather than be taken away! They love their work, you see, and
the overseers are like parents to them."
"Possibly,"
Acorna agreed. "I understand that some parents also beat their
children."
Tumim
Viggers sighed. "There may have been excesses. It is no easy matter to
train and discipline young children, but I assure you, they are learning
lessons which "will be invaluable when they grow up."
"How
many of them do grow up?" Acorna asked in a tone of bright interest.
Tumim
Viggers chose to ignore that question. "Child labor is one of the harsh
realities of life on an overpopulated, underdeveloped planet. Extremist groups
like the CLL only make matters worse. Why, if we were to eradicate all child
labor on Kezdet tomorrow, what do you think would happen?"
"I
don't know," said Acorna brightly. "Why not try it and find out?
"
She
rose, then. "I must really circulate, but it has been so nice to get to
know you better. Do enjoy the garden. The night-blooming scented plants are in
that corner."
"Do
show us exactly where?" Tumim said and reached for her arm, a maneuver she
evaded by swaying away from him and out of reach.
As she
walked back toward the house, she happened to glance up at the windows and saw
three figures hurrying down the staircase: three figures that ought to have
been fast asleep in their beds, stuffed with all the food and sweets she had
asked to be sent to them. Where was the undermaid who was supposed to watch out
for them? If they should be seen . . .
She
hurried inside and spotted Calum, who had a desperate look on his face: the
anorexic daughter of the shipping magnate she had met in the receiving line was
clinging to his arm with a death grip. Acorna gave him the old EVA danger sign.
He peeled the girl off him and, muttering some sort of an apology, he made his
way quickly to Acorna.
"The
children are up. They must not be seen," she said in an urgent undertone.
"On the stairs. If I go up . . ."
"Leave
it to me."
The
skeleton had clattered after Calum, but Acorna intercepted her, taking her by
the arm.
"I
do hope you are enjoying yourself this evening, Kisia," she said,
fortunately recalling her name and steered her toward the refreshment table,
where a new display of subtleties and delights had just been arranged.
"With your father so prominent in the shipping industry, do you get a
chance to travel to far-off planets and places? Or are you forced to remain
here in a dull school?"
Kisia
stiffened and almost sneered up at Acorna. "Fraggit, but you know nothing,
do you? School? I've been a qualified navigator for three years. The only
reason I'm at this party at all is because the whole family got invited. And
then you have the nerve to skive off with the only interesting chap here."
"An
errand only he could do for me," Acorna said, "and see, here he is
back."
However,
Calum grabbed Acorna by the hand and pulled her so close to him that Kisia
swore, more as a deckhand than a navigator might, and flounced off to find
another target for her attentions.
"They're
terrified. They've seen the Piper here."
"They
have? They could identify him?" Acorna looked around the room for Mr. Li's
hover-chair or Uncle Hafiz, trying to hide the terror she felt. Calum peeled
her hands off his arm.
"Khetala
and Jana are both certain, but they're terrified for your sake. They're afraid
he's here to kill you."
"Here?
In front of everyone?" Acorna ridiculed the notion. "Not
likely."
"You'd
still be dead, sweetie pie," Calum said soberly. "Besides which, very
few people here are enchanted with your interference with their profitable
operations employing child labor."
"Then
why did they come?" she asked, annoyed as well as frightened. Dreadful
people. Smile at your face and pull a stunner once your back was turned.
Although, where many of those present could hide anything in the sleek,
tightfitting garb that was currently fashionable, she did not know. Very little
was left to the imagination, and one could count spine ridges and ... all sorts
of things. She could have appeared at this dinner clad in only her own skin and
given away nothing of her gender, but these people covered it all up and then
flaunted what they covered.
"They
came for the food and to say they had been here tonight. Mr. Li is excessively
pleased with the turnout, but I must go tell him that the children can identify
the Piper. That will be one more obstacle out of our way, so we can find out
where you really belong." Calum grinned up at her and then squeezed her
hands. "I'll go tell them. You circulate."
He gave
her a little push toward the nearest clutch of chattering men and women. Kisia
intercepted her.
"My
father wishes to speak with you, Acorna. He says you've been avoiding him all
evening."
There
was a remarkable strength in her skeletal arms as she towed the taller girl
past the nearest group and toward a quartet, which mercifully included Uncle
Hafiz. Acorna stopped resisting.
Hafiz
rose and kissed her cheek. "You are more beautiful every time I see you,
Acorna. Here is Baron Commodore Manj'ari and his wife, Ilsfa, wanting to meet
you. The baron claims he ships anything and everything, anywhere in the known
galaxy. And, as I'm sure you realize, Acorna, the baroness's family, the
Acultanias, were one of the first to settle Kezdet and recognize its importance
in this sector."
The
baroness smiled a social smile, while stuffing her face with the dainty petit
fours on the table beside her. Baron Manjari rose courteously to his feet and,
removing his hand from his pocket, patted his lips before he reached for Acorna's
proffered hand. He didn't look very impressive, Acorna thought: medium height,
spare build, which might account for his daughter's anorexic-looking body. He
had very piercing eyes and a gaze that wished to penetrate her skull. She
managed to suppress a shudder as he brought her hand to his mouth. Instead of
miming a kiss above the skin, he planted a very moist one on the back of her
hand.
"Charmed,"
he said, drawling in an oddly dry voice, almost a whisper, as if he had some
impediment in his throat. "I have been waiting all evening to have a few
words with you."
As he
released her hand, she began to feel unwell and, with the pretext of mending
her coiffeur, brushed her hand to her horn. She could feel it tingle through
her forehead and the poisonous kiss, for that was what it had been, was
neutralized. Baron Manjari might have ships that traversed the known galaxy and
be able to find contact poisons undetectable by Li's guard beams, but he had
never encountered one of her species. Her problem now was how to react to
having just been given an undoubtedly "lethal" dose of poison.
She
noticed that he now brought out a handkerchief to blot his treacherous lips,
and then a small pill box, explaining as he withdrew a tiny white oval, that it
was time for his medication.
"I
did not mean a discourtesy," Acorna began with social civility, nodding to
the baroness, who was having a hard time deciding which small delicacy to try
next. "The littlest ones are filled with raspberry liqueur," she
said, and got a blank look from the woman and almost a sneer from the baron.
"I think I should sit for a few moments," Acorna said abruptly to
Uncle Hafiz, who immediately handed her into the chair he had just vacated.
She
began to rub her hand, as if unconscious of what she was doing. She caught the
avid expression in the baron's eyes and the tension in his wife's bare
shoulders. "Uncle, a glass of something cool, please?" she said
making her voice rise with urgency.
"Of
course."
Acorna
used the ornate fan that dangled from her left wrist. "I don't know what's
come over me."
"Why,"
Ilsfa leaned toward her, one hand outstretched to touch her knee, but Acorna
managed to avoid the contact, "I expect it's no more than any young girl
experiences during her introduction to society. Why, my Kisia was a nervous
wreck until the evening had started, and then she danced all night."
"Really?"
Acorna managed politely in a soft voice. Should she be feeling weak so soon?
"Here
you are, m'dear," Hafiz said, offering her a glass of the madigadi juice
he knew she liked, so cold the glass was beaded with moisture.
She
drank it all down, hoping thirst was one of the symptoms of the poison working.
The baron looked so satisfied that she was sure it must be.
"Just
what I needed," she said gaily, and rose. "So nice to have had a chat
with you but, before I find I have inadvertently ignored some one else, I
really must circulate. Come, Uncle Hafiz, there is someone I want you to
introduce me to ..." and she pulled him away despite an initial protest.
"That
man just tried to poison me," she muttered in Hafiz's ear. "Keep
walking. Do I fall down in a faint, or just collapse somewhere? A contact
poison. He had a very slimy kiss."
"By
the beards of the Prophets!" Hafiz began, and tried to pull loose from her
to deal suitably with Baron Commodore Manjari. "No, he may be the
Piper." "Oh!"
"Where
is Mr. Li? We must inform him." "Who identified him? There are many
people here who might wish to poison you."
"Khetala
and Jana. They watched the guests entering and saw the Piper among them.
They've been quaking with terror ever since, but they overcame their fears to
warn me. Well, actually, they found Calum and he told me. Who else would want
to poison me?" Acorna demanded.
"Just
about every man and a good many of the women here tonight," Uncle Hafiz
said, and signaled the butler.
Acorna
wondered if the man had been cloned, or was one of triplets, for he had been so
assiduous in his duties.
"Hassim,
no one is to leave yet," Uncle Hafiz said in an undertone. "And where
is Mr. Li at this moment?"
The
butler indicated the card room with a discreet gesture and glided toward the
front door, deftly opening the panel and tripping a switch that would close
every exterior door and the garden exits.
Mr.
Li's hover-chair was surrounded by some of the loveliest women at the party and
not a single man. He was obviously enjoying himself, and the women were
laughing at some joke when Hafiz, smiling to see the quality of the company he
was about to join, approached.
"Ah,
but ladies, your glasses are empty. Come to the table and I will pour for you
all."
That
left Acorna free to inform Mr. Li of her suspicions as well as the children's
ability to identify the dread Piper.
"Take
them to my study. Tell Hassim to secure the house. Immediate confrontation now.
Who?" And Mr. Li stared at her as he suddenly assimilated the information
he had just been given. "Not . . . how extraordinary! Is most remarkable.
Is last man this person would suspect."
"That's
often how it is, isn't it? But how do we entice him to the study? I am supposed
to be dying of his poison. Will he not suspect?"
"Is
my job. Get children. Get to study. Hafiz?" and he drifted his chair.
"You forgive?" He beamed back at the ladies even as he was moving out
of the room, with Hafiz almost running after him. "I give beep call and
assemble cavalry."
Acorna
had already disappeared up the staircase, Calum taking the steps two at a time
with Rafik trying to keep up.
Judit
intercepted them at the stairs. "What is the matter?"
"Oh,
is nothing. Keep guests happy," Mr. Li said. "Is that not Baron
Manjari I see? No chance yet to show him my new acquisitions. Is now the
time."
Judit
was too well trained to ask what new acquisitions, and obediently followed the
hoverchair to where the baron commodore, wife, and daughter, were now standing,
his expression slightly smug, theirs rebellious.
"Ah,
dear Mr. Li," the baron said as suave as ever. "We were about to take
our leave of you. Your lovely Acorna has only just left us to our own
devices."
"She
asks me to show you mine, is all," Mr. Li said and, laying one finger
along his nose, winked at his guests. "Have only just acquired." His
finger now bridged his lips to indicate secrecy. "You travel much and can
advise me on how to keep all safe."
"Surely,
Mr. Li, you have no need of my advice?" the baron commodore said.
"Ah,
but is to see my treasure first and then advise. We go now. Ah . . . some
devices not suitable for ladies, you understand?" Li added in an
undertone. "My Judit will entertain lovely wife and daughter while you
come with me."
There
was something in the tone of the old gentleman that made it impossible for
Baron Commodore Manjari to refuse. With an apologetic shrug toward his
womenfolk, he followed Li's hover-chair to the study, at the far end of the
house from the glittering party. Hafiz unobtrusively followed to make sure the
baron was cut off from any possible allies who might notice their exit.
The
children were gathered in the study, Chiura half asleep in Acorna's lap and the
other two holding tightly to her dress. When the baron entered after Li,
Khetala gasped and backed behind Acorna, but Jana jumped in front of her
protectively. "Don't hurt her!"
"My
dear little girl," the baron said in his slightly hoarse tone, "why
would I wish to harm this lovely young lady?"
At the
sound of the dry, husky voice, Khetala gripped Acorna's shoulder.
"It's
him," she said, her own voice no more than a thread. "He always
whispered before. But I know him. I do!"
"So
do I," said Jana.
Chiura
woke up, looked at the baron's face, and wailed in fright.
"Piper!"
she shrieked, trying to burrow into Acorna's lap.
"The
Piper," Jana said. "You came with Didi Badini and took my Chiura
away-but we got her back!"
"The
Piper," Khetala confirmed. "You came with Didi Badini and took me to
her bonk-shop."
The
baron sputtered, gobbled, and turned red. "Nonsense!" he finally
managed to rasp. He turned to Li. "You'd take the word of these
ragamuffins from the mines against a man of good family? I've never seen these
children before."
"You
spoke with Didi Badini many times," Khetala said firmly. "I
remembered your voice. There was not much to think about in the closet where
she kept me. I remember all the words you have said, from the day when Siri
Teku sold me to you until the day the lady rescued me. Do you want me to repeat
all I heard you say? "
"Ridiculous!"
Baron Manjari said. "This is a tissue of fabrications, and I can prove it!
The child at Anyag had a whip scar on one cheek ..."
His
voice rustled to silence, like a pile of dry leaves when the wind ceases to
stir them. Delszaki Li and Hafiz Harakamian, one on each side of him, let the
silence draw out.
"Interesting,"
Li said finally, "that you know these children came from Anyag."
The
baron made a gesture of denial. "I must have seen them ... a business trip
. . . arranging shipping discounts. . . ."
"A
clerk's task, one would think," Li said. "The Lady Acorna healed my
scar," Khetala said. "But she cannot heal you."
Chiura
twisted round to face the man who had haunted her baby nightmares, the man who
had played with her and tormented her in the skimmer that took her away from
Mama Jana. She kept one hand firmly twined in the silvery curls of the Lady
Acorna, who had brought Mama Jana back to her. All three children stared
unblinking at the Piper, their eyes a silent accusation.
Finally,
Baron Manjari looked away. "No one will believe this story!"
"You
wish to make experiment? " Li asked.
"Be
seated, Baron," Hafiz invited. "We have some serious discussion to
do." He nodded at the children. "Should not these little ones be in
their beds, Delszaki? It offends me that they should continue to breathe the
same air as this camelsucking filth."
None of
the children felt safe away from Acorna, so she too left, taking them upstairs,
where she and Gill told stories and sang songs and promised a thousand times
over that the Piper would never come near them again.
"Why
didn't you tell us at first you had seen the Piper at the mine?" Gill
asked at one point. "You could have identified him from a vid without ever
coming near him."
"Wasn't
sure until I saw him and heard the voice," Khetala said.
"What's
a vid?" Jana asked.
"Poor
little mite." Gill stroked her forehead. "I keep forgetting, there's
so much you've never seen. We'll get a vid player up here for you. You'll love
Jill and the Space Pirated. I've got all the episodes. Acorna loved it when she
was a little girl." Just two years ago, he thought sadly. Well, those days
were gone forever. How could Acorna's people stand seeing their children mature
so quickly? You scarcely had time to love them before they had become tall,
independent strangers.
When
all three girls were finally asleep, the lower floors of the house were dark,
the lights in the hall and gardens dimmed. Acorna rose stiffly.
"I
wonder what's happening? We shouldn't have left. What if he poisoned
them?"
"Calum
and Rafik were with them," Gill pointed out. "I don't think the Piper
was prepared for violence ... at least I hope not. I'll be very annoyed if
Calum and Rafik got a chance to beat the living daylights out of him and I
didn't get my share." He gently disentangled Jana from his coat and beard
and laid her down in her cot, brushing a gentle kiss against her forehead.
"Has
been no violence," said Delszaki Li, appearing at the entrance to the
suite in his hoverchair. "Has been some serious negotiation, but all is
resolved peacefully."
Hafiz,
behind him, was wearing the beatific smile of a man who has just sold thirteen
blind and lame camels for a bale of Illic silk.
"If
I could ever feel sorry for that bastard," Calum said, "I would now.
Anybody caught between Hafiz and Delszaki. . ." He whistled. "I just
hope you two gentlemen don't team up and form the Harakamian-Li consortium.
You'd be ruling the galaxy in no time."
Hafiz
and Delszaki glanced at one another. "Interesting idea," they said
simultaneously.
"Uh-oh,"
Gill murmured to Acorna, "I think we've created a monster. Come on. Let's
leave the kids to get their sleep and find out what kind of deal these two cut
with the blessed baron."
Once
more in Mr. Li's study, Acorna listened intently, but the results of the
negotiations were not entirely satisfactory to her. The price of Baron
Manjari's cooperation was their silence. If he was allowed to retain his social
position, if no whispers of his peculiar habits and his extra sources of income
got out, then they would find that all official constraints on Maganos Moon
Base would be quickly removed. Furthermore, Manjari Shipping would subsidize
the lunar colony by providing free transport for all materials brought to the
moon and all minerals mined there in the next five years.
"Must
give to get," Li said patiently to Acorna. "If we destroy Manjari,
have no hold over him. If we keep silence, can ensure success of lunar colony,
make safe place for children."
"It's
logical," Calum said.
"But
not satisfactory," said Gill.
Rafik
grinned. "Well, think about this. The baron just lost three-fourths of his
income-or will, when we take all the bonded children away and his shipping
company is going to be in the red for five years, if Maganos is as productive
as I expect it to be. And he won't be able to tell the baroness and that ratty
daughter why they're suddenly broke. Does that help?"
"It's
a start," Gill allowed.
"We
will finish," Li said softly, "when children are all safe. Old family
motto: 'The best revenge is revenge.'"
"I
have some ideas," Acorna said.
"You,"
Hafiz informed her sternly, "will stay out of sight until we have the
necessary permits. Remember, you've been poisoned. You're extremely ill and
your life is despaired of. You may even have to die for a while." Acorna
looked shocked and then smiled. "That's right. We don't want Manjan
tempted to have another try at you."
Baron
Manjari was hardly able to conceal his rage and fury after leaving Delszaki
Li's party. Indeed, he hardly bothered to conceal it. His wife and daughter had
learned from long and painful experience how to survive his dark moods. The
baroness thought he was angry because she had eaten too many sweets again, the
girl because she had been chasing after that blond miner instead of making a
push to attach somebody who could be a useful business connection for Manjari
Shipping. The baroness babbled nervously. Kisia sulked, but stayed well out of
range of her father's hand; she had had to explain away too many bruises as
"accidental falls" already. That, she considered, was the price she
paid for the money that had put her through nav training and now paid for the
collection of top-of-the-line fliers and small spacecraft she enjoyed for her
private use. She couldn't actually work as a space navigator; that would be
beneath her family's status. So she accepted the baron's heavy moods,
occasional casual blows, and tight hold over her allowance as the inevitable
inconveniences of life. And she controlled what she could control: the flight
patterns of her ships, and what she put into her body, and how much fear she
displayed when her father went into one of his black spells. She despised her
mother, who stuffed herself with sweets and then apologized that she
"couldn't help it," almost as much as she despised the baron himself.
At least he had some discipline, Kisia thought.
The
baron, brooding over the insults he had just suffered, was all but unaware of
his womenfolks' feelings. They were afraid of him; good, they would not
question him. Not now, anyway. Even if he had to retrench and retire to the
country for a few seasons, his wife would be afraid to ask what had happened to
their lavish income. Kisia, though-Kisia would raise hell when she found out
that he could no longer support a hangar full of private small craft for her
personal amusement. He would have to find some way to shut her up. ... If it
came to that!
But
then, Manjari thought, what were the odds that Li's insane plan would succeed?
He would have to ensure that official blocks to the development of Maganos Moon
Base were removed, but that did not mean the project would be a success. If Li
never managed to get the lunar mining facility in operation, his own expenses
in providing free shipping would be minimal. And Li would never make a go of
the moon base, because he meant to staff it with the bonded children of Kezdet.
Children who had been well trained to hide themselves whenever anybody unknown
to their supervisors came to a compound.
Let him
collect a few strays, Manjari thought. Much good it will do him!
The
system on Kezdet was too well entrenched, the children too well trained in
fearful, unquestioning obedience, for any one man to overthrow it. That
pathetic Child Labor League had not even managed to keep schools going near the
factories to teach the children their letters and numbers. Literate, numerate
workers could read their contracts and calculate their indebtedness and their
wages. Couldn't have that sort of nonsense. Manjari hadn't even had to quash
the schools himself; a word here and there in the ears of the factory owners
most directly affected, and buildings were torched, teaching-vid machines
wrecked, maybe a young idealist beaten up or "accidentally" killed
from time to time to warn anybody else who might have such ideas.
So Li
would make his gesture and collect a few stray children, and he would think
himself triumphant for a little while . . . and finally he would understand
that his plan would not work, could not work. The children would never trust a
stranger.
As for
that deformed girl who was getting some sort of reputation as a miracle worker,
who might have been a figurehead for organized resistance - she would be dead
by morning. By this time the slow-acting contact poison would make her feel
headachy and sleepy. She would go to her bed and fall into a sleep from which
she never woke, and by the time her body was discovered, the traces of poison
would have dissipated.
Mandan
was almost relaxed by the time his personal skimmer reached the heavily guarded
compound where his family and servants lived in walled luxury. He need not
worry overly much. All he had to do was wait . . . oh, and dispose of those
three children. Without his witnesses, Li could prove nothing. And children
were fragile; they died every day in the mines and factories of Kezdet. It
should be easy enough to get rid of those three. Better to wait a little while,
though, until Li thought himself quite safe.
"As
good as his word," Judit said the very next afternoon, as the sheets of permits from every reluctant
inspector streamed from the printer.
"Is
not good his word," Mr. Li said. "Is good as his fear of disclosure.
That works well for men such as this baron commodore. Is there all that are
necessary?"
"I
think so," Judit said, scanning the first sheets. "Pal's doing
something on the other unit, though. Nothing from the baron; just a routine
legal search, he said."
Rafik
reached for the last one to emerge from the printer and worked backward, moving
toward her as he glanced at the official permits, mumbling about which
department and what sector and which quadrant. Then he gave a burst of laughter
as he cavorted about, wrapping himself in the sheets and tearing some of the
peripheries with his antics.
"Stop
it, Rafik, oh stop it. You'll ruin them and we've waited for long to get
them," Judit exclaimed.
"They
came?" Gill burst through the study door, Acorna behind him and the three
girls following her like the train of a bridal gown.
"We
got 'em!" Rafik held the sheets up over Judit's head, wheeling around.
"We got 'em! For once, the baron commodore is as good as his word."
"His
word is not good," Mr. Li repeated, but he was beaming. "His fear
is."
Judit
slapped at Rafik, trying to get him to surrender the rest of the permits. Gill
reached up and deftly nipped them from Rafik's hand. He delivered the slightly
creased sheets, pressing the wrinkles out, into Judit's eager grasp, and she
went back to the console.
"I'll
enter them into our records, and send timed and dated confirmations to the
respective departments," she said.
"My,
there were a lot needed," Acorna said, moving with her three shadows to
observe Judit as she dealt with the necessary procedures. "How much longer
must I stay dead?"
"But
you aren't dead. Lady Acorna," Khetala said, confused.
"I
am as far as the Piper is concerned, sweetie pie," Acorna said, hugging
Khetala to her side. Chiura crept in under her arm, as well, while Jana was
content to stand within arm's reach. "Did you not help Hassim hang the
mourning banners?"
"Is
not to let the little ones out of the house!" Mr. Li exclaimed, anxious.
"Hafiz,
Gill, and Calum were with them all the time, and they were crying most
piteously."
"Kheti
pinched me," Chiura said, rubbing her bottom.
"All
I had to do was think of Siri Teku's whip and I could cry for weeks," Jana
said, rather proud of her performance.
"But
won't I have to be buried?" Acorna asked.
Hafiz
shook his head. "Cremated as befits the first wife of the scion of House
Harakamian," he said, grinning. "I shall carry the urn with me to
repose next to that of my son on my ship when Rafik and I return to Maganos
tomorrow. And you, little ones," and he patted the heads of the three
little girls, "will be among my baggage: the very first to enjoy the
hospitality and safety of the Li Moon Mining Company."
Khetala
clung more closely to Acorna, and Chiura sniffled.
"But
I shall be carrying you," Gill said, wagging a finger at them, "and I
want not a whimper, a tear, or a gasp from you when you are supposed to be
miners' clothing in my sacks."
Jana
giggled at playing at being "clothing" and even Kheti smiled, for all
three girls loved Uncle Gill.
"But
you can't tell stories to clothing?" Chiura asked, her eyes wide with
regret.
"Who
says I can't?" Gill responded, scowling fiercely, and she giggled as he
swooped down and tickled her neck with his red beard.
"I've
work to do and must concentrate," Judit said.
"Is,
after all, office-study," Mr. Li said, trying to look severe. "Rafik
must now call suppliers A to M to be sure they have received permit. Judit do M
to Z." He clapped his hands together to suggest urgency.
"Come,
girls," Acorna said. "We must pack the clothing just so in the
sacks."
Li's
assistants quickly learned that there was no hope of keeping Acorna safely in
the house while they completed the long task of collecting bonded child
laborers from Kezdet's factories, mines, and brothels. Without Acorna, they
could not even begin; the children had been too well trained to hide when
strangers approached the compound, and what with the recent rumors of a horned
goddess coming to liberate the children, most overseers were more stringent.
After
the first frustrating day, Judit and Pal conferred with Delszaki Li. As Calum,
Rafik, and Gill all reported the same inability to get children to come out of
hiding, Li reluctantly agreed that Acorna might go with them the next day.
"But
she is not to waste energy with too much healing," he instructed. "Is
already long task, one person to visit all places. If she exhausts herself with
healing every child, will never complete the work. I send medical team with
you."
"I'm
not worried about Acorna burning herself out," Gill said, "as much as
I am about the baron. If she starts collecting children from the factories, you
know, he's bound to notice she's not dead."
"And
we went to so much trouble with the funeral banners!" Judit sighed.
"Will
speak personally to Baron Manjari," Li said. "No trouble there. But
you watch Acorna!"
And,
with those somewhat contradictory reassurances, they all went together on the
second day. Acorna was eager to go to Anyag first, but Calum had overnight
produced a revised skimmer schedule showing the optimal path to allow them to
clear mines and factories sequentially while making the best use of their
skimmers. Anyag was far from first on the list.
They
began at the Czerebogar carpet-weaving factory, where on the previous day Pal
had found only empty sheds, quiescent looms, and vague talk from the supervisor
of some kind of holiday for the workers-all adults, of course!
Today,
as soon as Acorna stepped out of the skimmer, pale children began collecting
silently in the central compound. They seemed to come out of nowhere, from
cracks in the walls, from shadows. The supervisor cursed them and told them to
get away, that they had no business in his factory. The children seemed not
even to hear him. They moved slowly forward until they encircled Acorna. The
nearest ones reached timidly to touch her with cut and bleeding fingers.
"It
is Lukia of the Lights," one whispered.
Others
repeated, "Lukia! Lukia!" on rising tones until the word became a
song of praise circling the courtyard.
"My
brother," a ragged girl said. She pushed a taller boy forward, guiding him
with both hands.
"Can
you give back his sight, Lukia of the Lights? He had an infection of the eyes
and we had only water to wash them, but it was not enough."
Acorna
caught her breath on a sob, but before she could reach out to the boy, Rafik
had gestured for a med-tech to see to the lad.
"The
infection is reversible, with proper treatment," the tech said. She
straightened and glared at the overseer. "You would have let the boy go
blind for want of a five-credit jar of antibiotic ointment! I am ashamed to be
of Kezdet. But I did not know," she said to Acorna, "one hears
whispers, always whispers, but I did not know ... I did not want to know."
By the
time the flight of hired skimmers, led by Pedir, had collected the last of the
children from the Czerebogar Carpet Factory, the medical technicians hired by
Delszaki Li had all volunteered their services, just as the skimmer pilots had
done after a little encouragement from Pedir.
At
Tondubh Glassworks, the news of Acorna's visit to the Czerebogar factory had
preceded them. They were met by a furious Dorkamadian Tondubh, threatening to
obtain an injunction from Judge Buskomor against any attempt to remove workers
who were legally bonded to work for the glass factory in payment of their
debts.
"I
wouldn't even try," Pal said pleasantly. He ruffled through the papers he
had been printing out from the corn unit two nights earlier. "I recently
performed a routine legal search. We have here . . . no, that's the Vonzodik
statement. . . ah, here we are. This is your sworn statement, attested by
palm-print before Judge Buskomor himself, that no children under the age of
eighteen are employed by any Tondubh concern. Clearly," he said, looking
at the children who had come out, as at Czerebogar, when the word of Acorna's
visit spread, "these children, being well under eighteen, do not work here
and hence cannot possibly be bonded to you."
Acorna
looked at him with delight. So this was what Pal had been quietly working on!
How clever he was! But she didn't have a chance to tell him so just then;
children in filthy rags and clean, nearly new, cheap sandals were pressing all
around her.
"You
came back. Lady Epona," one of them breathed.
"Epona,
Epona," the others repeated in a low rhythmic chant that filled the
compound and echoed from wall to wall until Dork Tondubh covered his ears and
made no more protest against their removing the children.
The
skimmer pilots were busy through the day, flying loads of thin, pallid children
from east of Celtalan to the spaceport, where Judit and Gill awaited them. When
the first children were brought in, Judit gave a triumphant glance at Baron
Commodore Manjari's portside manager.
"Now
do you believe that there are passengers to transport to Maganos?" she
demanded. "Where's the transport the baron promised?"
"I
see you want transport," the manager said, "but the baron din't tell
me nothing about laying it on. 'Sides, our ships are all busy with real
cargo."
"Call
him," Judit said.
The
manager grinned and spat to one side. "Told you, lady. I din't have no
orders, and I don't have no ships."
Gill
took the man's arm.
"I
strongly advise that you accede to the lady's request," he said. The tone
was mild enough, but there was something in the look of his blue eyes - not to
mention the size of the hand grasping the manager's arm-that suddenly made
using the portable com unit to page Baron Manjari seem like a very, very good
idea.
When
Manjari answered, Judit took the corn unit.
"You
were told that ships would be required today to shuttle passengers to Maganos.
Will you honor your undertaking, or ... shall Mr. Li honor his promise to
you?"
The Baron
Commodore refused to believe that Judit and Gill really had passengers for
Maganos until the manager confirmed their statement. Very shortly thereafter
his personal skimmer touched down at the Manjari private pad.
His
face first turned gray when he saw the crowd of waiting children, then slowly
suffused with color as he grasped the meaning of their chatter about the lady
whom some called Lukia and others Epona.
"She's
dead," he insisted, his voice a gravelly protest "Everybody saw the
funeral banners ..." Gill raised
his eyebrows. "The funeral banners? Those were a sign of respect from
House Li to House Harakamian in their mourning for the heir."
"Whatever
could have made you think they were for Acorna?" Judit added with a slight
smile.
"Acorna
is alive and well," Gill emphasized. "And Mr. Li suggests that it
would be best for everybody if she stayed that way." He lowered his voice.
"The children you met the other night are already in a safe place. You
cannot get at them, but they can be brought back to tell all Kezdet who you
really are . . . and if Acorna is harmed in any way you can be very sure we
will bring them back."
The
baron's face sagged, as if the muscles had been suddenly cut, leaving only
unsupported, aging flesh.
"The
Manjari ships are employed elsewhere," he said. The dry voice was once
again level and betrayed no emotion. "I will make . . . alternative
arrangements."
He
spoke into his com unit at some length. Shortly thereafter several things
happened. First, obsequious men in Manjari uniforms arrived to invite Gill,
Judit, and the children to Baron Commodore Manjari's personal storage hangar.
Next, a second Manjari skimmer discharged two women: one short and plump, the
other gaunt to the point of emaciation. The older woman wore a bejeweled robe
and had a look of pleased expectancy on her round face. The younger one was
dressed in unrelieved black and began shrieking before she even got out of the
skimmer.
"Father,
how dare you commandeer my personal ships! They're mine, you said so! To make
up for not letting me have a real job as a navigator, because it was supposed
to be an unsuitable occupation for the Manjari heiress. Anything I wanted, you
said, and when I said I wanted my own collection of private spacecraft, you
said yes. You can't go back on that bargain now!"
She
stared, suddenly speechless in horror, at the dirty, ragged children being led
into her personal skiff with its luxurious interior fittings.
"Hush,
Kisia," Manjari snapped. "I am only borrowing your ships. I would not
do so if it were not absolutely necessary, I assure you!"
"They're
mine," Kisia repeated.
"Then,
Kisia, if you want to keep them, you will allow your father the use of them for
as many days as this takes," Manjari said so firmly that Kisla's narrow
mouth closed on her next complaint. "You have no conception of the
difficulties I face."
"How
should I? You never tell me anything!"
"Well,
I'm telling you now. We face ruin, girl. The House of Manjari is going to lose
three quarters of its income for years to come. Maybe forever."
"Manjari,
what is it?" The baroness touched his sleeve. "What is the
trouble?"
"Oh,
don't bother me. You've never been any use-one child, and that one a scrawny
girl-and you certainly can't help now. Go watch one of your romance vids and
eat a box of sweets and stay out of our way!" Manjari turned back to
Kisla. "You will help me out in this crisis. And we will rebuild the
fortunes of House Manjari. You and I, together, as many years as it takes."
"By
letting these stinking beggars on my ships?" Kisla s thin face twisted in
disgust. "Forget it! You go too far. Father. They'll get bugs on the
upholstery."
"Quite
likely."
"They'll
get space-sick."
"Almost
certainly."
"They're
dirty, and they stink, and some of them are bleeding. They are absolutely
disgusting, and I'm not having any more of them anywhere near my ships. Stop
them, do you hear me? Stop them boarding! Now!"
The
baron cocked his right hand back over his left shoulder, but the baroness was
beside him before he could strike his daughter.
"Wait
a moment, Manjari," she said calmly. "While I do believe that this
once I sympathize with your desire to beat Kisla, there is something she must
know first-and you, too." She looked at the gaunt young woman with
something approaching pity. "Kisla, you would have been one of those
children."
"I?"
Kisla gasped. "You're crazy! I'm your daughter! No child of House Manjari
was ever even close to one of those filthy beggar brats!"
"No
child of House Manjari, true," the Baroness Ilsfa agreed, "but you
see, Kisla, I learned of some of Manjari's more disgusting habits very shortly
after our marriage. There was a little maidservant . . . well, never mind. I
vowed then that I, an Acultanias, descended from the First Families of Kezdet,
would never bear a child to him. But he would not leave me alone until I
produced an heir, so ..." She shrugged her plump, white shoulders.
"While he was away on one of his half-year business trips, I made a small
payment to a Didi in East Celtalan for a relatively new baby. The ... ah ...
donations to the Celtalan Medical Center to certify that you had been born to
me and that I would never be able to have another child were considerably more
expensive. I had to sell a lot of my dowry jewels-gaudy things; I never liked
them anyway, and Manjari certainly never noticed they were gone. So you see,
Kisla, it becomes you ill to sneer at children whose fate-or worse-you might
well have shared."
Baron
Manjari and Kisla stared at the baroness in shocked silence.
"Which
Didi?" Manjari finally asked.
"One
of those you hired to procure children for your filthy habits, Manjari
dear," the baroness said sweetly. "How else would I have known where
to find a Didi? So you see, there is even a possibility that Kisla is your own
daughter. Although it seems unlikely to me, since you always preferred children
too young to become pregnant-"
Baron
Commodore Manjari had lowered his hand during her disclosure and, with an
insouciance that was almost laudable under the circumstances, had slipped it
into his pocket. Now he withdrew that hand. There was a glint of metal;
Gill
sprang forward with a warning cry, but he was too late. The plasknife had
neatly sliced through the baroness's neck. Blood spurted over Manjari's hands.
"No,
Father! Don't kill me, too!" Kisia shrank away from him.
"I
had to stop her talking. Surely you see that," Manjari said in a
conversational tone, his dark eyes glittering and staring. "If people
found out that you -were a brothel foundling, it -would ruin our position in
society."
He
looked around him at the horrified faces of Judit, Gill, and half a dozen
Manjari Shipping employees. "Stop talking . . . stop them all talking. . .
. It's too late for that, isn't it?" he asked Gill, like a child.
"Isn't it too late?"
Gill
nodded heavily.
"I
was afraid of that," Manjari said heavily, and turned the plasknife upon
himself.
They
had tried to keep the children from seeing the removal of the bodies, but
Kisia's piercing screams attracted all eyes until she, too, was removed, under
restraints and shot full of tranks.
"The
Piper's dead," one child reported to those already on the shuttle.
"The
Lady Lukia killed him for us."
"How
could she? She ain't here!"
"She
can do anything. Prolly she put malojo on him to make him kill hisself."
Gill
shook his head as the children calmly took their places on the shuttle.
"I
thought they'd be upset," he muttered.
"They
have always known death," Delszaki Li said. He had come upon them
silently, in his hover-chair, and Gill jumped half a meter at the unexpected
sound of the old man's voice. "Death is no stranger. Now it is for you and
Judit to teach them about life." He looked down, where the Manjaris blood
stained the floor of the port, and sighed. "But it is great pity about the
baron commodore."
"I
don't see why," said Judit. She was somewhat pale, but she was no longer
leaning against a wall and fighting nausea. "He was an evil man. He
deserved to die."
"Judit,
Judit." Li sighed. "Have I taught you nothing of business? Now? will
have to pay own shipping costs instead of extorting from Manjari. Is great
pity," he repeated.
Acorna,
still east of Celtalan, heard nothing of the happenings at the spaceport. The
enormity of the task was exhausting her-so many places to visit, so many
children hidden away and working as slaves! But it grew easier as the day went
on. The same secret, subterranean channels of communication that had once
spread tales of Epona, of Lukia, of Sita Ram, now carried the word that the
promised day of freedom had arrived. Those who hid would not be taken away into
the sky; they would have to remain as slaves. And so the children began coming
out even before they saw Acorna.
"Tomorrow
you won't have to do it all," Pal said cheerfully. "Anywhere they see
a Li consortium skimmer, they'll come to us. You should go home and rest
now."
"The
skimmer pilots have been flying all day," Acorna said. "If they can
keep on, so can I." She beckoned to Pedir. "Can you and your friends
manage one more flight today, Pedir? Good. There is one place more that I must
visit now. For Jana and Khetala."
At
Anyag, the news of some crazy woman who was taking away perfectly good bond-laborers
had reached the overseers as well as the servants. Some locked their gangs in
the sleep sheds. Since Siri Teku's gang was just coming off shift at the end of
the day, he simply told them to stay Below. There would be no off-shift until
this Acorna person had come and gone. She wouldn't find Anyag as easy to ruin
as those city-type factories with their soft managers !
But the
news had not mentioned a small army of skimmer pilots, medical technicians, and
House Li guards coming along with Acorna. While Delszaki Li's people swarmed
over the Anyag workings, breaking open sleep sheds and escorting the dazed,
blinking children to skimmers, Acorna looked and looked for the faces she
remembered.
"You
won't find 'em," Siri Teku taunted her, grinning. "They belong to me
and Old Black."
Mention
of the underground demon whose name was used to terrorize the children was all
the clue Acorna needed. She stopped briefly at each open shaft, delicately
testing the air with her horn until she came to the one where the air was heavy
with the breathing of many small people left all alone in the darkness of
Below.
The
engines that moved a cage up and down the shaft were stilled, but there were
emergency ladders at the side.
"Laxmi,"
Acorna called down into the darkness. "Faiz. Buddhe. Lata."
There
was a shuffling sound deep in the shaft and a scuffling noise behind Acorna, as
Siri Teku moved toward her and three pilots joyfully sat on his chest. Acorna
took no notice; all her attention was concentrated on the slender thread of her
own voice, drawing the children toward her. "Ganga, Villum, Parvi,"
she called.
As she
named the children, they slowly, fearfully, climbed the long ladders to the top
of the shaft. Laxmi was first.
"Sita
Ram." She sighed. "You did come back!" She fell to her knees and
kissed Acorna s skirts.
Acorna
gently lifted her. "I will need your help with the younger ones,
Laxmi," she said. "Lata, Ganga, Parvi?" she coaxed again.
"These
are the last ones at Anyag," Pal said tensely beside her. "Now will
you come home and rest? If only so you can come with us tomorrow??"
"Yes,"
Acorna said. "Come, Faiz, Villum, Buddhe," she called. "We are
going home. We are all going home."
That
the home she would eventually go to-if Calum's researches were true-would be
many light-years, and possibly many subjective years, of travel from Kezdet was
not important now. And certainly not to be mentioned to these children until
she saw them happy on Maganos under the care of Judit and Gill. Perhaps she and
Calum would wander the stars without success, but, in helping these children,
was she not earning the right to find her own people? Had she not made good her
vow to the destitute and abandoned of Kezdet?
Smiling,
she swung Lata up into her arms and walked toward Pedir's skimmer, trailed by
children, whose grimy hands clutched her skirts and her long silver hair.
No one
at Anyag dared to stop them.
END OF
ACORNA